A SUPPLEMENT TO Knowledge AND PRACTICE. Wherein the main things necessary to be known and believed in order to Salvation are more fully explained, and several new Directions given for the pro­moting of real Holiness both of Heart and Life. To which is added a serious Disswasive from some of the reigning and customary sins of the Times, viz. Swearing, Lying, Pride, Gluttony, Drunkenness, Ʋncleanness, Discontent, Covetousness and Earthly-mindedness, Anger and Malice, Idleness. By Samuel Cradock, B. D. late Rector of North-Cadbury in Somerset-Shire. Useful for the Instruction of private Families.

Quod de Scripturis authoritatem non habet, pari facilitate rejicitur, qua accipitur. Hieron.

LONDON, Printed for Thomas Simmons, at the Princes Arms in St. Pauls Church-yard, 1679.

To the INHABITANTS of NORTH-CADBURY in SOMERSETSHIRE.

My Loving Friends,

SOme years since, when I stood in the Relation of a Pastor to you, I wrote my Book of Knowledge and Practice, aiming therein more especially at your benefit. Which Treatise, I hope (through the Lords blessing) hath been of some use to you. I have since thought that it would not be a service unacceptable to you, to add by way of Supplement, a more full explication of the Main Principles of the Christian Faith, and some Further Di­rections for regulating of your Practice, and to send them unto you to supply my Personal absence. God only knows whether I shall ever see your Faces again in this World, Providence having fixed my Habitation at so great a distance from you. However my hearts desire and prayer to God for you is, that you may be saved; and if this poor Book may in any measure contribute thereunto, I shall heartily rejoyce. The holy Apostles, no doubt, in writing their Epistles, aimed at the Spiritual good of the Church in general; yet we may well suppose that those particular Chur­ches to whom their Epistles were directed, read them with more especial regard, and possibly reaped more signal benefits by them than others did. So, though I design these instructions for your Spiri­tual good, and benefit of all those into whose hands they shall come; Yet I hope they shall be more especially minded and regarded by you to whom they are particularly directed, and in contem­plation of whose necessities, and with an aim at whose benefit they were particularly framed. I know many of you are such of whom the Apostle speaks, Heb. 5.12. Who have need that one teach you the first Principles of the Oracles of God, and have need of milk and not of strong meat. I should be glad to have you all rightly instructed in the main fundamentals of Christianity, and that not for [Page] your sakes only, but for my own, that I may give up my account with joy and not with grief. Heb. 13.17. But yet I must tell you that it is not enough to save any of you, that you are of the true Religion, except you be true to it, and live agreeably thereunto. God hath indeed made sufficient provision by the obedience and death of his Son to save Mankind. But you must earnestly leg of God to inable you to do your part, which is, unfeignedly to repent of all your sins, savingly to believe in Christ and to accept him for your Lord and Saviour, and to deliver up your souls to him, that you may be pardoned through the infinite merit of his active and passive obedience, and sanctified by his Spirit, and inabled by his grace to lead a holy and good life. And as I earnestly desire you all to have an especial care of your own Souls, so do I with some importu­nity intreat all, that are Parents or Masters of Families among you, that they would take great care to instruct their children and servants in the main Principles of the Christian Religion. I have often thought, that if ever real Piety and Christianity flourish in England, more must he done by Parents and Masters in instructing those under their care than is now ordinarily done. I hope this short Treatise (may with the blessing of God) something assist and help you in performing that part of your duty. May the God of all grace lead you and guide you in ways of truth and holiness and inable you to live in love and peace one with another. And though I should never see you again in this life, yet may the Father of Mercies (through his infinite goodness) grant that I may meet your Souls in Heaven. This is the earnest desire and prayer of him who was once your unworthy Pastor, and is still your very lo­ving and affectionate friend,

SAM. CRADOCK.

The CONTENTS of the FIRST PART.

CHAP. I. Of God.
  • SECT. 1. Of the Nature of God and his Divine Attributes. page 1.
  • SECT. 2. Of the Trinity of per­sons in the unity of the Divine Essence. page 18.
  • SECT. 3. Of the works of God, page 31.
    • 1. Creation, where
      • Of good Angels, page 32.
      • Of evil Angels, page 40.
    • 2. Particular, page 48.
CHAP. 2. Of Man. Page 62
  • SECT. 1. Of the happy State wherein Man was created and the Covenant of Works made with him in that State, p. 62.
  • SECT. 2. Of his Fall and the consequents thereof, p. 66
  • SECT. 3. Of the Covenant of Grace made with Man immediate­ly after his Fall, which shews the only way of his recovery to be by Jesus Christ, p. 73
CHAP. 3. Of Jesus Christ. Page 80
  • SECT. 1. Of his Titles which in the Creed are four,
    • 1. Jesus, p. 80
    • 2. Christ, where, of his three Offices
      • [Page]Prophet, p. 83
      • Priest, p. 86
      • King, p. 88
    • 3. His only Son, p. 91
    • 4. Our Lord, p. 93
  • SECT. 2. Of his Natures, Di­vine and Humane, p. 95
  • SECT. 3. Of his birth, p. 96
  • SECT. 4. Of his Life, p. 100
    • Here a short and methodical Histo­ry of our Saviours Life is exhibited; and the particular Times in which he instituted Baptism and the Sa­crament of his Supper are pointed at. Ʋpon both which Sacraments there are distinct discourses added at the end.
  • SECT. 5. Of his Death and Bu­rial, p. 137
  • SECT. 6. Of that Article in the Creed, He descended into Hell, page 131
  • SECT. 7. Of his Resurrection, and ten several appearings after it in the space of forty dayes he con­tinued on the earth, p. 143
  • SECT. 8. Of his Ascention and sitting on Gods right hand, p. 149
  • SECT. 9. Of his coming to judg the World. p. 154
CHAP. 3.
  • SECT. 1. Of the Holy Ghost, p. 162
  • SECT. 2. Of the Catholick Church, 166
  • SECT. 3. Of Communion of Saints, p. 175
  • SECT. 4. Of forgiveness of sins, p. 178
  • SECT. 5. Of the Resurrection of the body, p. 193
  • SECT. 6. Of Life everlasting
    • Of Baptism, p. 200
    • Of the Lords Supper, p. 205
    • Of the Lords Prayer. p. 220

The second part contains a serious disswasive from some of the reigning and customary sins of the Times. viz.

  • Swearing,
  • Lying,
  • Pride,
  • Gluttony,
  • Drunkennness,
  • Ʋncleanness,
  • Discontent,
  • Covetousness and Earthly-mindedness,
  • Anger and Malice,
  • Idleness.

ERRATA.

IN page 267 after the eighth Direction, add, Ninthly, Take heed of saying [...]s many frequently do in their ordinary communication, I swear I will do such or such a thin [...], or I swear I never savv such a man, &c. Which vvords (I swear) are by some supp [...]sed to have the import and signification of an Oath in them, though they have not the form of it. And if any think there is no hurt in using such vvords, I desire them to tell me vvhen they say (I swear I vvill do such a thing) vvhether they do indeed Swear or no. If they do Swear, they do heinously ill to svvear in ordinary communication, as vve shevved before. If they do not swear and yet say they do swear, I desire to knovv of them vvhether they do no [...] lye, and that they knovv is a griev [...]us sin also. So that let them t [...]k [...] it vvh [...]ch vvay they vvill, I suppose their ovvn Reason (if they vvill listen to it) will tell them that it is a thousand times sa [...]er for-them to forbear such a form of words than to use it.

Page 5. line 20. read so incomprehensible an, p. 7. l. 12. r. God, p. 8. l. 4. after help us, r. novv the les­sons that vve may learn from hence are these. p. 17. l. 6. r. in Christ, l. 32. r. comfortably, p. 23. l. 28. r. testimonies, p. 24. marg. r. he, p. 25. l. 35. r. resisted, grieved, p. 26. l. 32. r. needs, p. 30. l. 33. r. at any time, p. 32. l. 5. marg. r. humi limus, p. 32. l. 25. r. preservest, p. 35. l. 10. r. named, p. 37. l. 11. r. Angel, p. 40. l. 3. r. Christs, p. 41. l. 19. r. the, p. 45. l. 25. r. Secondly, l. 30. r. fearful looking for of. p. 46. l. 16. r. so, p. 49. l. 28. r. disappointeth, p. 51. l. 25. r. obstructions, p. 53. l, 32. r. notions, p. 54. l. 13. r. conversion, l. 15. in Marg. r. a Deo, l. 17. r. vvithin, p. 57. l. 21. r. Gods, p. 59. l. 29. r. hath, l. 31. r. so far forth, p. 61. l. 16. r. especial, p. 64. l. 37. r. in it, p. 65. l. 16. r. Secondly, p. 67 l. 37. blot out a, l. 38. r. an higher, p. 68 l. 8. r. affectation, p. 69. l. 10. r. of the will l. 36. r. help him­self, p. 70. l. 17. r. be, l. 36. r. in us, p. 71. l. 18. r. utterly, p. 74. l. 24. r. Seal, p. 90. l. 27. r. be set, p. 91. l. 21. r. First, p 107. l. 18. r. from 46 to 51. p. 108. l. 2. r. Luke 8. p. 110. l. 29. r. 18. p. 111. l. 16. leave out the, p. 118. l 8. leave out to, p. 121. l. 5. r. too dear, p. 123. l. 10. r. sometime, p. 124. l. 22. r. held, p. 130. l. 14 r. potion, p. 132. l. 15. & l. 21. r. counsel, p. 133. l. 25. r. Sacrifices, p. 136. l. 9 r. that, p. 148. l. 29. for Acts r. Colos. p. 153. l. 23. r. improvement, l. 37. put out them, p. 154. l. 24. for to r. the, p. 160. l. 34. leave out they, p. 16 [...]. l. 13. blot out and, l. 24. for a r. the p. 170. l. 3. put out and, l. 5. r. succession, l. 6. after Church put in which. p. 172. l. 32. r. Catho­lick, p. 173. l. 13. leave out more, p. 177. l. 5. r. offices, p. 179. l. 17. r. needs, p. 182. l. 7. r. their l. 18. put out against, l. 18. r. in after is, p. 191. l. 19. r. would not have, p. 192. l. 19. after 2 put in as, p. 209. l. 31. r. position, l. 33. leave out sition, p. 210. l. 29. r. Apostle, p. 211. l. 8. r. 1 Thes. 2. 7. p. 229. l 7. r. chap. 6. p. 223. l. 14. r. fitness, p. 250 l. 32. r. duty, p. 251. l. 9 put in Third­ly, after injoyned, p. 252 l. 35. r. swear not at all, p. 262 l. 37 for and r. add. p. 285. l. 32 r. which renders, p. 286. l. 30. r. unreasonable, p. 288. l. 29. ult, for who r. how, p. 290. l. 32. blot out ( [...]) p. 305. l. 33. r. another mans liberty, p. 319. l. 9. r. to this sin, p. 332. l. 13 for twenty r. forty, l. 16. for ten r. twenty, p. 334. l. 35. for sorts r. sects, p. 3 [...]0. l, 24. for this r. the, p. 342. l. 22. for it. r. them, p. 343. l. 1. r. far, p. 345. l. 36. after Philadelphia add Rev. 2. and l. 37. r. by which, p. 349. l. 3. r. is, l. 13. r. of, p. 352. l. 33. r. Matth. p. 359. l. 4. for Heb. r. Habac. p. 388. l. 37. r. given. p. 390. l. 35. r. in a year;

CHAP. I. Of God.

SECT. I. Of the Nature of God, and his Divine Attributes.I believe in God the Fa­ther Al­mighty.

THere is nothing more necessary, and essential to true Piety, than a clear and distinct Theo­log [...]a est Scientia aff [...]ctiva. Pra­ctical and affective Knowledge of God. That there is a God, a Supreme and Soveraign Being (who was always what he is,) the very Light of Rea­son is able to manifest: For that it is utterly impossible for any Being to raise it self from nothing to be something, we shall pass for an undeniable Principle; seeing otherwise it should act and work, and be a cause, before it was, or had a Being; which is a plain con­tradiction. From hence it will unavoidably follow, that there was some Being or Entity always, and from Eternity; and that there never was a moment whereof it may truly be said, that then there was no Being at all.

Now if it be clear and evident, that there is a Being, that was Ever and Eternally, (for else there never had been any Being at all) it will hence follow, that this [...]eing is a necessary Being, and is absolutely First, and before all other Beings, and had no Cause, or Author of its own existence. There was an absolute necessity of this First Being's existence, and an utter impossibility of his not Being, or not being always what He is, and as He is. And this necessary, this Eternal, this First, and absolutely independent Be­ing, [Page 2] is the Being we call God. When therefore we are well as­sured and satisfied that there is a God; our next work should be to labour to knew this God aright.

In order to this, I shall

  • First, Shew what apprehensions we ought to have of God.
  • Secondly, What impressions those apprehensions should make upon our hearts, and what effects and fruits, they should produce in our lives.

'Tis true, God doth not require we should exceed the measure of our w [...]k and f [...]eble understandings in apprehending of him. But yet we should labour to attain to as clear and distinct a know­ledge of him as we are capable of.

And He hath been pleased of His infinite Goodness, graciously to consider our frame and weakness, and seeing our Natural light is not sufficient to discover and find out what may be known of him, he hath vouchsafed in his Holy Word, to reveal and manifest himself, Of the Na­ture of God. and his glorious Nature to us. And First, He hath re­vealed himself to be a pure, simple, immaterial, invisible Being, a Spirit of transcendent glory, Joh. 4.24. not having any matter or corporcity, nor being compounded as bodies are. And therefore we should not Picture him to our Eye-sight, nor represent him to our Fancies, under any bodily shape, or figure whatsoever; but should raise our apprehensions to the highest and holyest, to the purest and most Spiritual conceptions of him that we can possible frame: We should labour to see this invisible God by the eye of Faith, and observe his power and efficacy working in all his Creatures. 'Tis He that enlightens us by the Sun, and warms us by the fire, and makes our food to nourish us, and his other Creatures to do us good.

The Schoolmen say, There are Three ways of knowing God; First, Per viam eminentiae, when we ascribe all possible perfections to him. Secondly, Per viam negationis, when we remove from him all imperfections whatsoever. Thirdly, Per viam causationis, when we see, and acknowledge that all things that are made, are made by him, and receive their being, and all their powers, and per­fections from him.

Secondly, God is an infinite Being; for whatsoever hath no cause of being, can have no bounds or limits of being set to it. For the reason why any Being is bounded, limited, and confin'd to [Page 3] such a measure and degree of Being only; is because the Author of its existence communicated and bestowed only so much being, power and efficacy upon it, and no more. He that made it, set limits and bounds to it; that hitherto its Essence should go and extend, and no further. All things that receive their Being, (as all things Created do) can have no more of being, life, power, or vertue, than is given them by the Author of their Nature. And as they received their Being from him; so they received their limitation to this, or that set kind of Being also. The First Being therefore that hath nothing to give it Being, hath nothing to give it limits, and, as it were, to confine it to this, or that kind, form and degree of Being. As therefore the First Being could not be the cause of existence to it self, so neither could it limit, confine, or bound it self. And there was nothing else without it that could set bounds or limits to it. It remains therefore that it must needs be an Essence un­bounded, unlimited, and so absolutely infinite and immense: Infinite in Life, and so Eternal: Infinite in Wisdom, and so Om­niscient: Infinite in Power, and so Omnipotent; and infinite in Goodness, and all perfections.

That Being therefore that hath more Power, Wisdom, and Good­ness, than all the World beside, that is the Being we call God. That Being that hath communicated to all things else, the Being, Power, Life, Virtue, and all such perfections as they have, is the God whom we acknowledg, adore and worship.

We come now to consider the Attributes of God more Particu­larly, which are those glorious excellencies, Of the At­tributes of God. and proprieties of his Divine Essence, which declare and manifest his Nature to us, and whereby we are inabled (in some measure) to conceive aright of him.

And these are of Two sorts,

  • Incommunicable.
  • Communicable.

First, Incommunicable; which are such Attributes as agree to God alone, and cannot belong to any Creature. Such as are His Eternity, Omnipresence, Omnipotence, Omniscience.

Secondly, Communicable; which are such Attributes, which though they be infinite perfections in God; yet some resemblances of them are found in the Creatures. Such are His Wisdom, Holi­ness, Justice, Mercy, and Faithfulness; I begin with His incom­municable Attributes, And

God is E­ternal.I. God is an Eternal Being, and none is Eternal but him­self, Psal. 90.2. From everlasting to everlasting thou art God. That which had no cause, had no beginning, and that which had no beginning is Eternal. Time (which is a duration, that hath be­ginning and end) is competible to man, and other visible Crea­tures. A [...]viternity (which is a duration that hath a beginning, but no end) is competible to good, and evil Angels, and to the Souls of men. But Eternity (which hath neither beginning nor end) belongs only to God, Isai. 57.15. He is called, The high and l [...]sty one, who inhabiteth Eternity; that is, who alone is Eter­nal. He speaks of Eternity, as a House, or Palace, which a King inhabiteth, or dwelleth in, as his own peculiar Possession; in which no other man has any right but himself. And 2 Pet. 3.8. The Apostle says, A Thousand years with him, are but as one day; and this is the first of his incommunicable Attributes, He is Eternal. Let us now consider what improvement we should make of this Attribute.

Gods Eternity should fill our Souls with admiring thoughts of him. Who can think of Eternity without amazement? Man is a Creature of few days, and ere long shall be no more here. Our Bodies are perishing, but our Souls must last to Eternity. Let us therefore mind things Eternal, 2 Cor. 4.18. Whatever we neg­lect, let us labour to secure to our selves Eternal happiness; Zeux­i [...], that famous Painter said, He did pingere aeternitati; he drew his Pictures with such care, that they might last (if it were possi­ble) and be famous to Eternity. Let us all so pray, so read, so live, and do all that we do, as those that desire to obtain a hap­py Eternity. Nulla satis magna securitas ubi periclitatur aeternitas. We can never be over carefull to secure our Eternal state in Bliss and happiness.

II. God is Omnipresent, Omnipre­sent. or every where present. He is not confined or limited to any place, Jer. 23.24. Can any hide himself in secret places, that I shall not see him, saith the Lord? Do not I fill Heaven and Earth? The sweet Singer of Israel, Psal. 139.7, 8, 9, 10. Cryes out, Whither shall I go from thy Spirit? Or whither shall I free from thy presence? If I ascend up to Heaven, thou art there; if I make my Bed in Hell, behold thou art there; if I take the Wings of the Morning, and dwell in the uttermost parts of the Sea; even there shall thy hand lead me, and thy right hand shall hold me; [Page 5] if I say the darkness shall cover me, even the night shall be light about me; yea the darkness hideth not from thee, but the night shi­neth as the day, the darkness and the light are both alike to thee.

Gods Omnipresence should imprint a constant awe of his Majesty upon our Souls. We should always behave our selves, as those that believed he stood by. He is neither shut up in, nor excluded out of any place, nay he is beyond all place or space where any Creature is. He is every where, for his Essence is unbounded. And further this should convince us that he is incomprehensible, and that we cannot have a full, adaequate, and comprehensive knowledge of him.Non esset Deus mag­nus nisi es­set major captu no­stro. Canst thou by searching find out God. Canst thou find out the Almighty unto perfection, sayes Zophar, Job 11.7. We may as well think to take up all the Waters of the Sea in a Spoon, as with our narrow understanding fully to comprehend God. Stop then thy bold enquiries, O vain man! And remember that thou art a finite worm, and God is infinite. Do not go about to measure God by thy narrow apprehension; nor to Question, much less deny that of God, which thou canst not understand. Do not su­spect what his word reveals of him, but suspect thy own muddy understanding, that can conceive no better of so an incomprehen­sible Essence.

III. God is Omnipotent, Omnipo­tent. Mat. 19.26. With God all things are possible. His Essence being infinite, his power must needs be in­finite also. His Omnipotency consists in things simply, and absolute­ly possible, not in things that are not possible to be done. God cannot make contradictions true, he cannot lye, he cannot deny himself; for these things do not speak perfection, but weakness. Convenientius dicitur ea non posse fieri, quam quod Deus ea non posset facere, says Aquinas warily; 'Tis more convenient to say, That these things cannot be done, than that God cannot do them. Now Gods Omnipotency should make these impressions on us,

First, We should stand in fear, and tremble at his Judgments. Shall the Lyon roar, and shall not the Beasts of the Field tremble? Shall Omnipotency shake his Rod over us, and shall not we humble our selves? The dread of the Heavenly Majesty, of his infinite greatness and power, should be still upon us. Indeed, we should not be under a slavish fear of God (that is void of love) as men fear an Enemy; but we should fear sinning against, or displeasing so great a God. The fear of the Lord is the beginning of Wisdom, Prov. 16.6, By it men depart from evil.

Secondly, We may see from hence what ground we have earnest­ly to seek unto him in all our difficulties and distresses. The ground of all the Petitions in the Lords Prayer, is this, For thine is the Kingdom, Power and Glory. Let the Enemies of the Church be never so strong, God is stronger than they. He has promised that the Gates of Hell shall not prevail against his Church, Mat. 16.18. Nothing encourages more to fervent Prayer, than a due ap­prehension of Gods Omnipotence.

Thirdly, This Attribute should imprint upon our hearts a strong and stedfast confidence in God, Psal. 9.10. They that know thy Name will trust in thee. O what an encouragement is it to the Saints, that they have Omnipotence engaged for them! O what a shame is it that ever we should distrust an Almighty God. He can supply our greatest wants; He can mitigate or remove our greatest pains; He can deliver us from our greatest distresses. Dan. 3.17. What will vain man have confidence in, if he distrust Omnipotence? Where can we be safe, if not in the hands of the Almighty, Mat. 8.26. Why fear ye, (says our Saviour to his Apostles) O ye of little Faith. Remember O Christian in thy lowest estate, and in the Churches greatest dangers, the Almighty is able to raise his Church, or thee again, even in a moment. Take heed of saying in thy heart, Can God furnish a Table in the Wilderness? Psal. 78.19. Read and consider these Scriptures, Prov. 29.25. The fear of man bringeth a snare, but who-so putteth his trust in the Lord, shall be safe. Psal. 56.3, 4. What time I am afraid, I will trust in thee. In God I have put my trust; I will not fear what Flesh can do unto me. Jer. 17.5. Thus saith the Lord, Cursed be the man that trusteth in man, and maketh Flesh his Arm; and whose heart departeth from the Lord.

Fourthly, Gods Almightiness should possess us with a holy ad­miration of him, and cause us in heart and voice to magnifie him. O what a power is that which made the World of nothing, which hangs the Earth in the Air, and upholds it without any Founda­tion? What a power is that which stretcheth out the Heavens as a Curtain, and hath so bespangled with Stars that glorious Ca­nopy.

What a power is that, which at first placed, and since maintain­eth all things in their Order; which causeth every part of Nature to do its Office; which maketh the Sun and Moon constantly to keep [Page 7] their course? Jer. 31.35. The Lord giveth the Sun for a light by day, and the Ordinances of the Moon, and of the Stars for a light by night. He divideth the Sea, when the waves thereof do roar; the Lord of Hosts is his Name. Isa. 4.22. It is he that sitteth upon the Cir­cle of the Earth, and the inhabitants there of are as Grashoppers; it is he that stretcheth out the Heavens as a Curtain, and spreadeth them out as a Tent to dwell in.

Fifthly, and lastly, God's Almightiness should be a great comfort and support to all that have an interest in him. Wo to those the Al­mighty is against; but happy, thrice happy are they, that have the God of Israel for their refuge.

IV. Gods is Omniscient, Omnisci­ent. Psal. 147.5. His understanding is infinite, 1 Chron. 28.9, The Lord searcheth all hearts, and understandeth all the imaginations of the thoughts, 1 Sam. [...]6.7. Man looketh on the outward appearance, but God looketh on the heart, Jer. 17.10. I, the Lord search the heart, I try the reins, to give every one ac­cording to his ways, and the fruit of his doings. And Chap. 20.12. He is said to see the reins, and the heart.

Now if God be Omniscient, how watchfully and carefully should we carry our selves in all places? How should we fear to sin in secret against him whose eye is always upon us? How sincere and upright should we be in all our duties? How should this Motto be ever in our minds, Cave, Deus videt, Take heed, God sees. If our Breasts were Crystal Glasses, and men were able through them to see all the workings of our hearts; how carefull should we be what thoughts we entertained? Alas, that we should be no more sensible, that God always sees us. He sees hearts, as we see faces. How many are afraid to commit a sin before men; that are not afraid to sin before the all-seeing eye of God. If God be Omni­scient, this should teach us to be sincere, and upright, and Consci­entiously to endeavour both to avoid secret sins, and to perform secret duties, Mat. 6.6. When thou prayest, enter into thy Closet, and when thou h [...]st shut the door, pray to thy Father which is in secret, and thy Father whi [...]h seeth in secret, shall reward thee openly. And thus much of Gods incommunicable Attributes

I come now to speak of his communicable Attributes, which though they be infinite perfections in Him; yet, there are some re­semblances of them found in the Creatures.

I. God is infinitely wise, I [...]finitely wise. 1 Tim. 1.17. He is called the invisible and [Page 8] only wise God. He administers the World, and the affairs of it with infinite wisdom, though many of his Ways and Providences are obscure, and intricate. God knows what is fittest for us, and what is the fittest time to help us.

First, We should labour to be wise, that we may be like unto God. To desire, as Adam did, any of that knowledge which God hath reserved to himself, and is unnecessary for us: is indeed not to be wise in our desires. We ought to labour to know the Lord, and his revealed will, and the way to Eternal life, and to endea­vour to walk in it; and this is true wisdom. True Piety is the greatest wisdom; and sin is the greatest folly. There is not any Soul in Hell, but was brought thither by its own sinful folly. There­fore the Apostle exhorts us, Eph. 5.15. That we walk circumspectly, not as fools, but as wise. Certainly to save a mans Soul, is a work of the greatest wisdom, and requires our best care and indu­stry.

Secondly, we should humbly beg wisdom of God. We should seek to him as our principal Counsellor, and Director in all our un­dertakings. Jam. 1.5. If any of you lack wisdom, let him ask of God who giveth to all men liberally, and upbraideth not, and it shall be given him.

Thirdly, We should take heed of trusting in our own wisdom. The way of man is not in himself, Jer. 10.23. We should read the Scriptures much, for they are able to make us wise unto salvation. We should often consider what the wise man sayes, Prov. 3.5, 6. Trust in the Lord with all thine heart, and lean not unto thine own understan­ding. In all thy ways acknowledge him, and he shall direct thy paths.

Fourthly, The Infinite wisdom of God should teach us to rest in all his Determinations and Dispensations. Shall dust and ashes, judge the Lord who is only wise? We should learn to submit to his infinite wisdom, as well as to his Holy will.

Fifthly, The consideration of the infinite wisdom of God should encourage the People of God in their greatest straits, and against all the cunning subtilty of their enemies. They should labour faith­fully to do their duties, and then humbly rest in the infinite wis­dom of God, who knows better what is good for them, than they know themselves.

II. God is infinitely Holy. Holy. He is many times stiled the Holy One of Israel, and glorious in Holiness, Exod. 15.11. Fearfull in [Page 9] praises; that is, who is to be praised with great fear and reverence. Rev. 4.8. He is stiled Holy, Holy, Holy, Lord God Almighty, which was, and is, and is to come. The consideration of Gods tran­scendent Purity and Holiness should teach us,

First, To endeavour to imitate God in this perfection. 1 Pet. 1.15. Be ye Holy, (says God) for I am Holy. Holiness should have an universal influence upon our whole man. There should be Holiness in our thoughts, Purity in our hearts, Sincerity in our intentions, Truth in our words, Justice in our actions; Sobriety, Chastity, Temperance, Humility, Modesty in all our outward manners and conversations. Heb. 12.14. The Apostle advises us to follow peace with all men, and holiness, without which no man shall see the Lord. 'Tis not said, without peace, for a man may follow after that, and may not be able to obtain it. But the Greek Article re­lates to holiness, [ [...]] without which no man shall see the Lord. Into the new Jerusalem nothing enters that defiles, Rev. 21.27.

Secondly, We should look to it, that we do not meerly act a part of holiness, but do really endeavor to be so. Nothing in the World is better than reall holiness; & nothing more detestable than the coun­terfeit of it. As there is no face in Nature more comely and majestical than that of a man; so none more ugly and ridiculous than that of an Ape, which has some shew of it, but falls so far short of it. Si­mulata pietas, duplex iniquitas: Counterfeit Piety, is double Ini­quity.

Thirdly, we should be very far from being ashamed of holiness, which we see is the Image of God. The Devil and his Instruments labour all they can to disparage holiness; and by several nick-names and such artifices, to keep People off from esteeming of it, or en­deavouring after it.Sir Simon D' Ewes Primitive practice for preser­ving Truth. 'Tis an Observation of a Learned Author of our own, that among the Turks, Jews, Indians, Persians, and the Papists themselves at this day; the most Zealous and Holy in their several Religions, are most esteemed and honoured. But in the greatest part of the Protestant World, the most knowing, and tena­cious of the Evangelical truth, and the most strict, and godly in their lives, are hated, nick-named, disgraced, and vilified. Thus does the Devils malice, and the corruption of man concur to bring dishonour and disesteem upon that which is a participation of the Divine Nature, and makes a man most like unto God.

III. God is just; Just. Justice in God is that perfection of his Na­ture, whereby he is just in himself, and exerciseth justice towards all his Creatures. Shall not the Judge of all the Earth do right? Cen. 18.25. and Ezek. 18.29. Are not my ways equal, saith the Lords Psal. 145.17. The Lord is righteous in all his ways, 2 Tim 4.8. Henceforth is laid up for me a Crown of Righteousness, which the Lord the Righteous Judge shall give me at that day: Gods Ju [...]ice and Righteousness is Essential, and Natural unto him, and to likewise is his Mercy. And these Two properties as they are Es­sential in God, are not opposite one to another. Indeed the ef­fects of Justice and Mercy, are sometimes opp [...]site, but the Attributes themselves are not so. When therefore we pray that God would not d [...]l with us according to his Ju [...]tice, but his Mercy; we pray not against the Attribute of his Justice, but the effects of it, which are subject to the liberty of his will. God is always just alike, but the effects of his Justice may be more manifested at one time than at ano­ther. When therefore 'tis said, James 2.13. Gods Mercy rejoyceth against Judgment, and that he is slow to anger, ready to forgive, &c. It must be so understood that He is more ready to manifest the effects of his Mercy, than of his Justice.

Object. But against Gods Justice some may be apt to Object this, that it often goes ill with the Righteous in this World, and the wicked pro [...]per; and how can that consist with Divine Justice? To this many Answers may be given.

Answ. First, No man is perfectly Righteous here; therefore no won­der if Gods own Children have the Rod sometimes upon their backs, for their sins.

Secondly, God may tenderly love his Children, though he do afflict them, Heb. 12.6. For whom the Lord loveth he chasteneth, and scourgeth every Son whom he receiveth. Psal. 119.57. I know O Lord that thy Judgments are right, and that thou in faithfulness hast afflicted me. God sanctifies the afflictions of his People to their good. Their afflictions are profitable unto them for the encrease of their Graces, and so for the furtherance of their glory.

Thirdly, They have good assurance that all things shall work to­gether for their good, Rom. 8.28. And therefore no cause to com­plain.

Fourthly, Though godliness hath the promises of this life, as well as of that to come, 1 Tim. 4.8. Yet those promises of Temporal [Page 11] blessings must be understood with this limitation, viz. That they shall be made good to them, so far forth as God shall see it good and convenient for his Children in this life, and no further.

Fifthly, The prosperity of wicked men in this World is ma­ny ways very hurtfull, and extremely disadvantagious to them, in reference to their Eternal condition. Outward sufferings with Spiritual blessings are ordinarily the Lot of Gods Children here on Earth, as outward prosperity with Spiritual calamity is very fre­quently the Lot of the ungodly. The prosperity of fools destroys them, saith Solomon, Prov. 1.32.

Sixthly, There will be a day of Judgment wherein all things will be set right, though here things oftentimes seem to be out of course.

Seventhly, Eternity is long enough to punish the wicked, and reward the Godly; therefore let us not take our measures either of happiness or misery, from the outward dispensations of this life.

The Consideration of this Attribute should make these impressi­ons upon us,

First, if God be just, then this should make all impenitent sinners tremble. Except men repent, 'tis not consistent with Gods justice, they should be pardoned. What great cause have ungodly impe­nitent sinners to tremble at the Justice of God, which engages him to deal so severely with them, and to punish them everlastingly as his Enemies. O wretched sinner what aileth thee to make this just God thine enemy! What folly? What madness possesses thee that thou shouldst make a mock at sin, and laugh at Hell and Dam­nation? Shall not the Justice of God terrifie thee, and keep thee off from those sinfull courses which expose thee to so certain a vengeance?

Secondly, Gods Justice, is a great consolation to the Righte­ous. He will justifie them whom his Gospel justifies, because he is just, 1 John. 1.9. If thou break off thy sins by repentance, and ap­ply thy self to Him for pardon; in and through the merits of his Son; He is just, and therefore will make good his promise of par­don to thee.

Thirdly, God being just; let us bless his name for finding out a way whereby his Justice may be satisfied; and so we poor sinners pardoned. His Justice might have taken every one of us by the [Page 12] Throat, and said, Pay all thou owest; and then what should we have done? We could not have payed one Farthing of the Debt. O let us for ever bless his Holy Name, that he hath provided so good a surety for us; who hath undertaken the payment of our Debt; and to satisfie his justice, in our behalf.

Fourthly, Let us labour to imitate God in this Attribute of his Justice; that is, let us give to every one what of right is due to him. Let us labour to give to God his due; and to man his due. Let us not rob God of his time allotted for his service. Let us give him our Hearts, and serve him with the best of our affections. Let us give to man what is due to him, not injuring any man wit­tingly and willingly. And in case of wrong done, let us labour to make satisfaction. Non remittitur peccatum nisi restituatur ablatum. Remember, that the sin is notre mitted except that which is taken away wrongfully be restored.

IV. God is Mercifull. Mercifull. He is called, The Father of Mercies, 2 Cor. 1.3. Abundant in Mercy, 1. Pet. 1.3. Rich in Mercy, Eph. 2.4. And sayes the Psalmist, Psal. 145.8, 9. The Lord is gra­cious and full of compassion, slow to anger and of great mercy. The Lord is good to all, and his tender mercies are over all his works.

All the Attributes of God are glorious; yet, he rejoyceth most in the manifestation of his mercy and goodness, Exod. 33.18, 19. When Moses desired the Lord to shew him his glory; He said, I will make all my goodness pass before thee, and I will proclaim the Name of the Lord before thee: and will be gracious to whom I will be graci­ous; and will shew mercy to whom I will shew mercy. Isai. 63.7. I will mention the loving kindnesses of the Lord, and the praises of the Lord, according to all that the Lord hath bestowed upon us; and the great goodness toward the House of Israel, which he hath bestowed on them, according to his mercies, and according to the multitude of his loving kindnesses. He delights not in the death of a sinner. His mercy is so great to all, that he will destroy none, but for their wilfull sin.

The consideration of this Attribute should teach us these Lessons,

First, Gods mercy should lead sinners to repentance. It should shame them from their sins. It should encourage them to repent, as well as engage them to it. O sinners remember we have to do with a [Page 13] mercifull God, who hath not forbid any to come in, but continu­eth to invite them, who have often refused, and will undoubted­ly welcome, and pardon all that will return and come in. But mercy it self will have no mercy on the Impenitent, Isai. 27.11. It is a People of no understanding; therefore he that made them will not have mercy on them; and he that formed them, will shew them no favour. Wo to all them, against whom mercy it self shall rise up in Judgment; There is mercy with thee, that thou mayest be feared, sayes the Psalmist, Psal. 130.4. Were there no hope of pardon, Men would be as desperate as the Devils themselves. But God is merciful; He delighteth not in the death of a sinner.

Object. But you will say, how comes it to pass then, that so many men are damned, if God delights not in the death of a sinner?

Answ. Divines tells us of voluntas Dei,

  • Antecedens, &
  • Consequens.

that is, the Antecedent, and Consequent will of God.

By the former, as a Law-giver, He gives just and good Laws, and wills that Men should obey them, that they may be happy in so doing.

By the other, if they will not obey, as a just Judge, he wills they should be punished. So that their ruine is from themselves, and not from God.

Secondly, The Mercy of God should be the matter of our daily praises. The meditation of God's Mercy should produce in us delight­full thoughts, and should keep (as it were) a continual sweetness upon our hearts, and cause us to study the most gratefull returns unto God. They that live continually upon Mercy, should be as it were turned into love and thankfullness. It should become as it were their Nature, and Constitution, as the food men live up­on, will be seen in their Temperature, health and strength. O how unspeakable is the Mercy of God, that provides so well for his Servants in this their Warfare and Pilgrimage through this World! O what sweet Meditations should we have of Gods Mercy? Love, thankfulness and praise should be our daily exercise. Had we Davids heart, what Songs of praise would the consideration of Gods Mercy teach us to indite? How affectionately should we recount the Mercies of our youth, and riper years? Yea, of every state and condition we have been in, to the honour of our great Benefactor. [Page 14] But especially, if God hath touched our hearts with his saving grace, if he hath effectually called us, and inabled us to repent of our sins, and believe in his Son? O then how should we bow down our heads, and adore his free grace, as the cause thereof. If we have received any grace tending to our own sanctification, or the edification of others, Let us say as Paul did, 1 Cor. 15.20. By the grace of God I am that I am.

Thirdly, The meditation of Gods goodness and mercy to us, should possess us with a superlative love to God. Most certainly the prevailing love of God is the surest evidence of true sanctifica­tion. He that hath most love, has most grace. And if you tru­ly love God you will be loath to offend him. The love of God doth not reign in that soul where the love of the World, or of the Flesh, or Pleasure reigneth.

Fourthly, The Mercy of God should teach us to imitate him in this Attribute. We should labour to be mercifull, as our Heaven­ly Father is mercifull; that is, as to the manner, though we can­not reach to the measure. The goodness of God should possess us with a desire to be conformed to his goodness in our measure. Sum­mae Religionis est imitari quem colis.

Now God is mercifull two ways especially, in

  • Giving,
  • Forgiving.

First, In Giving. O how does the Lord supply our wants daily! Let us therefore shew mercy to those that want our help.

Secondly, In Forgiving. O what a vast number of debts does the Lord forgive us! Gods mercy to us layes the greatest Obli­gation imaginable upon us to forgive others.A Chri­stian may remember offences in cautelam, though not in vindi­ctam. Matth. 18.23. Shall not we forgive an Hundred Pence, who have had Ten Thou­sand Talents forgiven unto us?

Fifthly, We should especially observe and take notice of the mercy of God, so highly manifested in the design of our Redemption, 1 Joh. 4.10. Here is love, not that we loved God, but that he loved us, and sent his Son to be a propitiation for our sins. Was there ever Mercy like this? We have reason to cry out, O the depth of the riches of the mercy of God! O Lord, what is man that thou art so mindful of him, or the Son of man, that thou thus visitest him with thy favour and mercy.

Sixthly, Gods goodness and mercy should encourage our Souls to trust in him. How many friends have some men with whom they dare trust their Estates or Lives, because they are confident [Page 15] they truly love them. And shall we not trust God who is love it self, 1 John. 4.16.

I come now to the last of Gods communicable Attributes, which I shall speak unto, which is His faithfulness in keeping of his Cove­nant and Promises.

V. God is Faithful. Faithful. One letter of Gods glorious Name is abun­dant in truth or faithfulness. The Scriptures abundantly bear Testimony unto this. Deut. 7.9. Know therefore that the Lord thy God, he is God, the faithfull God, which keepeth Covenant and Mercy with them that love him and keep his Commandements, to a Thousand Generations. Isai. 49.7. The Lord who is faithfull. Rom. 3.4. Let God be true; that is, owned and acknowledged for such, though all mankind should be false and deceitful.

Now Gods Faithfulness is manif [...]sted Two ways

  • In fulfilling his promises,
  • In accomplishing his Threatnings.

God cannot in any case fail of his word. It is impossible for him to lie, Heb. 6.18. Tit. 1.2. As God is light and in him there is no darkness, 1 Joh. 1.5. So he is truth, and in him there is no falshood. The strength of Israel will not lye. 1 Sam. 15.29. And Numb. 23.19. God is not a man that he should lye. God hath promised to them that repent, and believe in his Son that they shall be saved. He hath promised to give his Holy Spirit to them that ask him, Luk. 11, 9. And we have reason firmly to believe these promises. As for Temporal things, he hath not promised them to any of his Children absolutely, but with a tacit condition; if he, in his in­finite Wisdom, see it good and expedient for them. So that as to these, we must humbly refer our selves to his infinite Wisdom. 'Tis true, we are required to pray for these Temporal things in faith; but not with an assured particular perswasion, that God will give us the very particular things we ask, but with a faith of dependance on God, and submission to his Holy will. When we act faith on the All-sufficiency and Power of God, and humbly resign our selves to his Holy will, we may be said to pray in faith.

I come now to the Lessons which we are to learn from the con­sideration of this Attribute.

First, We should learn from hence, that the commands of God are serious, and his promises and threatnings will certainly be ac­complished. There is nothing of reason or sence can be spoken against an Holy life by any one who believes the veracity and faithfulness of God, and the truth of his Word. Hath God said [Page 16] (and do you believe it) that he will come in flaming Fire to take vengeance on all them that know not God, and obey not the Gospel of our Lord Jesus Christ? 2 Thess. 1.8. And can you continue in igno­rance and disobedience? Hath he said that the unrighteous shall not inherit the Kingdom of God, 1 Cor. 6.9. And can you continue in unrighteousn [...]ss? Hath he said, Heb. 12.14. Without Holiness no man shall see the Lord; and can you slight Holiness? And mock at serious Piety? If you believ'd God to be faithfull and his Word true, how could these things be so?

Secondly, Gods faithfulness is a great aggravation of the hei­nousness of the sin of unbelief. He that believeth not God, hath made him a lyer, faith the Apostle, 1 Joh. 5.10. And this is the rather to be heeded, that we may stir up in our selves a dili­gent watchfulness against this sin, which with many is accounted but a meer infirmity. O what matter of humiliation doth our proneness to this sin, (namely to distrust God) justly minister un­to us? Many men hardly trust the promises of God so much as they would the word of a mortal man, whom they account honest and just. Certainly Gods faithfulness and truth should teach us to hate every motion to unbelief. Ʋnbelief is the very bane of all Re­ligion, so far as it prevails. Let it be our great care therefore to extirpate all remainders of this sin of Infidelity out of our hearts.

Thirdly, If God be faithful, this should be a great encourage­ment to us to trust in him, and in his promises. It should be the solid ground of our faith, the stay of our Souls, the foundation of all our hopes. Faith is animated by Gods veracity and truth, and from thence all other graces are excited in us. O Christians, what life should it put into our hopes to think that all those words that God hath spoken are most certainly true; that all those descriptions of the everlasting Kingdom, all those exceeding precious promises, that concern this life, or that which is to come, will certainly be made good; that all those expressions of the exceeding love of God to his poor Servants, are certain and sure. O how should our faith live upon this truth of God, and by it be daily more and more strengthened! And particularly that none of his promises concern­ing his Church, will fail or fall to the ground.

Fourthly, How thankfull should we be to God for giving us such gracious promises to encourage us in the ways of our obedience. He has promised that he will never, never leave nor forsake those [Page 17] that are in Covenant with him, Heb. 13.5. We have good assu­rance That all things shall work together for good, to them that love God. Rom. 8.28. That he will give grace and glory and no good thing will he with-hold from them that walk uprightly, Psal. 84.11. And what can we desire more?

Fifthly, We should labour to get an interest Christ, in whom all the promises of God are Yea and Amen, 2 Cor. 1.20. That is, have their foundation, firm establishment and unalterable ratification.

Sixthly, We should learn the Divine art of living upon the pro­mises of God, and fetching comfort, for the support of our lives from them. Most men live on their present enjoyments, not on Gods promises. Whereas the Prophet tells us, Habak. 2.4. The Just shall live by his Faith. Certainly nothing makes us so humble, lowly; and puts us into so much ease, and quietness of mind, as to live by Faith on God. Isai. 26.3. Thou wilt keep him in perfect peace whose mind is stay'd on thee, because he trusteth in thee.

Seventhly, The truth and faithfulness of God should engage us to be true and faithfull to him. Have we not ingaged in our Bap­tism to forsake the Devil, the World and the Flesh; and to devote our selves to the sincere service and worship of God the Father, Son and Holy Ghost? Are not his Vows upon us? that is, Vows to serve him faithfully, Psal. 56.12. And shall we be like those false Israelites of whom 'tis said, Psal. 78.36, 37. Nevertheless they did flatter him with their mouth, and they lied unto him with their Tongues. For their heart was not right with him, neither were they steadfast in his Covenant. And have we not in the course of our lives made ma­ny particular promises to God in our particular distresses? And shall we expect that God should perform his promises to us, when we take no care to perform ours to him? Shall we expect that God will perform his promise of pardon to us, when we take no care to perform the conditions required of us; upon the performance of which, we may comfortly expect to have the Divine promises made good to us?

Eighthly, We should endeavour to imitate God in this Attri­bute of his faithfulness. Let us be true to God, and true also to man. Remember you serve a God of truth; and 'tis the glory of his servants to be like him. The Devil indeed is the Father of lyes; but God hates all lying, as contrary to his Holy Nature. If you would be like God, labour to imitate him in his truth and faithfulness.

SECT. II. Concerning the Trinity of Persons in the Ʋnity of the Di­vine Essence.

TO prevent all misapprehensions concerning God and the Divine Nature, it will be requisite that we carefully attend unto the Declaration or Revelation that God hath been pleased to make of himself in the Holy Scriptures. For surely we have all the reason in the World to assent to those assertions or testimonies that God is pleased to give unto us concerning himself, and that according to their natural and genuine sence. The Sum then of this Revelation held forth to us in Holy Scriptures, is this, That God is one: That this one God is Father, Son, and Holy Ghost: That the Fa­ther is the Father of the Son, and the Son, the Son of the Father; and the Holy Ghost the Spirit of the Father and the Son; and by rea­son of their mutual respects and relations to each other, and their peculiar properties arising from those particular relations, they (viz. Father, Son, and Holy Ghost) are distinct each from o­ther.

This one God is set forth to us in the Scriptures as the only true God, whom we are to believe in, adore, worship and obey. This is the first cause, Soveraign Lord, and ultimate end of all. For the proof hereof, we shall produce Divine Testimonies whereon Faith may safely rest. And first we shall prove God to be one. Secondly, The Father to be God, the Son to be God, the Holy Ghost to be God, Thirdly, We shall shew that the explanations usually made of this Doctrine are accordi [...]g to truth, though we make use of some words or expressions which are not literally or Syllabically contained in the Holy Scriptures; but are such as do not teach any other Doctrine than what is therein contained; and are (to our apprehen­sions) fairly expository of them. And surely if Ministers may not set forth the sence of the words of Scripture in such expressions as they apprehend do most clearly convey the true and genuine meaning of them to the People, to what end serves that great Ordi­nance [Page 19] of preaching the Word? I shall begin therefore with the Original Revelation, and shew you what is delivered to us by Divine Testimony; and this I shall give you in these particulars fol­lowing.

First, We are assured by Divine Revelation that God is one. Deut. 6.4. Hear O Israel, the Lord our God is one Lord. Isai. 44.6.8. Thus saith the Lord, the King of Israel, and his Redeemer the Lord of Hosts, I am the first, and I am the last, and besides me there is no God. Is there any God besides me? Yea, there is no God, I know not any. Isai. 45.5. I am the Lord, and there is none else, there is no God besides me, 1 Cor. 8.4. As concerning therefore the eating of things Offered in Sacrifice unto Idols, we know that an Idol is nothing in the World, and that there is none other God but one.

Secondly, That the Father is God. He is often so called, only in reference to his Son. And if he had an eternal Son; (as we shall prove presently) He is an Eternal Father, and his Paternity was from Eternity co-existent with his Deity. The Father is a person subsi­sting of himself. This is denied by none. Eph. 1.3. Blessed be the God and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, who hath blessed us with all Spiritual blessings in Christ, Luk. 23.34. Then said Jesus, Fa­ther forgive them, for they know not what they do. Eph. 3.14. For th [...]s cause I bow my knees unto the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ. 1 Cor. 8.6. To us there is but one God, the Father, of whom are all things and we in Him. Joh. 17.5. And now, O Father, glorifie thou me with thine own self, with the glory which I had with thee before the World was, Joh. 3.16. For God so loved the World that he gave his only begotten Son: That whosoever believeth in him, should not perish, but have everlasting life, Joh. 20.17. Jesus saith unto her, Touch me not: For I am not yet ascended to my Father.

Thirdly, That Jesus Christ is God, the Eternal Son of God, and did prae-exist in the form or Essence of God (having all the pro­perties of the Deity) before his Incarnation, which was effected by voluntary actings of his own, which could not be without a prae-ex­istence in another Nature. Let us consider the Divine Testimo­nies whereby this truth is confirmed and established, Psal. 45.6. Thy Throne O God is for ever and ever: The Scepter of thy Kingdom is a right Scepter. This is applied unto Christ, Heb. 1.8. But unto [Page 20] the Son he saith, Thy Throne, O God, is for ever and ever, &c. Psal. 102.25, 26, 27. Of old thou hast laid the Foundation of the Earth: and the Heavens are the work of thy hands. They shall perish, but thou shalt endure; yea, all of them shall wax old like a Garment: as a Vesture shalt thou change them, and they shall be changed, But thou art the same and thy years shall have no end. This is declared by the Apostle to be meant of the Son of God, Heb. 1.10. And, Thou Lord in the beginning hast laid the Foundation of the Earth: And the Heavens are the works of thine hands, &c. Prov. 8. from the [...]2. to the 31. The Lord possessed me in the beginning of his way, be­fore his works of old. I was set up from everlasting, from the begin­ning, or ever the Earth was. When there were no depths, I was brought forth: When there were no Fountains abounding with Water. Before the Mountains were setled; before the Hills, was I brought forth. He is called the only begotten Son of God, Joh. 1.14. Angels and Adam were the Sons of God by Creation. The Worshippers of the true God, are called the Sons of God by profession, Gen. 6 1. All true Believers are his Chil­dren by Adoption, Joh. 1.12. But Christ is the Son of God by Nature, by Eternal Generation. Whilst as yet he had not made the Earth, nor the Fields, nor the highest part of the dust of the World. When he prepared the Heavens, I was there: When he set a compass upon the face of the Depth. When he established the Clouds above: When he strengthened the Fountains of the Deep: When he gave to the Sea his Decree, that the Waters should not pass his Commandment: When he appointed the Foundations of the Earth: Then I was by him, as one brought up with him: And I was daily his delight, rejoycing always before him: Isai. 9.6. For unto us a Child is born, unto us a Son is given, and the Government shall be upon his shoulder: And his Name shall be called, Wonderful, Counsellour, The mighty God, The everlasting Father, The Prince of peace, Jer. 23.5, 6. Behold, the days come, saith the Lord, that I will raise unto David a righteous branch, and a King shall reign and prosper, and shall execute Judgment and Justice in the Earth. In his days Judah shall be saved, and Israel shall dwell safely: And this is his Name whereby he shall be called, The Lord our Righteousness. Joh. 1. v. 1. In the beginning was the Word, and the Word was with God, and the Word was God, v. 2. The same was in the beginning with God, v. 3. All things were made by him, and without him was not any thing made that was made, v. 14. And the Word was made Flesh, and dwelt among us (and we beheld his glory, the glory as of the only [Page 21] begotten of the Father) full of grace and truth, v. 18. No man hath seen God at any time; the only begotten, which is in the bosom of the Father, he hath declared him, Joh. 3.13. And no man hath ascended up to Heaven, but he that came down from Heaven, even the Son of man which is in Heaven, Act. 20.28. Take heed therefore unto your selves, and to all the Flock, over the which the Holy Ghost hath made you Overseers, to feed the Church of God, which he hath purchased with his own blood, Rom. 9.5. Whose are the Fathers, and of whom as concerning the Flesh Christ came, who is over all, God blessed for ever, Amen. Col. 1.15. Who is the Image of the invisible God, the first born As being from all Eternity be­gotten of the Father before any Creature was made or created, and so Lord, and Heir of all the Creatures, as the First-born was among his Brethren, Gen. 49.3. of every Creature. v. 16. For by him were all things Created that are in Heaven, and that are in Earth, visible and invisible, whether they be Thrones, or Dominions, or Principalities, or Powers: All things were created by him, and for him, v. 17. And he is before all things, and by him all things consist, 1 Tim. 3.16. And without controversie, great is the Mystery of godliness: God was manifest in the Flesh, justified in the Spirit, seen of Angels, preached unto the Gentiles, believed on in the World, received up into Glory. 1 Joh. 5.20. And we know that the Son of God is come, and hath given us an understanding, that we may know him that is true: And we are in him that is true, even in his Son Jesus Christ. This is the true God and Eternal life. And thus much of the Divine Testimo­nies that prove that Christ is God.

The Socinians indeed acknowledge that Christ is God, but they say he is not so by Nature, but by Office. They say He is not the most high Eternal God. This therefore we shall labour to prove by several arguments.

First, He had a Personal prae-existence unto the whole Creation. And nothing can prae-existQuod ante om­nem crea­turam suis­se dicitur simpliciter aeterrum est. Gloss. to all Creatures but in the Nature of God, which is Eternal. In the beginning the Word was God, and so continues unto Eternity. Joh. 1. [...] In the beginning was the Word, and the Word was with God, and the Word was God. Yet he was so God that he was distinct in something from God the Father, by whom afterwards he was sent into the World. The Word was with God, and so distinct from him, and was God, and so one with him. And he was so from the beginning, before the Creation, that he made all things, even the World, viz. All things in Hea­ven and Earth. To which we may add our Saviours own Words, [Page 22] Joh. 17.5. And now O Father glorifie thou me with the glory I had with thee before the World was.

Secondly, Let us consider this, All the ways whereby we can come to know God are either by his Name, or his Properties, or his Works, or the Divine worship given unto him. Now all these belong to the Son. He therefore is God, or we cannot tell either who, or what God is. And

First, The proper Name of God (viz. Jehovah) is given to Him, Jer. 23.6. This is his Name whereby he shall be called, The Lord our righteousness. And Rom. 9.5. He is called The most high God, who is over all, God blessed for evermore. A Title peculiar to the most high God.

Secondly, Divine Properties are ascribed to him, and such Di­vine excellencies as naturally and necessarily appertain to the Divine Nature. Particularly these Four,

First, Eternity, Joh. 1.1, 2. In the beginning was the Word. [...]. Sic Mos He­braeis aeter­nitatem populariter exprimare. Grot. In the beginning when the World began to be created then was He. And so Prov. 8.23, 24. I was set up from everlasting, from the be­ginning, or ever the Earth was; when there was no depths, I was brought forth. The Essential Wisdom of the Father was from ever­lasting, Col. 1.17. He was before all things, viz. All things created, And Revel. 1.8. I am Alpha and Omega, the beginning, and the end, saith the Lord, which is, and which was, and which is to come, the Almighty. That this place is meant of Christ may appear by comparing with it, Chap. 2.6. & 22.13. of this Book.

Secondly, Omnipresence, Mat. 18.20. Where two or three are met together in my Name (says our Saviour,) there am I in the midst of them, viz. By my Eternal Spirit, Joh. 3.13. No man hath ascended up to Heaven, but he that came down from Heaven, even the Son of man, which is in Heaven. And Mat. 28.20. And so I am with you always even to the end of the World.

Thirdly, Omnipotency. Philip. 3.8. 'Tis said of Christ, that He shall change our vile bodies, and make them like to his own glorious body, according to the mighty working whereby He is able to subdue all things unto himself. Joh. 1.3. All things were made by him and without him was not any thing made, that was made, Heb. 1.10. And thou Lord in the beginning hast laid the Foundation of the Earth, and the Heavens are the works of thine hands.

Fourthly, Omniscience. Joh. 21.17. Lord thou knowest all things, says Peter. And Joh. 2.25. 'Tis said of our Saviour, that He [Page 23] needed not that any should testifie of man, for he knew what was in man. De ani­mis homi­num certo judicare solius est Dei.

Thirdly, Divine actions or works are ascribed to him. As

1. Creation, Joh. 1.3. All things were made by him. So that there must needs be granted unto Christ a prae-existence in his Divine Nature antecedent to his Incarnation.

2. Providence, Heb. 1.3. He upholdeth all things by the Word of his power, And Col. 1.17. He is before all things and by him all things consist. He is not only before all Creatures, and their Crea­tor, but together (with the Father and the Holy Ghost) their Up-holder, powerfull Preserver and Governour.

Fourthly, Divine Worship is given to him. Heb. 1.6. Let all the Angels of God worship him. The Angels themselves refused Di­vine Worship, Rev. 19.10. See thou do it not (says the Angel there) that is, See thou do not worship me, I am thy fellow Crea­ture, Joh. 14.1. You believe in God (says our Saviour) believe also in me. Now to be believed in, and rested on, is an honour or homage peculiar unto God alone. Indeed the Socinians say that though Christ be not the most High God; yet, he ought to be wor­shipped with Divine and Religious worship. But surely they do not well consider, that only Divine and Essential excellencies are the formal Object of Divine and Religious worship, and to give such a worship to one that is not God by Nature, is plain Idolatry. Where the Divine Nature is, there is the true, proper, formal Object of Religious worship; and where that is not, it is Idolatry to ascribe it to, or exercise it to­wards any other. So that if the Word and Testimony of God be able to decide a difference among the Children of men, I see not but that the Testimony given to the God-head of the Son, are as clear and unquestionable as those which are given concerning the Deity of the Father. And thus we have spoken to the Third thing, viz. That Jesus Christ is God.

Fourthly, It is delivered to us by Divine Revelation that the Holy Ghost is God. This will plainly appear if we consider what is revealed to us concerning the Divine existence, the Divine excel­lencies, and the Divine Operations of this blessed Spirit.

Such things are ascribed to him in the Scriptures which do un­controlably evidence him to be a voluntary Divine Agent, an Eter­nal Divine existing substance, a Person or intelligent subsistence, the Author of Divine Operations, and the Object of Divine and Reli­gious [Page 24] worship. There are some that hold he is a meer emanation of virtue or power from God and not a Person. Others grant indeed his Personality, and that he is a distinct self-subsisting Person, but de­ny his Deity; they deny him to be a participant of the Divine Na­ture. A Created, finite Spirit they will allow him to be, and the chiefest of all Spirits that were created, and the Head of all the good Angels. But they will not allow him to be a Divine Person. We shall therefore endeavour to prove from plain Testimonies of Scripture,

1. That he is not a meer emanation of virtue or power from God, but an intelligent subsistence, or Person.

2. A Divine Person.

3. A Person distinct from the Father and the Son.

4. A Person proceeding from the Father and the Son.

First, It will appear, he is a Person because he is endued with Perso­nal properties, and Personal actions (such as are peculiar and proper to a person) are Attributed to him. As namely,

1. To make intercession. Rom. 8.26. The Spirit also helpeth our infirmities. For we know not how to pray as we ought, but the Spirit maketh intercession for us, v. 27. And he that searcheth the hearts, know­eth what is the mind of the Spirit, because he maketh intercession for the Saints according to the will of God.

2. To come to men, being sent to them, Job. 15.26. But when the Comforter is come, whom I will send unto you from the Father, even the Spirit of Truth, which proceedeth from the Father, he shall te [...]tifie of me.

3. Our Saviour says, He shall receive of mine, (That is communi­cate no­thing to them b [...] what t [...]y r [...]c [...]iv d from him) and shew it unto you, Joh. 16.14. which is a personal action.

4. He is such an one against whom a sin may be committed, and therefore surely he is a person. Matth. 12.31. Wherefore I say unto you, all manner of sin and blasphemy shall be forgiven unto men: but the blasphemy against the Holy Ghost, shall not be forgiven unto men.

5. His appearing in and under a visible sign argues his Perso­nal existence. This is related, Matt. 3.16. And Jesus when he was Baptised went up strait way out of the water: and lo, the Hea­vens were opened unto him, and he saw the Spirit of God descending like a Dove, and lighting upon him. He took the form or shape of a Dove, and nothing but a Person can assume a shape wherein to appear.

6. He is placed in the same rank and order with other Divine Persons, and is set forth as the proper Object of Divine and Religious Worship, Matth. 28.19. Go ye therefore and teach all Nations, Bap­tizing them in the Name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost.

7. To him is ascribed Ʋnderstanding, 1 Cor. 2.10. The Spirit searcheth all things, yea, the deep things of God. Searching is a Perso­nal action and undeniably argues him to be an understanding Agent.

8. To him is ascribed Will; Ʋnderstanding and Will are most eminently distinstuishing Characters of a Person, 1 Cor. 12.11. But all these things worketh that one and the self same Spirit, dividing to every one as he will.

9. He is said to teach, Luk. 12.12. For the Holy Ghost shall teach you in the same hour what ye ought to say. Joh. 14.26. But the Comforter, which is the Holy Ghost, whom the Father will send in my Name, he shall teach you all things, and bring all things to your remembrance, whatsoever I have said unto you. And those that pretend to be Teachers of others, and neither seek nor regard his guidance or assistance had need consider what they do.

10. He calls men to the Ministry, Act. 13.2, 3, 4, And the Holy Ghost said, Separate unto me Barnabas and Saul for the work whereun­to I have called them. Act. 20.28. Take heed therefore unto yourselves, and to all the Flock, over which the Holy Ghost hath made you Over­seers, to feed the Church of God which he hath purchased with his blood.

11. He is spoken of as the Object of such actings and actions of men as none but a Person can be the Object of. Thus he is said to be tempted or provoked, Acts 5.9. Then Peter said unto her, How is it that ye have agreed together, to tempt the Spirit of the Lord? He is said to be resisted, Act. 7.51. Ye stiff-necked and uncircum­cised in heart and ears, ye do always resist the Holy Ghost: as your Fa­thers did, so do ye. He is said to be grieved, Eph. 4.30. And grieve not the Holy Spirit of God whereby ye are sealed unto the day of Redemption. Compare this with Isa. 63, 10. But they rebelled, and vexed his holy Spi­rit: therefore he was turned to be their enemy, and he fought against them. Now to be tempted, provoked, gresisted, rieved, (though impro­perly spoken of God,) yet are such affections as a quality is not ca­pable of. And these expressions declare what effects they would produce in a Nature capable of such Affections. And so much of the first particular, the Holy Ghost is a Person.

Secondly, He is not a Created but an Eternal Divine Person, having one and the same Divine Nature with the Father and the Son; and so is truly and properly God. This I shall prove by these Arguments.

1. He is expresly called God. Act. 5, 4, 9. Then Peter said un­to her, H [...]w is it that ye have agreed together to tempt the Spirit of the L [...]rd? You have n [...] lyed unto men but unto God.

2. Divine Properties are attributed to him, which none can be endu [...]d with to whom the Divine Nature belongs not, and which [...]vi [...] [...] d [...]l [...]re him to be the most High God; Such are first Eter­nity, Heb. 9.14. How much more shall the blood of Christ, who through the Eternal [...]pirit, offered himself without spot to God, purge your consciences from dead works to serve the living God? Secondly, Immensity, Psal. 139.7. Whither shall I go from thy Spirit? Or whither shall I flee from thy presence. Thirdly, Praescience, Act. 1.16. Men and B [...]eth [...]e [...], This Scripture must needs be fulfilled, which the Holy Ghost by the mouth of David spake before concerning Judas, which was guide to them that took Jesus. Fourthly, Omniscience, 1 Cor. 2.10.11. But God hath revealed them unto us by his Spirit, for the Spirit searcheth all things, yea, the deep things of God. For what man knoweth the things of a man, save the Spirit of man which is in him? Even so the things of God knoweth no man, but the Spirit of God.

Thirdly, Divine Works are ascribed to him, and which are only proper to God. Such as are Creation, Job 33.4. The Spirit of God hath made me. And the working of Miracles, Matth. 12.28. If I by the Spirit of God cast out Devils, then the Kingdom of God is come unto y [...]u And thus we have proved that the Holy Ghost is a Divine P [...]rs [...]n.

3. He is a Person distinct from the Father and the Son; I will pray the Father, and he shall give you another Comforter, saith our [...]viour to his Disciples, Joh. 14.16. Now the Person sending, and the Person sent must need be distinct the one from the other. And this same reason also proves the Son and the Holy Ghost to be two distinct Persons, b [...]c [...]use the Holy Ghost is also sent by the Son. Joh. 15.26. But when the Comforter is come, whom I will send unto you from the Father, even the Spirit of Truth, which proceedeth from the Fa­ther, he shall testifie of me. Joh. 16.7. Nevertheless, I tell you the truth, it is expedient for you that I go away: for if I go not away, the Com­forter will not come unto y [...]u: but if I depart, I will send him unto you.

4. He is a Person pr [...]ceeding from the Father and the Son. The [Page 27] Father proceeded from none, the Son from the Father, the Holy Ghost from both. First, from the Father, Joh. 15.26. The Spirit of truth which proceeds from the Father. Secondly, From the Son: For he is called the Spirit of the Son, Gal. 4.6. Because ye are Sons, God hath sent forth the Spirit of his Son into your hearts, crying Abba Father, Rom. 8.9. Now if any man have not the Spirit of Christ, he his none of his.

Thus we have proved that there is but one God, and yet Three distinct Persons or Hypostases distinctly subsisting in the same Divine Essence or [...]eing. Now a Divine Person is nothing but the Divine Essence considered with an especial property, and subsisting in an espe­cial manner. As in the Person of the Father there is the Divine Essence with its especial Properties of begetting the Son, and sub­sisting in an especial manner as the Father. And because this Per­son hath the whole Divine Nature, all the Essential Properties of that Nature are in that Person. The like may be said of the Persons of the Son and Holy Ghost. Each Person having the understanding, will, and power of God, becomes a distinct intelligent, voluntary, Omnipotent Agent or principle of Operation. These Di­vine Persons are so distinct in their peculiar subsistence In the Divine Essence th [...]re is alius not aliud & aliud. The Persons several, the Essence of all Three the same. The Persons are di­stingui [...]hed by their in­communicable Pro­perties., that distinct Actions and Operations are ascribed to them. And these actions are of two sorts; First, ad intra, Such are those internal acts in one Person whereof another Divine Person is the Object. And these acts ad invicem or ad intra are natural, necessary, and insepara­ble from the Being, Existence, and Blessedness of God. Thus the Father knoweth the Son and loveth him; and the Son knoweth and loveth the Father. In these mutual actings one Person is the Object of the knowledge and love of the other, Joh. 3.35. The Father loveth the Son, and hath given all things into his hand. Matth. 11.27. All things are delivered unto me of my Father: And no man knoweth the Son but the Father: Neither knoweth any man the Father, save the Son, and he to whomsoever the Son will reveal him. This mutual knowledge and love of the Father and Son we find expressed, Prov. 8.30. I was daily his de­light, rejoicing always before him. And in these mutual internal actings consists much of the ineffable blessedness of the Holy G [...]d.

Secondly, There are distinct actions of these Divine Persons ad extra which are voluntary effects of will and choice, and not [Page 28] natural or necessary. And these are likewise of two sorts.

1. Such as respect one another; for there are external acts of one Person towards another; but then the Person that is the Object of these actings, is not considered absolutely as a Divine Person, but with respect to some peculiar dispensation, or condescention which he voluntarily submitted unto. Thus the Father gives, sends, commands the Son, he having condescended to take our Nature on him, and to be Mediator between God and man. Thus the Father and the Son do send the Spirit, he having condescended in an espe­cial manner to the Office of being the Sanctifier and Comforter of the Church. Now these are free and voluntary acts depending upon the Soveraign Will, Counsel, and Pleasure of God, and might not have been, without any the least diminution of his Eternal blessed­ness. Secondly, Such as have respect and reference to the Creatures; of which some are ascribed peculiarly to the Father, some to the Son, and some to the Holy Ghost. Though these works ad extra be common to all Three; yet, the manner of working is proper to each Person. Thus Creation is attributed to the Fa­ther, Eph. 9.14, 15. Redemption to the Son. Eph. 1.7. Sanctification to the Holy Ghost, Tit. 3.5. Every Person doth work, S [...]cundum distinctam rationem suae subsistentiae, according to the distinct manner of his Personal s [...]bsistence. Yet all their actings ad extra towards the Creatures, being the actings of God, are undivided, and are all the works of one and the same God,

Having thus far explained the Doctrine of the Holy Trinity, and I hope sutably to the Revelation made of it in the Scriptures; I shall now lay down some Rules or Propositions for the further un­derstanding of it.

First, Each Person hath its own substance; for the one substance of the Deity is the substance of each Person, and so is still but one. But each Person hath not its own distinct substance (separate from the substance of the other Persons) because the substance of them all is the same. Where therefore Christ as the Son is said to be ano­ther from the Father, (or from God spoken of Personally as the Fa­ther) it argues not in the least, that he is not partaker of the Di­vine Nature with him. 'Tis true, in one Essence there can be but one Person, where the substance is finite and limited, but it hath no place in that which is infinite.

Secondly, Each Person is infinite as he is God. For all Divine Properties belong not to the Persons on the account of their Perso­nality, but on the account of their Divine Nature which is one; for they are all Natural Properties. And therefore as the Na­ture of each Person is infinite, so is each Person because of that Nature.

Thirdly, The only true God is Father, Son, and Holy Ghost. But when we say the Father is the only true God, we respect not his Paternity, or Paternal relation to his Son, but his Divine Nature, Essence, or Being. And the like may be said of the Son, that He is the onely true God; and so of the Holy Ghost. For the Divine Nature though absolutely singular and one, yet is communicated to more, and hath a larger signification then either the Term Father, Son, or Holy Ghost. So that though each Person be the only true God, it does not follow that one Person must be another; namely, that the Father must be the Son, or the Son the Father. For though the Father be the only true God, yet it does not follow that every one who is the true God is the Father. For the Son is the only true God, and so is the Holy Ghost, because they are equally participant of the Divine Nature. But to say, whoever is the only true God is the Father, is false.

Fourthly, Distinction, and inequality in respect of Office, in Christ and the Holy Ghost, does not in the least take away equality and sameness with the Father in respect of Nature, and Essence, Phi. 2.6, 7, 8. Christ Jesus being in the form of God, thought it no robbery to be equal with God; yet made himself of no reputation, and took upon him the form of a Servant, and was made in the likeness of men. And being found in fashion as a man, he humbled himself, and became obedient unto death, even the death of the Cross.

Fifthly, The advancement, and exaltation of Christ as Mediator to any Dignity whatsoever, upon or in reference to the works of our Redemption and Salvation, is not at all inconsistent with the Essen­tial honour and Dignity which he hath in himself as God blessed for ever. Though he humbled himself and was exalted as to his Office, yet in Nature he was one and the same, he changed not.

Sixthly, Gods working in and by Christ as he was Mediator, de­notes the Fathers Soveraign appointment of the things mentioned to be done. Not his immediate efficiency in the doing of them.

Seventhly, That must be remembred which Zophar says, Job 11. [Page 30] 7. We cannot by searching find out God, we cannot find out the Al­mighty to perfection.

Some things may be above the compre­hension of reason Observe the words of a learned man Dr. H. in his Comment on the Creed p. 20. I thank God I can say with a very good Conscience that I b lieve the Doctrine of the Holy Trinity, according to the Catholick Tradition of the Church of Christ; yet I confess withall (such is the weakness of my understanding) that I am utterly unable (and indeed who is not?) To look into the de [...]th of so great a Mysterie; and cannot bu [...] cry out [...] (as the Apostle did in another case) O the unsearchableness! O the depth of this Heavenly Oeconomy. in matters of so high a Nature, I be­lieve more then I am able to understand, the gift of Faith supplying the defects of my understanding. as considered in this or that man, which are not all absolutely against it. We grant that nothing contra­ry to the reason of things must be admit­ted. But reason as it is in this or that man may be very weak, and imperfect, and very short of a ju [...]t and a full comprehension of the whole reason of things. Therefore that is no fit measure to try this Divine Do­ctrine by. Certainly it is the highest rea­son, that in things of p [...]rely Divine Reve­lation, we should captivate our understan­dings to the Authority of the Revelator. Let us therefore earnestly pray unto God that it may be given unto us to know the Mysteries of his Kingdom. The Apostle Peter knew Christ to be the Eternal Son of God (which is a part of this Mystery of the Trinity) and our Saviour tells him, Matth. 16.16, 17. That Flesh and Blood had not revealed it unto him, but his Father. A man ought not presently to desert his perswasion grounded upon Scripture, because he cannot answer every Objecti­on that the subtil Wit of man can make against it. For though this or that private Person may not be able to Answer such Objecti­ons; yet others (more learned and knowing) may easily do it, and to them he ought to betake himself for satisfaction. Thus I have shewed what is the Original Declaration, or Revelation of this Doctrine of the Holy Trinity contained in the Scripture, and how the same is explained by Pious and Learned men very sutably to that Revelation. And it will not be amiss to give my Reader these two further directions. First, If at any he be attaqued by any adver­sary of this Divine doctrin, I advise him in the first place to hold him strictly and peremtorily to the Original revelation, and to put him to disprove (if he can) that God is one, that the Father is God, the Son God, the Holy Gh [...]st God, understanding by God the most High God, Soveraign of all the World. If he cannot do this (as you may see by the Testimonies forecited he cannot with any shew of reason do) then [Page 31] suffer him not to quarrel at the explanation, and fall foully (as their manner is) upon the terms Trinity and Personality, and such like ex­pressions, which though they be not literally a [...]d syllabically found in the Scriptures, yet are agreeable to the Original Revelation of this Doctrine therein contained and fairly Expolitory thereof.

And having given this hint or admonition (which I think very needfull at this time) let me in the closing up of this Discourse advise all those that have any true desire to walk in the narrow path of Truth and Holiness (which leads to everlasting bliss) to la­bour in the first place judiciously to understand this Sacred Doctrine according to the Original Revelation thereof, made in the Scri­ptures. When this is done, the explanation thereof (as we have here delivered it) will not seem harsh to them, nor to contain any thing unsuitable to that Revelation. And let me add this one word more, that I fear the failing of so many mens profession (as we have seen of late years) has begun with their relinquishing this Foundation. This has been the fatal miscarriage of those poor de­luded Souls called Quakers, and I am afraid of some others more learned than they. If they could be brought to a right understan­ding of this Doctrine of the blessed Trinity as 'tis in the Scripture revealed, I suppose their other fond imaginations would quickly vanish, and come to nothing.

SECT. III. Of the Works of God.

I Have spoken of the Nature of God,Maker of Hea­ven and Earth. and his glorious Attri­butes, and of the Trinity of Persons in the Ʋnity of the Di­vine Nature. I come now to speak of his works, Viz.

  • Creation.
  • Providence.

And First of Creation.

The Apostle Heb. 11.3.Of Crea­tion. tells us that by Faith we understand that the Worlds (namely the inferior, middle and superior, as the Jews were wont to distinguish them) and all the Creatures in them, were made and framed by the Word of God. And certainly [Page 32] this goodly Fabrick of Heaven and Earth was not from Eternity, (as Aristotle that great Philosopher, destitute of Scripture-light, was inclin'd to believe,) but was created and made at that time when it seemed best to the infinite Wisdom of God. And the special Mo­tives (as we may humbly conceive) which inclined him to make it, were a desire and purpose to express his infinite Power, to de­clare his transcendent Wisdom, and Goodness, and to exercise his all-wise Providence; all conducing to the manifestation of his own glory and praise.

Some Creatures he made immediately out of nothing (as the ter­minus a quo) by a proper Creation, giving them a reall being which before they had not. Other things he made out of some prae-existent matter, (which matter he had before made out of no­thing) by a mediate and improper kind of Creation. As he made Adams body out of the dust of the earth,The re­membrance of this should be an Antidote against Pride in all his Posterity. Abraham Gen. 18.27. acknowledges himself but dust and ashes, cum sis humillimus, cur non es humillimus, says Bernard. and Eves of Adams Ribb.

When Solomon was to build a Magnificent Temple for God, he needed many Materials,Ex ni­hilo nihil fit, id est, Physice & a Creaturis. Sod non va [...]t re­gula si in­telligatur i [...] Deo. and many Workmen, and they many Tools: But God did not so. He made all without any Coadjutor, or any Instrument, by the sole word of his command. And when he looked upon every thing he had made, behold all was very good, Neh. 9.6. Thou even thou art Lord alone, thou hast made Heaven, the Heaven of Heavens with all their Host, the Earth and all things that are therein, the Sea and all that is therein, and thou preserved them all and the Host of Heaven worshippeth thee. Colos. 1.16. For by him were all things created that are in Heaven, and that are in Earth visible and invisible, whether they be Thrones or Dominions, or Principalities, or Powers: All things were created by him and for him. Rev. 4.11. Thou art worthy O Lord to receive glory and honour and power; for thou hast created all things, and for thy pleasure they are and were created.

The chief of the Creatures God created were

  • Angels and
  • Men.

All the Angels were at first made holy and happy Spirits. Some of them continued in their obedience to God, and are still Angels [Page 33] of light; others of them fell from God by pride and disobedience and are become Devils of darkness.

First, I shall speak of the good Angels, Of good Angels. and then of the Angels that fell. There are Four things the Scripture holds forth to us concerning good Angels.

  • 1. Their Number.
  • 2. Their Titles.
  • 3. Their Nature and Properties.
  • 4. Their Functions and Ministery.

First, Their Number. The Scripture teaches us that they are very many, Dan. 7.10. A fiery stream issued and came forth from before him, Thousand Thousands ministred unto him, and Ten Thousand times Ten Thousands stood before him; the Judgment was set and the Book was opened. Rev. 5 11. And I beheld and heard the voice of many Angels round about the Throne and the Beasts, and the Elders, and the Number of them was Ten Thousand times Ten Thousand, and Thousands of Thousands. Matth. 26.53. Thinkest thou that I cannot now pray to my Father, and he shall presently send me more then Twelve Legions of Angels. Heb. 12.22. But ye are now come unto Mount Sion and unto the City of the living God, the Heavenly Jerusalem and to an in­numerable company of Angels. Psal. 68.17. The Chariots of God are Twenty Thousand, even Thousands of Angels; 2 Kings 6.17. And Elisha prayed, and the Lord opened the Eyes of the young man, and he saw the Mountain was full of Horses, and Chariots of Fire round about Elisha; that is, that a great multitude of Angels were sent from God to defend and protect the Prophet.

Secondly, Their Titles. Their general name is Angels or Messen­gers. Sometimes they are called Cherubim, and when they ap­peared in a visible shape or were pictured, they had the resem­blance of a young man in the excellency of his beauty, vigor and strength, and had Wings, as we read, Exod. 25.18, 20. Sometimes they are called Seraphim, importing their fervent Zeal in execu­ting the will of God.

Sometimes Sons of God, Job. 38.7. When the morning Stars sang together, and all the Sons of God shouted for joy.

Sometimes, Thrones, Dominions, Principalities, Powers, as we read, Col. 1.16. And so much of their Titles.

Thirdly, Their Natures and Properties.

1. They are Spirits of great Knowledge and Wisdom. 'Twas [Page 34] said of David, 2 Sam. 14.20. That he was wise, according to the Wisdom of an Angel of God. They are admirable in knowledge both natural, experimental and revealed.

2. Of spotless purity and integrity. Our Saviour says, Mark. 8.38. Whosoever shall be ashamed [...]f me and of my words, in the adul­terous and sinfull Generation, of him shall the Son of man be ashamed, when he cometh in the glory of his Father with the Holy Angels. When they appear'd to the World, their garb (wherein they ap­pear'd) represented their innocency. As at Christ's Sepulchre there appeared two Angels in white, the one sitting at the Head, the other at the Feet, where the body of Jesus had lain, Joh. 20.12.

3. Of exceeding great power and strength, Psal. 103.20. Bless the Lord, ye his Angels that excel in strength.

4. Of great celerity and quickness of motion, in which respect they are said to have wings, Isai. 6.2. Above it stood the Seraphims: each one had six wings; importing their chearfulness and readiness and celerity in the service of God.

Fourthly, Their Function and Ministry; which is of Three sorts,

  • 1. In reference to God.
  • 2. In reference to Christ.
  • 3. To the Saints and People of God.

I In reference to God.

1. They attend his glorious presence. They are his chief Ser­vants and principal attendants, the bright Courtiers of Heaven. They are called the Host of Heaven, 1 Kings 22.19. They are cal­led the Chariots of God, viz. Such as attend him, for his service, Psal. 68.17. The Chariots of God are twenty Thousand, even Thousands of Angels.

2. They are especiall Instruments to praise and magnifie him. Rev. 7.11, 12. And all the Angels stoood round about the Throne and fell before the Throne on their faces and w [...]rshipped God, saying, Blessing and glory and wisdom and thanksgiving and honour and power and might be unto our God for ever and ever, Amen.

3. They are Messengers to carry and reveal his mind and will. By the glorious ministry and proclamation of Angels, God deli­vered his Law on Mount Sinai. Act. 7.53. Compared with Gal. 3.19. Christ the Head of Angels proclaimed his Law by the voice of an Angel, as a Herald in presence of the King publishes his [Page 35] Proclamations. And so on sundry other occasions God used to make known his will by Angels, Dan. 9.21. Whiles I was speak­ing in prayer, says Daniel, the man Gabriel, (whom I had seen in the Vision at the beginning) being caused to fly swiftly, touched me about the time of the evening Oblation. And Luk. 1.11. There appeared unto Zacharias an Angel of the Lord, standing on the right side of the Altar of Incense, and said unto him, I am Gabriel, that stand in the presence of God: And am sent to speak unto thee, and to shew thee these glad tidings. And v. 26. in the Sixth Month, the Angel Gabriel was sent from God, unto a City of Galilee name Nazareth to the Virgin Mary. And Luke 2.9, 10. An Angel was sent to the Shepherds keeping watch over their Flock, by Night to bring the joyful tidings of the Birth of the Messias.

4. They are Ministers to execute and perform what God will have done in the World, Psal. 103.20. Bless the Lord, ye his An­gels that excel in strength, that do his Comma [...]dments: They bring Lot out of Sodom, Gen. 19.1. They bring Israel out of Egypt, Numb. 20.16. They stop Balaams course, Numb. 22.22. They stop the Lyons Mouths, Dan. 6.20, 22. They execute the Judg­ments of God upon wicked men. Thus we read how Two Angels destroyed Sodom; and that an Angel defeated the Host of Senna­cherib, 2 Kings 19.35. And that an Angel smote bloody perse­cuting Herod, Acts 12.33.

And thus much of their Ministry in reference to God. I come now to consider.

II. Their Ministry in reference to Christ. 'Tis said Joh. 1.51. That the Angels ascend and descend on the Son of man: That place has re­lation to Gen. 28.12. Where Jacob dreamed of a Ladder set upon the earth, whose to preached to Heaven; and the Angels of the Lord ascended and descended on it: by the Ladder Christ is meant, who by his humane Nature touched the Earth, and whose Divine Nature reached up to Heaven. The Angels ascending and descending im­ported the continual service they are re [...]dy to perform unto him; and that they are deputed thereunto of the Father, as the Apostle proves, Heb. 1.6. When he bringeth his first begotten into the World, he saith, Let all the Angels of God worship him.

But to d [...]scend to Particulars.

1. They foretell his conception, Luke 1.30, 3 [...]. And the An­gel said unto her, fear not M [...]ry; for thou hast found favour with [Page 36] God. And shalt conceive in thy Womb; and bring forth a Son, and shalt call his name Jesus.

2. They declare his Birth, Luke 2.9, 10, 11. And lo, the An­gel of the Lord came upon them, and the glory of the Lord shone round about them and they were sore afraid. And the Angel of the Lord said unto them, fear not: for behold, I bring you good tidings of great joy, which shall be to all People. For unto you is born this day in the City of David, a Saviour, which is Christ the Lord.

3. They prevent danger to him from Herod, Matth. 2.13, 14. And the Angel of the Lord appeareth to Joseph in a dream, saying, arise, and take the young Child, and his Mother, and flee into Egypt, and be thou there untill I bring thee word: For Herod will seek the young Child to destroy him. And he arose, and took the young Child and his Mother by Night, and departed into Egypt.

4. They minister to him in his temptations, Mark 1.13. And he was there in the Wilderness Forty days tempted of Satan, and was with the wild Beasts, and the Angels ministred unto him.

5. They comfort him in his agony, Luke 22.43. And there appeared an Angel from Heaven, strengthening him.

6. They open his Grave at his Resurrection, Matth. 28.2. And behold there was a great Earth-quake, for the Angel of the Lord de­scended from Heaven, and came and rolled back the stone from the door, and sate upon it.

7. They witness his Resurrection to them that looked for him, Luke 24.5, 6. And as they were afraid and bowed down their face to the Earth, two men in shining Garments said unto them, why seek ye the living among the dead? He is not here but is risen, re­member how he spake unto you when he was yet in Galilee. Vers. 23. And when the Women found not his body; they came saying that they also had seen a Vision of Angels, which said that he was a­live.

8. They attend and attest his Ascension, Acts. 1.10, 11. And while they looked stedfastly towards Heaven, as he went up, behold Two men stood by them in white apparel; which also said: Ye men of Galilee why stand ye gazing up into Heaven; this same Jesus which is taken up from you into Heaven, shall so come in like manner as ye have seen him go into Heaven.

9. They attend and magnifie him in Heaven, Rev. 5.11, 12. And I beheld and heard the voice of many Angels round about the [Page 37] Throne, and the Beasts, and the Elders, and the number of them was Ten Thousand times Ten Thousand, and Thousands of Thousands; saiyng with a loud voice, worthy is the Lamb that was slain, to receive Power, and Riches, and Wisdom, and Strength, and Honour, and Glory, and Blessing. 1 Pet. 3.22. Who is gone into Heaven, and is on the right hand of God, Angels, and Authorities, and Powers be­ing made subject unto him.

10. They reveal what he will have done on Earth, Rev. 1.1. The Revelation of Jesus Christ which God gave unto him, to shew un­to his Servants things which must shortly come to pass, and he sent and signified it by his Angels unto his servant John, Rev. 22.16. I Jesus have sent mine Angel to testifie unto you these things in the Churches.

11. They will attend him at the last judgment, Mark 8 38. Whosoever therefore shall be ashamed of me, and of my words, in this adulterous and sinfull Generation, of him shall the Son of man be ashamed when he cometh in the glory of his Father, with the holy An­gels. Matth. 25.31. When the Son of man shall come in his glory, and all the holy Angels with him, then shall he sit upon the Throne of his glory.

12. They will sever the wicked from among the just, and exe­cute Christ's righteous sentence on the ungodly, Matth. 13.49.50. So shall it be at the end of the World: The Angels shall come forth, and sever the wicked from the just, and shall cast them into the Furnace of fire, there shall be wailing and gnashing of teeth.

Thus much of their Ministery in reference to Christ. Next follows,

III. Their Ministry in relation to the Saints and People of God, Heb. 1.14. Are they not all Ministring Spirits, sent forth to Mini­ster for them, who shall be Heirs of Salvation, Matth. 18.10. Take heed that ye despise not one of these little ones; for I say unto you that in Heaven their Angels do always behold the face of my Father which is in Heaven.

They are not only ministring Spirits, but their Ministry extends to such things as are most needfull and usefull for the Saints.

1. They are appointed Guardians and Protectors of the People of God. The protection of holy [...]ngels is invisible, yet true and real, Psal. 34.7. The Angel of the Lord encampeth round about them that fear him, and delivereth them, Gen. 32.1.2, when Jacob journeyed, [Page 38] 'tis said, the Angels of God met him. An Army of Angels was his Convoy, and therefore he called the place Mahanaim, that is, Two Hosts or Armies, they appearing on either hand of him, or be­fore and behind him to secure and defend him.

The holy Angels do the People of God many more good Offices then they are aware of.

They help us against our Spiritual enemies, as the Apostle tells us, Eph. 6.12. For we wrestle not only against Flesh and Blood, but against Principalities, and P [...]wers, against the Rulers of the darkness of this World, against Spiritual wickedness in high places.

Good Angels (as 'tis probable) are more in number as well as stronger in power than the wicked, and defend the People of God against many evils, and direct them in difficult cases what to do. Dan. 6.22. My God, saith Daniel, hath sent his Angel, and hath shut the Lyons mouths that they have not hurt me. [...]en. 24.7. The Lord God of Heaven who took me from my Fathers H [...]use, and from the Land [...]f my Kindred and which spake [...]nto me saying, unto thy seed will I give this Land, he shall send his Angel before thee, and thou shalt take a Wife unto my Son from thence, saith Abraham unto his servant. Acts 16.9. A Vision appeared to Paul in the Right: There stood a man of Macedonia and prayed him, saying, Come over into Macedo­nia, and help us. Matth. 1.20. But while he thought on these things, behold, the Angel of the Lord appeared unto him in a dream, saying, Joseph thou Son of David, fear not to take unto thee Mary thy wife: for that which is conceived in her, is of the Holy Ghost.

2. 'Tis probable they suggest Holy thoughts to us. If the Devil can suggest filthy sinfull thoughts, and incite the heart to wicked­ness, surely good Angels can sugg [...]st good thoughts, and incite the heart to holiness. Christ spake of Judas that Satan had put it in­to his heart to betray him, John 13. And Peter said to Ananias, Why hath Satan filled thy heart [...] lye to the Holy Ghost. The Nature of good Angels is as fit to deal with our Spirits, as the Na­ture of evil Angels can be. That of the Apostle se [...]ms to hint, if not to prove this 2 Cor. 11.14. Where he tells the Cor [...]thians, that deceitful work [...]rs transform themselves into the Apostles of Christ; and no marve [...], for Satan himself is transformed into an A [...]gel of light, namely when he suggests good for evil ends, or evil for good ends.

3. Good Angels comfort, strengthen and support in times of distress and trouble. Thus they ministred to our Saviour after [Page 39] Satan had fiercely assaulted him with Temptations, Matth. 4.11. So like wise when he was in his agony. Luke 22.43. There appear­ed an Angel unto him from Heaven, strengthening of him. And what they did for Christ the Head, they do for his Members in measure and proportion, and as far forth as God sees good for them.

4. They convey the Souls of the departed Saints into Heaven, Luke 16.22. And it came to pass that the Begger died, and was carried by the Angels into Abrahams bosom.

And thus much of their Ministry in relation to the Saints.

There are many usefull instructions that arise from this Do­ctrine of good Angels.

1. Hereby we may see the great priviledge of the Saints of God. They have the Guardianship of the Holy Angels. Whether every Saint of God, every Heir of Heaven have a peculiar and pro­per Angel to attend him, is much disputed and canvassed by the Schoolmen. But there seems no ground in the Word of God to appropriate a single Angel to every single Saint. 'Tis surely a great­er dignity and benefit that every one of the Faithfull have many Angels appointed by the Lord for his Guard, whereof the proof is manifest from the 91 Psalm 11. For he shall give his Angels charge over thee to keep thee in all thy ways: and from 34 Psalm 7. The An­gel of the Lord, encampeth round about them that fear him, and deli­vereth them. As for that place, Acts 12.15. Where they said concerning Peter, It is his Angel, the meaning of it probably is this, they hearing the Maid persist in it that Peter was at the door, they apprehending that very unlikely, thought some Holy Angel had assum'd his shape and voice, and stood at the door in his resem­blance. But this proves not that every Saint hath a peculiar Angel Guardian. The Angels indefinitely have charge over Gods Peo­ple as God is pleased to assign th [...]m their Province, and to imploy them in that Ministry. But yet they execute this Ministry, as superiour Guides, not as inferiour Attendants. Properly they are not Servants to us, but to God for us. There is no ground for our worsh [...]ppi [...]g of them, th [...]y being our fell [...]w Creatures, Rev. 19.10 I [...]ell at his feet to worship him. But he said, See thou do it not, I am thy fellow servant, and of thy Brethren that have the Testimony of Jesus; worship God.

2. We may take notice of Gods wonderfull goodness in so gra­ciously [Page 40] providing for his Saint [...] and Servants. Lord, what is man that thou art so mindful [...] of him! Ther [...] is more in Holiness than the World doth see. The Saints have Gods Power, Christ Med [...]a­tion, t [...]e Spirits conduct, the Ministry of Angels, all ingaged for their benefit.

3. We may observe the great humility and condescention of these Holy Angels, and their great love to mankind. They re­joyc [...]d when the World was made for man, Job 38.7. They rejoyced at the coming of Christ for mans Redemption, Luke 2.13. They rejoyce at the conversion of a sinner. Luke 15.10.

4. We should labour to imitate these Holy Angels in their readiness and willing obedience to Gods will. If we would be like Angels h [...]reafter in glory and bliss, let us labour to imitate them here in a chearfull service of God.

5. Let us labour to secure our interest in Christ, that so we may be under the Protection of these Holy Angels. For they Minister only for the good of them who are Heirs of Salvation.

6. Let us take heed of depriving our selves of their help and Ministry; Pride, Lust, Vanity, are offensive to them. And so are all impurities and indecencies in Gods Worship, as the Apostle in­timates to us, 1 Cor. 11.10. Let us therefore take heed lest by any of these ways we grieve or drive from us these blessed helpers and Assistants.

Of Evil Angels.

Of Evil Angels.Having thus spoken concerning good Angels, we come now to speak concerning the Angels that fell. Concerning whom these things are to be inquired into.

  • 1. The Names and Titles by which they are set forth in the Scripture.
  • 2. Their sin.
  • 3. How they came to sin, being created pure.
  • 4. The time when they sinned.
  • 5. The number of them that sinned.
  • 6. Their nature, properties, and employment.
  • 7. Their punishment
    • Present
    • and Future.
  • 8. What instructions their fall, wickedness, and misery do af­ford unto us.

1. The Names and Titles by which they are set forth in the Scripture.

The general and comprehensive Name of evil Angels in the Scripture, is Devil [Diabolus,] wich signifies an accuser or slanderer.

He is called also the wicked One, the old Serpent, the Adversary, the roaring Lyon, the Abaddon, Appollyon, or destroyer, the great Dragon, a lyer, and the Father of lyes, a Murderer, a Murderer from the beginning, the god of this World, 2 Cor. 4.4. The Prince of the power of the Air, Eph. 2.2. The Angel of the bottom­less Pit, Satan, Rev. 12.9. The Spirit that worketh in the Children of disobedience, Eph. 2.2. The Tempter, Psal. 78.49. And Eph. 6.12. We read of evil Angels, that they are called, Principalities, Powers, Rulers of the darkness of this World, Spi­ritual wickedness in High places.

2. Let us consider what was their sin.

The greatest evidence of the Nature of their sin we find in that place of the Apostle, 1 Tim. 3.6. where he shews that a Person to be ordained should not be a Novice, lest being lifted up with Pride, he fall into Condemnation of the Devil; that is, be guilty of that sin, viz. Pride, (which young men are so prone unto) for which the Devil was Condemned and rejected of God.

Pride therefore seems to be (as I may so speak) the Original sin of those Apostate Angels. But envy, malice, slandering, &c. are their actual sins.

Yet what kind of pride it was, and how it discovered it self; is not easie to determine. Whether it was an affectation to be as high as God himself, or a seeking to be higher than God had made them, is not easie to be resolv'd. Certain it is the Temptation they spred before our first Parents was, ye shall be as Gods. Or whether they refused the Work, Office, and Ministration God design'd them un­to in reference to Men. Or whether it was too great a confidence and glorying in their own gifts, and received excellencies; or whe­ther it was an affectation of Worship from men, (as we see they now delight in it) or whether it was any other Rebellion against Gods Majesty and Empire, 'tis hard to determine. Some learned men make it a compounded sin. For as there were many sins in that sin by which Adam fell, viz. Ʋnbelief, Pride, Ingratitude, Disobe­dience; so this first sin of the Angels might be compounded of many other sins, though Pride were cheif in it. Whatever their first sin [Page 42] was, this is manifest they abode not in the truth: They kept not their first Station; they sinned against God, and by sin fell from their happiness.

3. Let us inquire how they came to sin. Being created pure: they had no lust within to incline them to it; and being in Heaven they had no Object without to draw or allure them to it; neither had they any [...]emp [...]r before one or more of their own number fell) to intice them to it. Some late Divines conceive that the great Angel [...]ow called Belzebub first fell, and then drew others by his t [...]mpta [...]ion and seducement, into the same rebellion and disobe­dience with himself. For Matth. 25.44. we read of the Devil and his Angels, and Matth. 12.24. of Belzebub, the Prince of Devils. From whence we may probably conjecture there was some Prince or Chief of the Apostate Angels, who was the Ring-leader in this faction and rebellion against God.

And if any shall further inquire how sin came into the Angels at first, all that we can say is this, They were created good yet muta­ble; and they voluntarily chose not to abide in their first estate. 'Tis Gods Prerogative only to be immutable. All Creatures, though never so pure, if not assi [...]ted by grace, are mutable, and may sin. Job 4.18. Behold he put no trust in his Servants, and his Angels he charged with folly. The Angels being mutable Creatures might fall from their righteousness, (if left to themselves) and some of them did fall, and God charged them judicially with folly for it. They were created in a blessed state, and from that, they might, and some of them did fall.

But however it was, we may assure our selves God was not the cause of their fall, by infusing any evil into them. Neither is he to be looked upon as consenting to their sin, (in that he did not hinder them from it) or in that he did not support them by his Grace. For he oweth his Grace to none, and giveth it when and to whom he pleaseth. And in the Angelical Nature as well as the hu­mane, he would discover his Justice and his Mercy, and the free­d [...]m of his dispensations.

4. Let us consider the time when they fell. How soon they fell we cannot certainly determine. 'Tis probable they fell very soon. For Joh. 8.44. Satan is called a Murderer from the beginning: and 1 Joh. 3.9. 'Tis said the Devil sinneth from the beginning; that is, soon after the Creation: That these Angels were created plainly [Page 43] appears from Col. 1.16. And probably they were created on the se­cond day, when the Heavens (the proper place of their residence) were created. 'Tis certain they sinned before Man fell; For the Devil in and by the Serpent seduced Eve, Gen. 3.1.2 Cor. 11.3.

5. Let us consider their number. 'Tis certain that the number of these Apostate Angels is very great, and that there are very ma­ny of them going up and down in the World, as may appear by this, that an whole Legion of them was in one man, Luke 8.30.Legio a­pud Roma­nos conti­nebat 12500 mi­ [...]ites, nu­m [...]rus cer­tus pro in­certo, ut ip­se Daemon explicat. But how great their number is, cannot by us be certainly deter­mined.

6. Let us consider their Nature, Properties, and Employment.

1. They are Spirits of great knowledge, cunning, and subtilty. They are subtil by Nature, and by long experience in tempting (since the beginning of the World) their subtilty is much in­creased. They can transform themselves into Angels of light. 2 Cor. 11.14. But this is observable, they never move to good, as 'tis good, but as it may have some evil consequent upon it. And fur­ther they know how to suit their temptations to the several tem­pers of men. They have much Natural, and Experimental know­ledge, so as they can discern hidden causes, and virtues, which mans reason cannot reach unto. They know how to apply actives to passives; they can guess notably at future events, but as for a certain knowledge of them (unless of such things as depend upon necessary causes, or have been some way or other made known unto them by God) that they have not. That knowledge is proper to God, and accordingly he challengeth it unto himself, Isai. 41.23. Shew things that are to come hereafter, that we may know ye are gods, says he, of the vanities and Idols of the Heathen. They are of won­derful sagacity to judge of mens hearts by their outward gestures, and carriage. In a word they are wise enough to do evil, but to do good they have no knowledge.

2. Their malice is very great. This is set forth to the life, 1 Pet. 5.8. Be sober, be vigilant, because your adversary the Devil like a roaring Lyon goes about seeking whom he may devour, whom re­sist stedfast in the Faith. His malice is so great, that he goes about doing mischief, though he knowes that he gets no good by it; nay though his punishment will be so much the greater, for the mis­chief he does.

His malice is great against all mankind, but principally against the [Page 44] Saints, and Servants of God. First, Because they bear the Image of God. Secondly, Because they (through grace) resist his temp­tations here, and shall as approvers of Christs righteous sentence, judge him hereafter, 1 Cor. 6.3.

3. They are Spirits of great Power, though it be limited by God, so that it cannot be exercised, but when, and where, and how it pleaseth him. The Devil doth exercise his power as far as he is able to the hurt of the Children of men, but especially to the hurt of the Saints obstinately endeavouring to hinder them from en­joying that happiness which he lost.

4. They are Spirits of great industry to do mischief as we may see Job 1.6.7. The Devil not only does all the outward mischief he can, but he tempts also by inward suggestions. For being a Spirit, he hath communion with our Souls and Spirits, and can dart evil thoughts into us; thus he filled the heart of Judas to betray his Lord and Master. Thus he provoked David to number the People, 1 Chron. 21.1. His temptatio [...]s are many times suddain, impetuous, im­portunate. And his suggestions may oftentimes be known from those that arise from our own corrupt hearts, by the suddenness, violence and unnaturalness of them. Those that arise from our own corrupt Natures are usually pleasing unto us. But if the te [...]ptation be against the light of Nature (as for one to kill a friend whom he dearly loves) and do fill the Soul with horror (as blasphemous thoughts do) those may be reckoned as Satans fiery Darts. For they torment the mind as poisoned Arrows do the body. And by an humble recourse to Christ for help we should labour to quench these fiery Darts. Our Saviour himself was tempted by the Devil to most hideous things, Matth. 4. And ha­ving been tempted himself he knows how to succour those that are tempted. Heb. 2.18. The Saints of God therefore should encou­rage themselves from these considerations,

1. A restraint is put on Satan in all his temptations. 1 Cor. 10.13. He cannot tempt further then God permits.

2. His temptations tend to the increase of their graces. Satans temptations increased Job's patience, Paul by Satans buffeting was humbled, 2 Cor. 12.

3. They tend to promote the fervency of their prayers.

4. Their wisdom and watchfulness will hereby be the more quickned.

5. The resisting of these temptations shall tend to the increase of their glory hereafter.

7. Let us consider their punishment

  • Present
  • and Future.

Their present punishment may be considered, first, in respect of loss.

1. Upon their sin they fell from the place of happiness, and glory which before they enjoyed, Rev. 12.8. Neither was their place found any more in Heaven. Though that place in a mystical sence may speak of the overthrowing of Satan in this present World, and casting him out of the Church, yet here is a plain allusion to Satans first fall from Heaven, as the ground of that expression, and therefore it may serve as a proof in this matter. Their place of innocency was Heaven; they stood round about the Throne of God where the Angels do continually behold his face. Their happi­ness was to enjoy God, their duty to glorifie him. From this place they are now driven into the lower parts of the World as a place more fit for sin and misery. Sometimes they fly up and down in the Air: therefore is Satan called the Prince of the Power of the Air, Eph. 2.3. And exercises the power that God permits him in the Regions of the Air, by raising Tempests, &c. Sometimes he compasseth the earth too and fro, Job. 1.7. And 2 Cor. 4.4. He is called the god of this World; that is, whom the World generally serves, and who by the just Judgment of God hath got such a Dominion over Multitudes, that they serve him as their God.

1. Their present punishment may be considered in respect of sense. They are kept in Chains. That is,

1. They are under guilt and horror of Conscience. Cehennam suam secum portant. They carry their Hell about them.

2. They are under an utter despair of deliverance; to them there remaineth nothing but a certain looking for judgment and fiery indignation.

3. Their malice, spight and power is curbed and bridled, and held in by the Almighty power of God, so that they cannot vent it as they would, which is no small vexation to them. And thus much of their present punishment, both of loss and sense.

2. Let us consider their future punishment, which at the day of Judgment will be greater than now it is. They are not yet in that [Page 46] Prison and Place of torment where they shall abide for ever under the wrath of God. They are now entered into some degrees of Hellish torments, but they are in expectation of greater. And therefore they cryed out to our Saviour, Matth. 8.31. Art thou come to torment us before our time? There is a time coming when the wrath of God shall be increased upon them. Hell is prepared for the Devil and his Angels, Matth. 25.41. Though for the present they are under Gods wrath, yet they do not taste the dregs of it. Therefore they besought our Saviour, Luke 8.31. That he would not command them into the deep; that is, the place of full and per­fect torment.

8. I come now to shew what improvement we are to make of all that hath been said.

1. Let us meditate with trembling on the fall of Angels. If they fell, how should we look to our standing? If such excellent Crea­tures fell, and fell do dreadfully, how should we look to our selves?

2. Let us observe the evil Nature of sin, especially of Pride. If Pride threw the Angels out of Heaven, and laid the foundation of Hell, we had need labour to maintain a great abhorrence in our hearts of that sin.

3. We should often consider and it should deeply affect us, that we lost our first estate as well as the Angels, we lost our Original state of holiness and happiness as well as they. As they fell soon so did we. As they fell by Pride so did we.

4. Let us meditate with astonishment on the wonderfull good­ness of God who of his infinite mercy provided a Redeemer for us, but none for them. Let us admire the freeness of Gods love to the Children of men.

5. Let us tremble at Gods Justice; Angels, Creatures of the highest excellency are not spared when they sin. O admire at his patience that he hath yet spared thee.

6. Remember the Devil and his Angels are in the World. O how watchfull ought we to be and sensible of our continual danger from those evil Spirits.

7. Let us remember that Spiritual Judgments are the most dreadfull. The Devils are given up to an obstinacy in sinning. Let us take heed of imitating them in their obstinacy and willful­ness.

8. Let us remember for our comfort that the Devil is in Chains. He had not power over an Herd of Swine without leave, Matth. 8.31. So Luke 22.31. He could not sift Peter till he had a Com­mission. He could not touch Job's Estate or Skin till he had leave; nay, he could not deceive Ahab (a wicked man) till God said, go, 1 King 22.21, 22. He is but Gods Executioner. And therefore the Psalmist shewing how God punished the disobedient Israelites, Psal. 78.49, says, He cast upon them the fierceness of his anger, wrath, and indignation, and trouble, by sending evil Angels among them.

9. Let us take heed of being of the Devils faction, or promoting his work and interest.

10. Let us resist Satan as a Tempter here in this life. As a Tormen­tor in the other life, he cannot be resisted, James 4.7. Resist the Devil and he will flee from thee.

11. Let us daily seek help from God against Satans malice and power, and humbly commit our selves to his especial protection.

12. Seeing there are so many Devils and evil Spirits in the World; this may be a mighty argument to assure us that there is a [...]od, a [...]pirit of infinite goodness and power, who restrains the malice of Satan and all his instruments; else we could never be safe one moment.

13. We should often meditate on the glorious Attributes of God. His transcendent power, his infinite wisdom, and mercifulness. For the deeper impressions are made upon our hearts by these Attri­butes, the less we shall fear Satan. They that know thy Name, says the Plasmist, Psal. 9.10. That is, thy Nature and Attributes, will trust in thee.

14. We should exercise faith on the merits and intercession of Christ, for the quenching of the fiery Darts of Satan, when ever he casts them into our Souls, Eph. 6.16. Above all take the Shield of Faith wherewith ye shall be able to quench the fiery Darts of the Wick­ed One.

15. Consider 'tis the Devils sin not thine if he force evil thoughts upon thee, which thou defiest and abhorrest.

16. Meditate on the promises of God for thy support, Rom. 16.20. The God of peace shall bruise Satan under your feet shortly. 1 Cor. 10.13. God is faithful who will not suffer you to be tempted above what you are able.

17. Consider the experiences of Gods faithful servants who have been so assaulted, and how they have been delivered. Scarce any of Gods Children but have been more or less assaulted at one time or other. Let their experiences of Gods support and help be thy en­couragement.

18. Instantly repel the Devils temptations, do not muse or think too much upon them. Divert from them; turn thy thoughts if thou canst possibly to something else.

19. If the Devil still follow thee with his Temptations, take the advice of some faithful friend or Minister, to whom impart thy case, keep not the Devils counsel. If thy House be on fire, call for help. Climacus in Scala Paradisi makes mention of one who was tempted Twenty years together; his mind being infested and tur­moil'd with most grievous blasphemous thoughts, who by revealing his condition at last to a faithful friend, was suddainly delivered from them.

20. If none of these ways will do, then (not in a proud man­ner, but) holily despise the Devil, as Travellers use to do barking Dogs. This is Gersons counsel who says he knew one suddainly cured thereby; And adds this as the reason thereof; spiritus quippe superbissimus non diu patitur se contemni. For this proud Spirit, the Devil, will not long endure or suffer himself to be contem­ned.

Of Providence.

Of Provi­d [...]n [...]e.Having spoken of the first of Gods works, viz. Creation, I come now to the second, viz. Providence, concerning which I shall make these inquiries.

1. What Providence is, and wherein it consists.

2. How it may appear there is such a Providence.

3. What is the extent of this Providence.

4. What are the Objections usually made against this Doctrine.

5. What are the Ʋses, and Practical improvements we should make hereof.

1. For the First,

Providence is a work of God, whereby he sustains, governs and or­ders all the Creatures according to the good pleasure of his will, to his own glory.

It consists in two things.

  • 1. Conservation.
  • 2. Gubernation.

1. Conservation. The Providence of God manifests it self, in preserving the Creatures he hath made, Col. 1.17. In him all things consist, Heb. 1.3. He sustains all things by the word of his Power. All the Creatures as they were made by God, so they continually de­pend upon him for the supporting and continuing of their Being, their Virtue, and Activity. Psal. 39.6. Thou preservest Man and Beast. Neh. 9.6. Thou even thou art Lord alone, thou hast made Heaven, the Heaven of Heavens with all their Host, and the Earth, and all things that are therein, the Sea, and all that is therein, and thou pre­servest all, and the Host of Heaven worshippeth thee.

2. Gubernation. Gods Providence reaches all, rules over all his Creatures, Psal. 22.28. The Kingdom is the Lords, he is the Go­vernour among the Nations, Eph. 1.11. He worketh all things ac­cording to the counsel of his own will, Lam. 3.37. Who is he that saith it cometh to pass, and I the Lord command it not. Joh. 5.17. My Father worketh hitherto, and I work. Una eum Patre con­tinue ope­ror, etiam Sabbatis, mundum portans & regens, mi [...]acula faciens, & cum eo hoc ipsum saenita­tis opus efficiens.

But Secondly, How may it appear there is such a Providence?

Answ.

  • 1. From Scripture.
  • 2. From Reason.

1. The Scripture clearly bears Testimony to it, Amos 3.6. Shall there be evil in the City, and the Lord hath not done it? Jer. 10.23. O Lord, I know that the way of man is not in himself; it is not in man that walketh to direct his steps. Isai. 45.7. I form the light, and create darkness: I make peace, and create evil: I the Lord do all these things. Prov. 15.3. The eyes of the Lord are in every place, beholding the evil and the good. James 4.15. For that ye ought to say, if the Lord will we shall live, and do this, and that, Job. 5.12. He disapppointed the Devices of the crafty, so that their hands cannot perform their enterprise.

2. Reason plainly shews it. There are several Arguments from Reason, that may perswade us to the belief hereof.

1. The Regular order, and wise contrivance of all things in the World, with their mutual reference, and subserviency of one to an­other, together with their exact fitness, and commodious aptness for the several uses and purposes, for which they were designed; the beauty, the elegance, the regularity, that appears in the several [Page 50] parts of the Universe; the regular Motion of the Heavenly bodies, the vicissitudes of day and night, and of the Seasons of the Year, Winter, Spring, Summer, and Autumn; the production of Minerals; the growth of Plants; the generation of Animals according to their s [...]veral species and kinds, the gathering the Inhabitants of the Earth into several Nations under distinct Policies, and Govern­ments; their mutual commerce for the supplying the necessities of each other with such things as their several Countries afford; the giving to so many Millions of People a different face, whereby the Husband knows his Wife, the Father his Child, the Master his Servant, the Creditor his D [...]btor, the subject his Prince, are so ma­ny Arguments to prove that there is an all-wise Providence, that presides over and governs the World; and to conceive otherwise, must needs be extremely irrational.

2. The Natural instincts, that God hath put into unreasonable Creatures which direct and move them, to do things very wise and rational, for their own preservation, is another argument of Pro­vidence, Prov. 6.6, 7, 8. Go to the Ant thou sluggard, consider her ways and be wise: which having no guide, Overseer, or Ruler provideth her meat in the Summer, and gathereth her food in the Har­vest. Jer. 8.7. Yea the Stork in the Heaven knoweth her appointed times, and the Turtle, and the Crane, and the Swallow observe the time of their coming.

3. The suitable provision that God hath made for all his Crea­tures, is another argument to prove a Providence. He provideth food for all,Aves sine Patrimo­nio vivunt. Minut. Fael. and conveyeth it to them, in that quantity and Season which is fittest for them. Psal. 145.15. The eyes of all wait upon thee, and thou givest them their meat in due season. Matth. 6.26. Behold the Fowls of the Air: for they sow not, neither do they reap, nor gather into Barns; yet our Heavenly Father feedeth them. Psal. 147.9. He giveth to the Beast his food, and to the young Ravens which cry.

4. It cannot consist with the infinite wisdom and justice of God, not to preside over and govern the World which he hath made. To conceive this great ship of the World to be left without a Pilot to govern it, and all things here below to be neglected, and suffered to run at random without any wise Agent to superintend over them, and to order and regulate them, surely is very irrational.

5. Gods manifest appearing sometimes in executing visible [Page 51] and remarkable punishments on bold and notorious sinners: and re­scuing from their malice pious and good men, in answer to their prayers, is another argument of Providence, and must needs force impartial men to say, Doubtless there is a God, that ruleth, and judgeth in the Earth. The Histories of all ages bear Testimony to this, so that I need not add any particular instances.

6. The restraining of the rage and power of Devils and infernal Spirits, and such as are imployed by them, is another great and convincing argument of Divine Providence. These Fiends of darkness and perdition are acted with extreme rage and fury against all that are good; and if God did not restrain them they would quickly pull the World about our ears. We could never be secure in our Houses, or abroad one moment for them.

7. Events and issues very often are not correspondent to the de­signs and intents of the contrivers. As Joseph told his Brethren, Gen. 50.20. Ye thought evil against me, but God meant it for good. Who could have thought that Haman should have been a means of advancing Mordecai? And yet so it came to pass, what ever the World thinks, the actions of men and their successes are under the Regiment and guidance of the Divine Will and Providence, that invisibly governs and over-rules. Have we not often seen how in one moment a pitifull small unexpected occurrence has broke in pieces a design laid with long deliberation, with huge prospect and forecast of difficulties, and with great reserves and preparati­ons against all imaginable obstraites; I say one poor unthought of accident, has on the suddain crack't and broke to shivers all this long elaborated project. That suddain and unexpected discovery of the long-elaborated Hellish Gund-powder Plot in our Nation, is a pregnant instance of this; and many more might also be given.

8. The Miracles and extraordinary things that Sometimes hap­pen in the World, contrary to the course of Nature, loudly pro­claim a Providence. 'Tis true, God does seldom alter the regular course he hath setled among his creatures. But sometimes he does it, to acquaint the World with his Power and Prerogative, lest otherwise the arrogance of men should question his Omnipotence, and be apt to suspect he could not do it. Thus he made the Sun to stand still at the prayer of Joshua. Thus he commanded the fire not to burn the Three Worthies when thrown into the fiery Furnace. [Page 52] Thus he stopt the mouths of the Lyons, that they should not de­vour Daniel. Who can bind the hands of the Almighty or hinder him from doing what he pleaseth, both in Heaven above and in the Earth beneath.

9. The horrors of Conscience that wicked men sometimes feel upon their commission of very secret sins, is another argument of Providence. Psal. 39.11. When thou with rebukes dost correct man for iniquity, thou makest his beauty to consume away like a Moth. God makes mens own Consciences oftentimes chastise them for such secret s [...]ns as the World knows not of.

10. T [...]e exact fulfilling of what was foretold, promised or pro­phesied of in the Scriptures is another great argument of Provi­dence.

And thus much for proof both by Scripture and reason that there is a Providence; I come now to the Third thing I propounded to consider, viz.

The extent of this Divine Providence. Under this head I shall shew these two things.

  • 1. That the Providence of God extends to all his Crea­tures.
  • 2. That in a more special and singular manner it manifests it self for the good of his Church and People.

1. The Providence of God reaches all his Creatures and all their actions. I shall labour to prove this by an induction of parti­culars.

1. It reaches things casual, Prov. 16.33. The lot is cast into the lap, but the whole disposal thereof is from the Lord. God is said to deliver him to a mans hand whom we suppose to be killed by chance; compare Exod. 22.13. with Deut. 19.4.5.

2. It reaches to things inanimate, viz. Natural Agents. The water rises to that height that it drowns the Old World, when God commands it. The fire will not burn the Three Worthies, if God forbid it, Daniel 3.25.

3. It reaches to Creatures that have only the lowest life, viz. Vegetables, and Plants, How wisely hath God ordered those things. Some Herbs he hath made good for food. Into others he hath put excellent Medicinal virtues, and hath made them good for Physick. Some Flowers have glorious out-sides, Solomon in all his glory was not cloathed like one of them. Others [Page 53] of them have rare qualities, and virtues beneficial to man­kind.

4. It reaches to Creatures that have only sense. Who can suf­ficiently admire the wise Oeconomy, of Bees, and Ants, and Silk-worms? Flyes, and Lice and Frogs, the very corruption of the Earth, when they have received a commission from God, are too strong an Army for Pharaoh a mighty Prince. When all Egypt be­sides was pestered with Flyes, the Land of Goshen (a little spot in the midst of it) was not molested with any; no not with Flyes, which cannot be kept out of any place. What Walls, Rivers, or Armies can hinder their motion, or prevent their entrance? And yet those active sprightly Creatures did not invade Goshen, though they were round about it, when God forbade them.

5. The Providence of God reaches unto Angels. Good Angels he makes use of as his instruments in the government of the World, and sends them abroad to serve and minister for the good of his People. As for Devils and evil Angels, he hath them under re­straint, so that they can do no more then he permits them. And the curbing and restraining, such malicious Spirits is a mighty ar­gument of Gods Providential care over us.

6. It reaches unto men. That will evidently appear if we con­sider these things.

1. The first thing that speaks Gods Providence and Govern­ment over mankind is his giving them Laws.

1. The Law of Nature which he gave them in their first Crea­tion, which directeth them how to discern good from evil, truth from falshood, right from wrong. 'Tis true, by the fall of our first Parents these common and universal principles are much weakned and darkned. Yet God hath so ordered it by his Creation at the first, and his provident care over man since, that those principles are not, nor can be ras'd quite out of mans Soul, but there are still some Natural motions of good and evil, of right and wrong; some rules of right practice left in their minds, if they will attend to them.

2. He gave unto his people the Jews the moral Law on Mount Sinai which as to the main is an epitome or abstract of the Law of Nature.

3. He does now in these Gospel times (as he promised) write his Law on the hearts of his people and inclines them to observe it: That so they may not only have a Law without them, but an inward living Law of holiness and purity within their Souls. Ezek. 36.26, 27.

2. The second thing that speaks Gods Providence over man is his governing and over ruling their inclinations and actions; and that both good and evil. Under this head, I shall first shew, how the Providence of God is exercised upon the good inclinations and actions of men; and Secondly, How 'tis exercised about sin and evil.

For the First of these observe these Rules.

1. God assists and co-operates with men in the doing of all good,Aristotle doth in his Ethicks ac­knowl [...]dge that for a man to have a Soul virtuously inclin'd is [...], the gift of God. Tu [...] ­ly in his Second Book, De Natura deorum, sayes, Nemo vir magnus sine aliquo afflatu divino unquam suit. And the Learned among Christians say, Orsus bonae voluntatis sunt Deo. Voluntas tum libera est quando per gratiam est liberata. he works in him both to will and to do that which is good, Phil. 2.13. 'Tis from God that men have any heart, or will, or power to do any thing pleasing in his sight. But Gods co-operating with, and assisting man in the doing of good is not in any thing more re­markable then in the coversion of a sinner. He savingly inlightens the mind, he freely bowes and inclines the will, he circumcises the heart as we find, Deut. 30.6. he gives a new heart as 'tis, Jer. 24.7. He takes away the heart of stone, and gives a heart of flesh, he puts a new Spirit with them, as 'tis, Ezek. 11.29.

2. As to sin and evil, God neither is, nor possibly can be the Author or Approver of it. Yet his Providence is exercised about it, as may appear by these particulars.

1. He permits sin. Without his permission and sufferance it could not be in the World. God is so good that he would never permit sin, but that being Omnipotent he knows how to bring good out of it.

Now he may be said to permit sin in these respects, First, By way of Negation, not giving grace to prevent it (which he is not bound to do being a Debtor to no man) or by not giving a Peo­ple softning means, or by denying his blessing on the means, Deut. 29.4. Moses says of the hardned Israelites. Yet the Lord hath not given you an heart to perceive, and eyes to see, and ears to hear un­to this day. God is said to harden (says Austin) when he saftens not, and to blind when he enlightns not. He doth it not by imparting evil or wickedness, but by not imparting grace.

2. By way of privation, by withdrawing (upon provocation) the restraining grace before given. Time was when Pharaoh had a [Page 55] restraint upon him; and while that lasted, there were no violent hands laid upon Moses or Aaron, by whose ministry all the Plagues were brought upon him. But this is no sooner with­drawn from him, but his cruelty vents it self and Moses is threatned with death if he came again into his presence.

3. By presenting Objects which mans corruption makes a bad use of: Thus Psalm 78 from 27, to 31. The Israelities abused their Quails, (which God so mercifully gave them) to the pampering of their lusts, and so brought his wrath upon them.

4. By delivering them up to Satan, to be by him blinded and misled because they refused to be guided by the good Spirit and word of God. Thus John 13.2. We read that the Devil put it into Judas his heart to betray his Lord and Master.

5. By delivering them up to their own lusts, Psal. 81.11.12. God sayes, my People would not hearken to my voice, and Israel would none of mee. So I gave them up unto their own hearts lust, and they walked in their own counsels.

6. By way of punishment. One sin is very often the punish­ment of another. Thus Pharaoh when he saw that the Rain, and Hail and the Thunders were ceased, he sinned yet more and hardned his heart, he and his Servants, Exod. 9.34. And Austin speaks very pertinently to this purpose, Expedit superbo, ut inci­dat in peccatum. God often suffers a proud man to fall into a shame­full sin, to punish his pride, and to bring him to a sober sence of himself.

2. God limits sin and sets bounds to it. Psalm. 76.10. Surely the wrath of men shall praise thee, the remainder of wrath thou wilt restrain. Thus Gen. 31.42. He with-held, Laban from his wick­ed purpose of hurting Jacob. He that sets bounds to the Sea: sets bounds also to the sins of men.

3. He makes sin it self serve to his own glory, and so over-rules it, that he brings good out of it. Thus the unnatural usage which Joseph received from his Brethren; God ordered to his high ad­vancement and his Family's preservation. Thus the Jews malice in persecuting the Disciples, and sending them out of Jerusalem, (by Gods over-ruling) tended to the propagating, and dispersing of the Gospel.

Having thus shewed the extent of the Divine Providence to the several Beings in the World, it remains now that I speak some­thing [Page 56] of his special Providence which he exercises in a more singular way over his Church and People. Which will plainly appear if we consider these particulars.

1. Sometimes he hinders and prevents evil intended against them. And this he does sometimes by weak means, sometimes by strange means, and sometimes without means. See a remarkable instance of this 2 Chron. 14. from 9. to the 14. An Army of a Thousand Thousand Aethiopians came out against Asa, and Verse the 11th. he cried unto the Lord saying, Lord it is nothing with thee to help whether with many or with few: we have no power: help us O Lord our God, for we trust in thee, and in thy name we go against this mul­titude. O Lord thou art our God, let not man prevail against thee. So the Lord smote the Aethiopians before Asa, and before Judah, and they were overthrown. Thus also 2 Chron, 20. When the Children of Moab, Ammon, and Mount Seir, came against Jeh [...]shaphat he proclaimed a Fast and cried unto the Lord. Vers. 12. O our God, we have no might against this great Company that cometh against us, neither know we what to do, but our eyes are upon thee. Then upon Jahaziel came the Spirit of the Lord, and he said unto the King and the People, Be not afraid by reason of this great Mul­titude; for the Battle is not yours, but Gods. To morrow go down against them; you shall not need to fight in this Battle; set your selves, stand ye still, and see the Salvation of the Lord. For the Lord will be with you. And Jehoshaphat said unto the People, be­lieve in the Lord, so shall ye be established, believe his Prophets, so shall ye prosper. This done, the Lord immediately sent a Spirit of division or strife among their enemies, whereby those Nations falling out among themselves, destroyed one another, and sheath­ed their Swords in one anothers bowels. See also to this purpose the whole 124 Psalm.

2. Sometimes he moderates and takes off the rage of Enemies, and makes them of Enemies to become Friends. Thus when Esau had resolv'd to slay his Brother Jacob, Gen. 27.4. Jacob wrastles that night with God in prayer. Chap. 32. Vers. 11, 24, 26, 28. And Chap. 33. Vers. 4. We find God had so changed the heart of Esau, that instead of killing his Brother, he most lovingly embraces him, and fell upon his neck and kissed him.

3. Sometimes he snares the wicked in the work of their own hands when they have designed mischief against his Peo­ple, [Page 57] Psal. 9.16. The Lord is known by the Judgment he executeth: The wicked is snared in the work of his own hands. The whole Book of Hester is a sufficient proof of this. And we read Job 5.12. That he dissappointeth the devices of the crafty, so that their hands cannot perform their enterprizes. Achitophel also is a remarkable instance of this, whose counsel against David God turned in foolishness.

4. Sometimes he makes the wicked against their own will to fulfill his will. See what God says to the Assyrian, Isai. 10.5, 6, 7. O Assy­rian, the Rod of mine anger, and the Staff in their hand is mine in­dignation. I will send him against an Hypocritical Nation, and against the People of my wrath will I give him a charge; to take the Spoil and to take the Prey, and to tread them down like the mire of the Streets. Howbeit, he meaneth not so, neither doth his heart think so; but it is in his heart to destroy, and cut off Nations not a few. Jo­sephs Brethren little thought when they so wretchedly sold him, they had been advancing of him. But this is the Chymistry of Divine Providence to bring good out of evil.

5. He usually converts the outward evils that befall his People to their Spiritual good. Paul had a sad Messenger of Satan sent to buffet him, 2 Corinth. 12.7. But this Messenger prov'd a means to prevent pride in him. Wicked men are God Scullions (as one calls them) and imployed by him to scour his Children, and to brighten their graces. Physick though it be not good to the Palat, yet it may be very good for the Patient. David found it so when he cried out, It is good for me that I have been afflicted, before I was af­flicted I went astray, but now I have kept thy word, Psal. 119.67, 68. And Isai. 27.9. Sayes God, By this shall the iniquity of Jacob be purged, and this is all the fruit to take away his sin.

6. And Lastly, God very often qualifies the outward troubles of his People with inward comforts, and consolations. Though the outward man smart, yet God can cause the Conscience to smile. Though the outward estate be peeled, yet he can chear the heart. Those Saints in the 11 of Heb. took joyfully the spoiling of their goods, remembring they had in Heaven a better and more induring substance. Hear what the blessed Apostle says, 2 Cor. 1.3, 4, 5, [...]2. Blessed be God, even the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, the Father of mercies and the God of all comfort, who comforteth us in all our tribulation, that we may be able to comfort them which are in any trouble, by the comfort whereby we our selves are comforted of God. [Page 58] For as the sufferings of Christ abound in us, so our consolation also aboundeth by Christ. For our rejoycing is this, the Testimony of our Conscience that in simplicity and godly sincerity, not with fleshly wis­dom, b [...]t by the grace of God we have had our conversation in the World, and more abundantly t [...] [...]-wards.

And that Gods Providenc [...] is in so singular a manner, watchfull over his Church and Pe ple, may yet further appear if we consider these thi [...]s.

1. They [...] in Covenant with him. He hath taken th [...]m to hi [...] [...]or h [...] p [...]ul [...] People, he hath formed them for him­self, and [...] th [...]r God, and that comprehends all blessings in it, Jer. [...]. And Ezek. 16.8. I entred into Covenant with th [...]e saith [...] [...]d thou becamest mine.

2. He hath pu [...] [...] indearing relations towards them, viz. Of a Father, and of a Husband, J [...]r. 31.9. I am a Father (saith God) to Israel, Psal. 103.13. As a Father pu [...]th his Children, so the Lord pitieth them that fear him. And Isai. 54.5. Thy Maker is thy Husband.

3. He sets a high value upon them, as may appear by the Titles he gives them. He calls them his Jewels, Mal. 3.17. And Zach. 2.8. The Apple of his eye; and Psal. 16.3. The Excellent of the Earth.

4. He hath made many gracious promises to them, Heb. 13.5. He hath said, I will never leave thee nor forsake thee. And Psal. 84.11. He hath promised to be a Sun and a Shield unto his People. He will give grace and glory, and no good thing will he with-hold from them that walk uprightly.

And thus much of the Third particular I propounded to speak to, viz. The extent of Divine Providence. I come now to the Fourth, viz. to consider.

4. What are the Objections that are usually made against this Doctrine.

1. Object. Some think that to assert that the Providence of God reaches to all his Creatures, is a diminution or aviling of his Maje­sty and Greatness. Therefore Epicurus, and some of the Ancients thought that God confined himself to the highest Heavens, as to his Royal Palace; that his Majesty was too Sublime and August, to mind the actions of inferiour Creatures. And Aristotle himself (it s [...]ems) was of this opinion, that the Providence of God reached no further then the Orb of the Moon.

Answ. For answer to this we need only say, that those men spake like Heathens not knowing the Scriptures, which teach us that the Providence of God is so particular, that the very hairs of our heads are said to be numbred, and that a Sparrow does not fall to the ground without Gods knowledg, or permission. Matth. 10.29. And certainly 'tis no diminution to the infinite Majesty of God to govern those Creatures, (how small and inferiour soever) which he in his infinite wisdom thought good to create and pro­duce.Deo pro­brum non est [...]i u­tissim [...] qu [...]q [...]e se­ [...] ss, multo min [...]s re­gere.

2 Object. Another Objection against Providence is this, if the Providence of God governs the World, Cur malis bene, bonis male? Why fares it many times so well with the wicked? Why do they flourish like a green Bay-tree? While those that are righteous, and good men meet with hard measure, and are miserably harassed and afflicted. This matter we find debated by Job, in Chap. 21.7. And in Chap. 24.27. The Psalmist also insists on it in Psal. 37.73. And the Prophet Jerem. Chap. 12.1.

Answ. That this oftentimes so happens, is plain and undeniable. And the Providence, Wisdom and Justice of God in this dispensa­tion is many times a mystery and riddle to the Children of men. But the difficulty is soon dissolved, if we will but attentively con­sider these things, which we spake something to before, in answer to an Objection made against Gods Justice.

1. None are perfectly righteous here. Therefore even in the very best God may find something for which justly to correct them.

2. God may love his Children with a great love even then when he does sorely afflict them.

3. Though godliness have the promises of this life, and that which is to come, 1 Tim. 4.8. Yet this is to be understood with this limitation, so far for thas to the infinite Wisdom of God seems fit, and good and convenient for his People, and no further.

4. The prosperity of the wicked is but a seeming prosperity. 'Tis many times really hurtfull to them, Eccles. 5.13. I have seen Riches (says Solomon) reserved for the hurt of the owners thereof. Yea not only for their own hurt, but for the hurt of many others round about them.

5. The outward calamities of the People of God, (through his sanctifying of them) tend to the prosperity of their Souls, to the [Page 60] increase of their graces, and furtherance of their glory: 'Tis good for me (says David, Psal. 119 71.) that I have been afflicted.

6. Eternity is long enough to punish the wicked who most pro­spered in their wickedness, and to reward the righteous who suffer­ed most deeply for their righteousness.

Having thus spoken of the Nature of Divine Providence and the extent of it, and answered the Objections usually made against it, let us now consid [...]r what improvement we ought to make of this Doctrine.

1. Let us all own and acknowledge and take notice of the Provi­dence of God actually working in the World. Let us not impute events, to chance, or fortune, or fate; but labour to see and take notice of an all-wise and Soveraign Providence, over-ruling, orde­ring, and disposing of all things here below. God is King and Lord of the World, and does and will govern the Creatures he hath made.

2. Let us earnestly beg Gods Providential care over us, and hum­bly trust our selves and our concernments to his disposal. Let us stir up and excite our selves to depend on his Providence from such considerations as these,

1. There is no better way to obtain any good thing we desire, than by an humble depending on God for it, and referring our selves to his holy will; no surer way to miss any good thing we desire, than to be peremptory, and inordinate in our desire of it.

2. Why should we not depend on God now, who took care of us in the Womb, and when we hung on our Mothers Breasts, and hath all our life hitherto taken care of us?

3. How easily can God help us, in our greatest difficul­ties?

4. Why should we not depend on God for accessaries on whom we must depend for the main?

3. It the Providence of God governs the World, let us not dis­quiet our selves upon any of these accounts.

1. Because we are at present under many and various afflictions. For let us consider, First, all afflictions have their commission from him, Job 5.6. Affliction comes not out of the dust. 'Tis God that brings us and our afflictions together; Secondly, He suits and pro­portions our afflictions. He knows the strength of the Disease, [Page 61] and what Physick is necessary to remove it. Successive afflictions are his c [...]urse of Physick to remove a stubborn malady; Thirdly, He sanctifies afflictions to his Children and betters them by them, and so they tend to their great advantage.

2. Let us not disquiet our selves in reference to our Posterity. We are apt to be very thoughtfull, what will become of our Children which we shall leave behind us. But let us consider though we must go hence, yet the Providence of God never dyes. Gen. 48.21. Behold I die (says Jacob to Joseph) but God shall be with you, and bring you again to the Land of your Fathers. Let us commit our Children to the care of that gracious Providence, which hath watched over us, for our good all our days.

3. Let us not disquiet our selves in reference to the Church of God. Let us remember what our Saviour hath promised, viz. That the gates of Hell shall not prevail against his Church, Matth. 16.18.

4. Let us labour to get an interest in the Essential love and fa­vour of this God who governs the World by his Providence, if he be our reconciled Father in Christ, we need not fear what Men or Devils can do unto us.

5. Let us study the promises, especially those that are made to assure us of Gods caring for us: Such as Rom. 8.28. We know that all things work together for good, to them that love God, to them who are the called according to his purpose. See also Psal. 84.11. And Heb. 13.5.

6. And lastly, let us reflect upon our former experiences of Gods merciful care over us, and his gracious ordering our affairs and concerns for us when we humbly trusted in him; and there­by let us encourage our selves to trust in him with a Holy confi­dence for time to come.

CHAP. II. Of Man.

SECT. I. Of the happy state wherein Man was created.

Maker of Hea­ven and Earth,COncerning Man we are to consider Three things.

  • 1. The happy estate in which he was created.
  • 2. His fall.
  • 3. The way and means of his recovery.

1. The happy estate in which he was created. This I shall labour to clear in several Propositions.

1. God made man at first after his own Image. The Image of God in man consisted principally in these Three things.

1. In the Nature of mans Soul, which being a Spirit re­presents God who is a Spirit. And this I may call his Natural Image.

2. In the gracious qualities wherewith it was at first indued, viz. Knowledge, Holiness, Righteousness; which I may call his moral Image: So that mans Original moral rectitude may be un­derstood to consist in these particulars.

1. In the perfect illumination of his mind, whereby he under­stood the Will and Law of God, and whatever concerned his duty.

2. In the ready compliance of his heart and will therewith.

3. In the obedient subordination of his sensitive Appetite, and his inferiour faculties to the guidance of his inlightned mind, and holy [Page 63] will. And every part of this Original righteousness was con-natu­ral and con-created with the Nature of man, and a qualification which fitted and prepar'd him for communion with his Creator.

3. In the Dominion God gave him over the Creatures here be­low. Gen. 1.26 Psal. 8.6, 7, 8. Thou mad [...]st him to have Do [...]ini­on over the works of thy hands; thou h [...]t put all things under his feet, all Sheep and Oxen, ye [...] [...]d t [...]e B [...]ts of the Fi [...]ld, the Fowl [...]f the Air, and the fish of the Sea, &c.

Further his b [...]dy was so exactly framed at first as to be a habita­tion for so excellent a S [...]ul, a fit instrument for its Op [...]ions; and in it there were some traces of the Divine Majesty, [...] [...]orth as a body is capable of representing the Sove [...]aign of the [...], viz. In the Majesty and comeliness of mans face and [...] [...]nance. Therefore God says, He that sheds mans blood by man [...] blood be shed. For in the Image of God created be him, Ge [...]. 9. [...].

Having thus shewed how God made man after his own Image, I come now Secondly to shew what Laws he gave him.

The Law given to Adam in innocency was t [...]fold.

1. Naturall, which was written or imprinted upon his Soul in his first Creation.

2. Positive, given (as is probable) by some external discovery or revelation, and imposed on man to try whether he would be obedient to his Creator, or no.

The Law of Nature as subjected in mans mind, consists in cer­tain practical Notions, or Rules about good and evil, right and wrong, true and false, just and unjust, honest and dishonest. And mans will was dispos'd and inclin'd to conform to the Dictates of this Law.

So that these Natural Laws (by which Man was to be govern­ed, and which were at first stamped on his Soul,) were such as were exceeding agreeable to his Reason, and sutable to the inclinations of his will, and not at all contradicted or opposed by any principle within him, which might make him doubtful about his duty, or disincline him to the performance of it. So that Adam in innocency was indued with sufficient ability to conform to the whole Law of God, both Natural and Positive. He was furnished with particu­lar Principles inclining him to comply with whatsoever the Law of Nature prescribed, and with a general Principle disposing him to yield obedience to whatsoever any positive Law, as the declared will of God, should injoin,

Thus much of the Law of Nature, I come now to shew what positive Law God gave Adam in innocency.

Of the Co­venant of Works.God having placed our first Parents in Paradise, besides the Law of Nature, which he wrote on their hearts, he gave them also a positive command to assert his right and dominion over them as their Creator, that they might be obliged to do something because it was their Creators will, as well as other things, because they appeared in their own Nature reasonable and fit to be done. Somethings God commands because they are in themselves and in their own Na­ture just and fit to be done, and other things are therefore fit to be done because God commands them. God therefore gave Adam a positive Law as a test or proof of his obedience, and to try him how he would behave himself towards his Maker, Gen. 2.16, 17. And the Lord God commanded the man, saying, of every Tree of the Garden thou mayest freely eat: but of the Tree of Knowledge of good and evil, thou shalt not eat of it, for in the day that thou eatest there­of of thou shalt surely die.

In these words is contained the Covenant that God made with man at first and which is commonly called the Covenant of Works, or Covenant of Nature, being made with man in the time of his in­nocent Nature. And this is contradistinguished to the Covenant of Grace, (which was made with man after the Fall) of which we shall speak more afterwards.

Now a Covenant between God and man is not to be considered as between man and man, where consent is mutually requisite. For man was bound to accept the terms God offered him, being in themselves exceeding reasonable. God is an absolute Lord, and hath full power in his hands to give and impose what Laws he pleases on his Creatures, and to require what duties, and impose what conditions he sees good, and man is bound to accept, and sub­mit unto the Law or Covenant so propounded, and imposed. And in a dutiful performance of the conditions on his part required, he may expect the benefits promised.

Here therefore it will be requisite,

1. To shew that this was a Covenant.

2. To shew the Nature of it.

Now that the command included in a Covenant may appear.

1. Because God promises Adam life if he obey. As if he should have said, Till the day thou eatest thereof thou shalt surely live. So much must needs be included.

2. He threatens him with death if he disobeyed. In the day thou eatest thereof thou shalt surely dye.

3. We find our first Parents did so understand it, by Eve's words to the Serpent, Gen. 3.2, 3. The woman said unto the Serpent, We may eat of the fruit of the Trees in the Garden. But of the fruit of the Tree which is in the midst of the Garden, God hath said, Ye shall not eat of it, neither shall ye touch it, lest ye die.

4. He appointed the Tree of life as a Sacrament Erat ho­mini in lignis aliis ali­mentum, in hoc v [...] ­ro Sacra­mentum, Aug. de Gen. or Symbol of this Covenant, Gen. 2.9. Which Tree did signifie to them, that they should always enjoy that happy estate in which they were made, upon condition of their obedience, viz. A most blessed life, free from all misery, and flowing with all manner of good things, that were agreeable to the Soul and Body of man in that perfect state.

Having thus shewed that those words, Gen. 2.16, 17. contained a Covenant, we come now to consider,

1. The Nature and Tenour of this Covenant. And for the clear­ing of that let us observe these particulars.

1. The great honour that God put upon man by entring into Covenant with him. 'Tis a great honour to a mean man to have a King enter into Covenant with him. How much greater honour is it unto Man to have the great God of Heaven and Earth to enter into Covenant with him?

2. Observe the great goodness of God in laying upon man no harder a command, then the forbearing of one Tree, which he must needs judge easie and reasonable.

3. Ob [...]erve Mans great advantage by this Covenant. Before this, God had not engaged himself to man to continue him in that happy estate in which he had made him. Nothing hindred but he might have annihilated him. But by this Covenant God freely bound himself, and gave man a right to expect the things promised in this Covenant. God now promises to continue mans life and happiness, if man continued his obedience.

4. Under this Covenant man was furnished with sufficient abili­ty to stand, but was left in the hand of his own counsel. He was left in a mutable state; he might stand, or he might fall.

5. Observe Gods great care of man, in arming his mutable will against falling both by promises and threatnings. He encourages him to obedience by the reward promised; he deters him from dis­obedience by the danger threatned, What greater good could man [Page 96] expect than what was here promised? What greater evil could he fear than what was here threatned?

6. This Covenant required on mans part perfect personal and per­petual obedience as the condition of it. It required perfect obedi­ence to the moral Law stamped on mans heart, and to this p [...] ­sitive precept which God had given him. A curse and death was to be the w [...]ges of the least transgression thereof. But if he were obedi­ent he might expect a reward answerable to his works, and there­upon it was called a Covenant of works.

7. Under the Coven [...]t man had no need of a Mediator. Till man had by sin mad [...] God his enemy he needed no Mediator to me­diate or intercede for him.

8. This Covenant, in case of disobedience, afforded man no re­lief, no not upon his repentance. And thus the case stood with man in the state of his Innoc [...]nce.

Of Ma [...]s fa [...].We come now to the second thing I propounded to treat of con­cerning man, and that is his fall from his Original happiness, by disobeying the precept and command of God, and forfeiting the priviledges of the Covenant contained in it, Gen. 3. from 1. to 7. Now the Serpent was m [...]re subtil than any Beast of the field which the Lord God had made, and he said unto the woman, Yea, hath God said, Ye shall not eat of every Tree of the Garden? And the Woman said unto the Serpent, We may eat of the fruit of the Trees of the Garden: But of the fruit of the Tree which is in the midst of the Garden, God hath said, Ye shall not eat of it, neither shall ye touch it, lest ye die. And the Serpent said unto the Woman, ye shall not surely die. For God doth know, that in the day ye eat thereof, then your eyes shall be opened: and ye shall be as gods, knowing good and evil. And when the woman saw that the Tree was good for food, and that it was pleasant to the eyes, and a Tree to be desired to make one wise; she took of the fruit thereof, and did eat, and gave also un­t [...] her Huusband with her, and he did eat. And the eyes of them both were opened, and they knew that they were naked: and they sewed Fig-leaves together and made themselves Aprons. Rom. 5.12, 19. Wherefore, as by one man sin entred into the World, and death by sin, and so death passed upon all men, for that all have sinned. For as by one mans disobedience many were made sinners: so by the obedi­ence of one, shall many be made righteous.

And that I may speak more distinctly of the matter; I shall in­quire in to these particulars.

1. Who were the first sinners among men, and by whom sin en­tered into the World.

2. What was the first sin.

3. What were the causes and occasions of Adams first transgression.

4. What were the sad effects and consequents of this sin and breach of the Covenant. First, Upon our first Parents. Secondly, Up­on us, their Posterity.

1. We shall inquire who were the first sinners among men, and by whom sin entred into the World.

Adam and Eve, the first Man and first Woman, were certainly (among men) the first transgressors, as may appear by those places before cited, Gen. 3. And Rom 5.12. And the Apostle tells us, 1 Tim. 2.14. Adam was not deceived (that is, First, and by the Devil and so as to draw Eve into transgression) but the woman being deceived was first Th [...]gh Eve was first in the trangressi­on yet A­dam was the chief, and there­fore Adam is some­times taken col­lectively both for man and woman. in the transgression, and drew Adam into it, Hosea 6.7. God says of the unfaithful Israelites; They like Adam have transgressed the Covenant. And 2 Cor. 11.3. We read that the Serpent beguiled Eve through his subtilty, viz. To eat of the forbidden fruit, and she persuaded Adam to eat also. It therefore we trace corruption and depravation to the well-head, we shall find we cannot stay any where till we come to the first Man, the common Parent and Root of us all. And 'tis very evident that the first Fountain of mankind was corrupted, seeing all the streams are so.

2. Let us consider what was the first sin?

God made our first Parents holy and happy; and whilst they per­formed their duty, they could not but be happy. But the Devil having fallen from God himself (as we have seen before Sect 3.) and envying our first Parents their present happiness, he sets upon Eve to draw her from her obedience to God. And the tempta­tion he spred before her is this, you shall be as God. He pretends to acquaint her with a way whereby they might raise thems [...]lves to a higher condition than that wherein they were at present. They should be [...] like God himself, or like Angels; they should be lifted up to a higher estate than now they enjoyed. And this hap­piness (he tells them) they might acquire by eating of that Tree in the midst of the Garden which God had forbidden them; which he intimates would be so far from procuring death or misery to a them, that it had a contrary virtue in it, namely, to raise them to higher state of happiness than now they enjoyed. Eve being caught by this subtil device, began to believe this Serpent (who [Page 68] thus proves himself a Lyar and a Murderer from the beginning) and to d [...] believe God, and to doubt the truth of his threatning and commination, who Gen. 2.17 had told Adam, Of that Tree thou shalt not eat, for in the day thou eatest thereof thou shalt surely die. Ev [...] being thus won upon by the D [...]vils temptation, did venture to e [...]t of this sorbidden fruit, and dre [...] Adam to eat also. So that infi [...]elity and doubting of the truth of Gods word and threatnings (t [...]rough the Devils insinuation) and pride and affection of an h [...]gher estate, seem to be the first miscarriages and sins of Adam and Eve. O the cursed Nature of pride and unbelief! How soon did these [...]ns enter into the very Angels! How soon did they undo our first Parents!

3. Let us inq [...]ire what were the causes and occasions of Adams sin?

1. God was not. The pure and holy Nature of God could not be the Original of mans sin. The Holy God cannot be the cause of any unholiness. God indeed permitted man to fall, seeing he knew how to bring good out of it. But he inclin'd him not to it.

2. Neither external Objects, nor the temptations of Satan, could nec [...]ssitate the will of man to sin. The Devil might persuade but could not force.

3. The persuading cause in respect of Eve was Satan in the form of a Serpent. The Devil opened the Serpents mouth and caused it to speak with mans voice, as an Angel opened the mouth of Balaams Ass, Numb. 22.28. Now the Serpents cunning may appear in this.

  • 1. He first assaults the Woman, not the Man.
  • 2. He equivocates about knowing good and evil, which he represents to her as a state of perfection. Whereas the for­bidden Tree was called the Tree of knowledge because Adam if he did eat thereof should experimentally know to his sorrow, from how much good he had fallen and how much evil he had brought upon himself.
  • 3. He uses Eve, (a Companion newly made for Adam, and surely very dear to him) to draw in her Husband.

4. Man being not created at first immutably Holy, but defectible, and sin being only a defect, a person that was mutable and defecti­bly Holy, as Adam was, might fall into sin. 'Twas no strange thing that Man should be created defectible, and being a defectible and mutable Creature that he should fall. It was most congruous that God having made such a Creature as Man (furnished with [Page 69] such powers, and capable of being governed by a Law, and of being moved by promises and threats) should for some time hold him in a state of tryal, unconfirmed, that it might be seen how he would behave himself towards his Creator, and that he should be rewardable, or punishable accordingly, in a state that should be everlasting and unchangeable. But if any shall further inquire into the manner of this first defection, 'tis most probable there was in the instant of temptation a suspension of the understanding's Act (not only as previous to the sin, but as a part of it) and thereupon a sud­dain precipitation of Will, as Estius determins. But let us not too curi­ously inquire into this matter. 'Tis wholsom counsel that one gives, that we should labour rather to get sin out of our Souls, than trou­ble our selves how it came in. For as a man that falls into a deep Ditch or Pond ('tis Austin's similitude) does not lie there considering how he fell in, but labours speedily to get out; so it should be with us in this case.

4. Let us consider what were the sad effects and consequents of this sin and breach of Gods Covenant. First, Upon our first Pa­rents. Secondly, Upon us their Posterity.

1. Our First Parents were hereby deprived of their Original Righteousness, and Communion with God.

2. They became depraved and corrupted, inclin'd to evil, and indisposed to good.

3. They brought themselves under an estate of wrath, were driven out of Paradise and were made liable to death, both Tempo­ral and Eternal. And though they were reprived for the present from suffering the penalty the Law requires; yet,

1. Sorrows were inflicted on the Woman in Child-bearing. Under which we may comprehend her sorrows in breeding, bearing, bringing-forth, and bringing up her Children.

2. Sorrow also was inflicted upon the Man, Gen. 3.17.18. Cursed is the ground for thy sake; in sorrow shalt thou eat of it all the dayes of thy life. Thorns and Thistles shall it bring forth. In the sweat of thy face shalt thou eat thy bread, &c.

3. His Dominion over the Creatures was much impaired.

4. He was rendred utterly unable to help out of this miserable estate.

2. Let us consider the sad effects of Adams fall in reference to us.

1. We were involved in the guilt of his first transgression. For [Page 70] the Covenant was not made with Adam only but with all mankind who where seminally or radically in him. We were not indeed then personally in him, (for we were not then Natural Persons) but we were in him seminally and virtually. And God may justly reck [...]n us to have been seminally in him, because our Essence was to be deriv [...]d from him. And as when a man is guilty, no part of him is innocent, so we were guilty of [...]dams first sin, so far forth as we were parts of him, and in him. As Levi is said to have payed Tythes in Abraham, because he was in the Loins of his Father Abraham, when Melchizedech met him, Heb. 7.9, 10. though he was born some Generations after him; on the same groun [...] it may well be inferred that all Adams posterity did eat of the forbidden fruit in him, because they were all at that time in his Loins. And the Apostle speaks to the same purpose, Rom. 5.12. By one man sin entred into the World, &c. In whom E [...] in q [...], h [...] viro, non mu [...]ie [...]e; q [...]d vir sit praeci­puu [...] a [...]or posterita­tis, tam [...]si m [...]lio p [...] [...]est la [...]sa. [...]raim. all have sinned. If a Father by Treason forfeit his Estate, no wonder if his Children de deprived of it.

2. We were hereby d [...]prived of Original Righteousness, Rom. 3.23. All have sinned, (that is in Adam) and so come short of the glory of God; that is, are depriv'd of his glorious Image which in mans first creation was stamped upon him. By reason of that first sin of Adams (whereof all are guilty) want of Original righteousness and depravation of Nature are come upon us as a just punishment of Adams transgression, and are the sad consequents of it. Therefore some say that God now deprives Souls of Original Righteousness, Non qua Creator, sed qua Judex.

3. Instead of Original Righteousness a corrupt disposition and vi­tiosity of Nature was imparted to all their Posterity descending from them by ordinary Generation. The Soul is now propense to evil, because it wants that rectitude that should regulate it. As sickness, besides the depriving us of health, affects our bodies with corrupt humors. Mr. Cotton on Eccles. 11 Vers. 5, holds that God forms the Soul of man of the Spirituous part of the seed of the Parents, and so Original corruption is naturally propagated from the Parents to the Children. This corrupt disposition is called, The old Man. Rom. 6.6. The sin dwelling with us. Rom. 7.17. It is called Flesh as opposite to grace. Rom. 7.18. The Law of the Members. Rom. 7.23. Body of sin. Rom. 6.6. The body of death. Rom. 7.24. Lastly, A mans own lust, James 1.14. In which [Page 71] place by the next words following 'tis plainly distingui [...]hed from actual sin, as being expr [...]sly affirmed to be the procreant cause of it. So that by this Original corruption all our Faculties are depraved.

  • 1. Our Minds blinded.
  • 2. Our Wills rendred averse to that which is good.
  • 3. Our Memories unfaithful to retain what is good, but too tenacious of evil.
  • 4. Our Consciences defiled.
  • 5. Our Affections disordered.

These are some of the sad Consequents of Adams First transgres­sion.

4. We are cast under the wrath and curse of God. Besides the effects of this wrath and curse upon our Souls (of which before) our bodies are now liable to diseases and deformities, and all our enjoyments and every condition of our lives is subj [...]ct to a curse. And which is most deplorable, we are liable by reason of our sins to Eternal wrath and misery.

5. We are hereby rendred utter unable to help our selves, Rom. 5.6. The Law exacts perfect and perpetual obedience under a curse. Gal. 3.10. Cursed is every one that continueth not in all things which are written in the Book of the Law to do them. Now here ob­serve Two things.

1. What the Scripture speaks concerning mans Impotency, and inability to help himself out of this miserable condition wherein he is by Nature.

1. He is said to be meer darkness, Eph. 5.8. Ye were sometimes darkness (sayes the Apostle to the Converted Ephesians) but now ye are light in the Lord: And 1 Cor. 2.14. But the Natural man receiv­eth not the things of the Spirit of God: For they are foolishness unto him; neither can he know them, because they are spiritually discerned.

2. To have a heart of stone, Ezek. 36.26.

3. To be enthralled under the Dominion of sin and Satan. Acts 26.18.

4. To be dead in sins and trespasses, Eph. 2.1.5.

5. To be without strength in Spiritual things, Rom. 5.6. and unable to come up to the obedience the Law requires of us.

6. Mans carnal mind is said to be enmity against God, Rom. 8.7. For 'tis not subject to the Law of God, neither indeed can be, till it be effectually changed.

Secondly, Observe by what terms the Scripture expresses mans recovery out of this sad estate.

1. 'Tis called Regeneration, Tit. 3.5. Joh. 3.3, 5.

2. A Spiritual Resurrection. A quickning and raising from the death of sin to the life of grace, Joh. 5 24, 25. Eph. 2.1.

3. A new Creation, and Gods own Workmanship, Eph. 2.10. By all which it may appear that though mans misery be from him­self, yet his help is only from the free grace of God.

It remains now that we inquire what use we are to make of this Doctrine of our Fall in Adam.

1. This should humble us for our Original Apostasie from God; the Apostasie of our Head.

2. We should take heed of imitating our first Parents in their dis­obedience and Apostasie. Pride undid them, and undid the An­gels that fell; let us take heed of falling into the condemnation of the Devils, 1 Tim. 3.6. Therefore our blessed Saviour who came to undo the works of the Devil, comes in the lowest humility imagi­nable, even in the form of a Servant.

3. A Third instruction we may gather from the consideration of the instrument of our first Parents disobedience. The Devil ha­ving Apostatized himself from God, was restless till he had drawn our First Parents into the like Apostasie and Rebellion. While we live let us take heed of the Company of Apostates, and such as are fallen off from God and the practice and profession of true Piety.

4. If our first Parents fell from God by disobedience in Paradise, how should we tremble that walk in a corrupt World, and carry corrupt hearts about us? How ought we to cease from trusting in our selves, and to put all our trust and confidence in God. If the Devil prevailed over Adam, how much more easily may he prevail over us? If he could deceive by a Serpent, how much more easi­ly may he deceive, when he uses men for his instruments that are like our selves. And this is further to be observ'd, that the more godly any are, the more will the Devil labour to foil them. For if he can foil one of them, he blurs their profession, and by such a scandal makes others shy of it. Oh do you not see (will the World then say) what kind of Saints these are? They are all such. Saints in profession, but Hypocrites at the heart. And thus by the falls of Professors the Devil mightily advances his own Kingdom.

5. Seeing we were all involved in the guilt of our first Parents disobedience and seeing we have received from them by our imme­diate Parents a corrupt and depraved Nature; let us consider that this is no estate to be rested in. If we rest, and abide in our na­tural and corrupt estate; let us remember that the wrath of God abideth on us. Oh let us think seriously on this, and lay it to heart. Joh. 3.3. Sayes our Saviour, Except a man be born again he can­not see the Kingdom of God. If death seize thee before thou art re­generate and born again, better thou hadst never been born. 'Tis not enough (believe it) to be a civil honest man or woman, to live neighbourly and friendly, (though that is in it self indeed very com­mendable) but I say, that is not enough to secure our Souls against the Justice of God. By Nature we are all Children of wrath, bond-slaves of Satan; and a great change must pass upon us, if ever we intend to come to the Kingdom of God.

6. Let all Parents and Masters of Families labour to convince those under their charge of their miserable condition by Nature, and let them endeavour faithfully to acquaint them with the way and means how they may escape out of it. Let them shew them that seeing they are undone by the First Adam, they must labour to re­cover themselves by the Second.

7. Seeing Christ hath done so much to redeem us; let us con­sider how greatly our Damnation will be aggravated if we neglect the great Salvation tendred by him in the Gospel.

I come now to the Third thing to be considered concerning man, and that is,

3. The way and means of his recovery by Christ, Man by his fall having made himself uncapable of life by this first Covenant, viz. The Covenant of Works, it pleased the Lord to make a Second Co­venant with him, namely the Covenant of Grace, Of the Co­venant of Grace. wherein he free­ly offers unto sinners life and Salvation by Jesus Christ, requiring they should repent of their sins and believe in him that they may be saved.

In treating of this Covenant that I may proceed more methodical­ly, I shall

1. Compare these two Covenants, [viz. of works, and grace] together, and shew wherein they agree, and wherein they differ.

2. I shall open more particularly the Nature of the Covenant of Grace. First I shall shew wherein they agree.

1. They agree in the Author. God is the Author of them both.

2. They agree in the parties concerned. God and men, are the Parties concerned in both Covenants.

3. They agree in this, that in both there is a promise of life and blessedness.

4. In both Covenants there is a condition required on our parts for the obtaining the blessedness promised. Neither of the Cove­nants promise life and blessedness absolutely whether we obey or no, whether we beleive or no, but under the condition of Obedience and Faith.

5. B th Covenants require a perfect Righteousness of us, if we in­tend to obtain the blessedness promised. No blessedness is promi­sed in either Covenant but upon condition of bringing in a perfect Righte [...]usness, either of our own or anothers. And these are the things wherein th [...]y agree. In the next place let us consider where­in they d [...]ffer.

1. They differ in the condition required. One requires Works, the other Faith. The one sayes do this and live. The other, believe in the Lord Jesus and thou shalt be saved, Acts 16.31.

In the Covenant of Works there was indeed an act of Faith requi­red, viz. that God would give the blessed life promised upon mans performance of his duty and obedience, but it was not such a Faith as is required in the Covenant of Grace, which is the re­ceiving and apprehending and trusting our Souls on the righteous­ness which is wrought for us by the active and passive obedience of Christ. The [...]ovenant of Grace also requires Works. For the Grace of God that bringeth Salvation teacheth us to deny all ungodliness and worldly lusts, and to live Righteously, Soberly and Godlily in this present world, &c. And Christ gave himself for us, that he might redeem us from all iniquity, and purify unto himself a peculi­ar people, Zeal us of good works, Tit. 2.11, 12, 14. But it doth not require works from the same principle that the Covenant of Works does. That requires works to be performed by our own strength and ability received at our creation, whereby we were sufficiently inabled to do the things required of us. But the Co­venant of Grace requires works to be done by the assistance of the Spirit of Christ. Phi [...]. 4.13. I can do all things (sayes the Apostle) through Christ that strengthneth me. Therefore the obedience of the [Page 75] Gospel is called the obedience of Faith. Rom. 16.26. as following Faith and springing from it. Repentance and Faith are not so in mans power now as Obedience was under the Covenant of Works. And secondly, it doth not require works for the same end. For the Covenant of Works requires works as the way and means of our standing right before God. But the Covenant of Grace doth not require works as the matter of our Righteousness and Justification before God, but that thereby we should glorify God in this World, be fitted for Heaven, and should evidence and testifie our renewed nature.

2. In the Covenant of Works there was no Mediator. But in the Covenant of Grace there is. Therefore the one is called Foedus amicitiae, the other Foedus misericordiae.

3. One sin broke the Covenant of Works, but in the Co­venant of Grace there is pardon obtainable for multiplied trans­gressions, Isa. 55.7. Let the wicked man forsake his way and the unrighteous man his thoughts; and let him return unto the Lord, and he will have mercy upon him, and to our God, for he will abun­dantly pardon.

4. The Covenant of Works gave unto man some occasion as it were to glory, if he had stood. But the Covenant of Grace cuts off from Man all pretence to glory in himself, and engages him to give all the glory intirely unto God. So saith the Apostle, Rom. 3.27. Where is boasting then? It is excluded. By what Law? of Works. Nay: But by the Law of Faith. And 1 Cor. 1.31. The Apostle tells us Christ is made unto us Wisdom, Righteousness, San­ctification and Redemption. He that glorieth let him glory in the Lord. So Eph. 2.9. By grace are ye saved, through Faith, and that not of your selves, it is the gift of God: not of Works lest any man should boast. Having thus shewed the agreement and diffe­rence between these two Covenants.

I come now to speak more particularly of the Covenant of Grace. Concerning which let us observe these things.

1. The Covenant of Grace was for substance one and the same in all ages of the Church, though diversly administred before, and after the coming of Christ. From Adam to Noah, from Noah to Abraham, from Abraham to Moses, from Moses to David, and so on from David to Christ, and from Christ to the end of the World, the Covenant of Grace hath been one and the same, without change [Page 76] or alteration. Yet it was administred in a different manner under the Old and New Testament and thence it had the denomination of Old and New Covenant. Yet both did agree in many things, As

Of the old administration of the Covenant of Grace & of the new.1. They both lead to one and the same Mediator, by and through whom the blessings promised are to be expected; Christ at his Re­surrection raised up (together with himself) many of the Saints who died under the former Covenant as we read, Mat. 27.52. Where­by he shewed that the benefit of his Mediation, Death and Resurrecti­on did belong to them under the old Covenant as well as to us un­der the new. But some will perhaps say that Christ is called the Me­diator of the New Testament. Heb. 9.15. Answ. He is so in respect of actual and personal confirmation of it by his own blood, which was not done in the old Covenant. But he was Mediator of the old Cove­nant as may appear by the types that did prefigure him, and in re­spect of the vertue and efficacy of his blood which was to be shed, which did take away the sins committed under the old Covenant as to them that truly believed in him. Hereunto agrees that in Heb. 13.8. Jesus Christ the same yesterday, and to day, and for ever, that is, as to the vertue of his death.

2. The same condition is required under both administrations, namely Repentance and Faith in the Messiah. 'Tis true, many of the Jews under the old Covenant sought Righteousness by the works of the Law, and not by Faith in the Messiah, but this was their error and sin. It was not the true Doctrine of that Covenant.

3. Under both there was the same Law and Rule of Life to walk by, viz. the Moral Law. Jam. 28. This Law is called [...], a Royal or a Kingly Law, because it hath a Kingly and authoritative power over all Mankind.

4. They both propound the same Salvation. God would not have called himself the God of Abraham, Isaac and Jacob if they had not been saved. Neither would the place of Rest ha [...]e been called Abrahams bosome, if Abraham himself had not had part in that place of Rest. But some will object, Heb. 8.8 9. Where 'tis said, the New Covenant is not as the Old. I answer, We must distinguish betwixt the substance of the Cove­nant and the manner of its dispensation. In respect of the dis­pensation, the new is not as the old though it be as to substance. As Rebecca vailed, and unvailed was the same woman, and yet not the same. The same in person, not the same in habit and [Page 77] attire. That which brought the blessing to Abraham was this, that he believed on that seed, which was to spring from him, looking for Righteousness and Life by him. So then the old Cove­nant spoken of in the old testament and the new, which is now published in the Gospel, are for substance one and the same with­out any essential difference between them. But though they thus agreed, yet in many things they differed. As particularly.

1. The old administration of the Covenant of Grace was more burthensome, the new is more easie, this the Apostle plainly inti­mates, Acts 15.10. Now therefore why tempt ye God, to put a yoke upon the neck of the Disciples, which neither our Fathers nor we were able to bear. And Gal. 4.3. Even so we, when we were children, were in bondage under the elements of the World. There were required under the old Covenant, Circumcision, costly Sacri­fices and Oblations, tedious journeys to Jerusalem, at the three solemn feasts, restraint from many liberties which we enjoy under the new.

2. The one was more dark, the other is more clear. Eternal life was not so clearly discovered in the old Testament as it is in the new, 2 Tim. 1.10. Yea Christ himself and his offices, and benefits were then but darkly revealed. Hence the Gospel is called the revelation of the mystery kept secret since the World began, Rom. 16.25. not that it was absolutely hid or kept secret, but comparatively in respect of the more clear and plain discovery of it afforded to us in these dayes. Hence that of our Saviour to his Disciples, Matth. 13.16, 17. Blessed are your eyes for they see; and your ears, for they hear, for verily I say unto you that many Prophets and Righteous men have desired to see those things which ye see, and have not seen them: and to hear those things which ye hear and have not heard them. It was meet that the glory of a clearer discovery of eternal life should be reserved to Christ him­self. Now the veil is done away.

3. A less forcible influence and efficacy accompanied the old administration than doth the new. The spirit of Christ is now poured forth more abundantly since his Ascension, and a more mighty operation of the Spirit accompanies the ministry of the Gospel, 2 Cor. 3.6.

4. A more servile spirit acted in those who were under the old Administration they being drawn generally more by [Page 78] the terrors of the Law, than by the promises of Grace.

5. In respect of extent, they much differ. For the old was revealed but to few in comparison, viz. to the Jews and their Pro­selytes, whereas the grace of the Gospel is held forth to all Nations.

6. The old Covenant was to last but for a time, viz. till the time of reformation. Heb. 9.10. but the new is to last unto the end of the world, and shall never wax old or wear away.

7. They differ in respect of their Sacraments. Circumcision and the Passeover which were the chief Sacraments under the old Administration were bloody Sacraments, for Christs blood was then to be shed. But under the new, our Sacraments are unbloo­dy, for Christs blood is shed.

8. They differ as to the manner of their ratification. The old was ratified by the blood of the Levitical Sacrifices, the new by the blood of the Son of God.

Having thus spoken of the Covenant of Grace in the general, and of the old and new dispensation thereof in particular, let us now consider what use we are to make of this Doctrine.

1. Let us bless God for making this Covenant with faln Man. Let us consider the freeness of it. There was nothing in us but our misery to move him to it. And he made no such Covenant with the Angels that fell. 2. Let us consider the sureness of it; God hath confirmed it. 1. by his word and promise, 2. by his oath. 3. by his sea. 'Tis indeed called sometimes a Covenant, and sometimes a Testament. A Covenant with reference to God the Father who hath made this gracious Covenant with the children of men, and in it hath promised many great priviledges and blessings unto them that perform the conditions therein required. He promises in this Covenant.

  • 1. That He will be our God, Heb. 8.10. And that is a ve­ry large, and comprehensive promise
  • 2. That He will forgive all our sins. And therefore when God shewed mercy to his people of Israel, He is said to have remembred his Covenant, Exod. 2.24. And the Saints of old did use in their approaches to God to plead this Covenant and to ground their Faith and Hope on it. Psal. 74.20. Jer. 14.21.
  • 3. That He will renew and sanctify our natures, and write his Law upon our hearts.
  • [Page 79]4. That He will put his fear into our hearts that we shall not depart from him. Jer. 32.40. and so will preserve us by his grace and power from total and final Apostacy.
  • 5. That no outward thing that He sees good for us, shall be wanting to us.
  • 6. That He will give us Eternal glory in the other life.

And as it is called a Covenant with reference to [...]od, so 'tis called a Testament with reference to Christ, who by his blood and death confirmed it, and as a Testator bequeathed life and salvation to all penitent Believers; He having all power and auth [...]rity given him both in Heaven and Earth. Mat. 28.18.

2. Let us bless God that we were born under the best dis­pensation of the Covenant of Grace. 'Tis an unvaluable mercy to be born under the new Covenant or Gospel dispensation. This is called a bettter Covenant, as being established on better promises, Heb. 8.6. viz. more spiritual, more clear, and more extensive. The old was a ministration of the letter, 2 Cor. 3.6, 7, 8. It literally declared what was to be done, but comparatively there was little spiritual ability afforded for the performing of the things injoyned; I say comparatively the old had but a weak operation in respect of the new. Not that the old had no Spiritual effica­cy; For many under it were eminent in Grace, as Abraham, Mo­ses, Josiah, Hezekiah, &c. but the more plentiful effusion of the Spirit was reserved till Christs Ascension.

3. As ever we expect to injoy the priviledges and benefits of the Covenant of Grace, let us make conscience to perform the condi­tions therein required, which are these.

1. Repentance, which is a Grace necessary to prepare us to re­ceive Christ.

2. Faith in Christ. We cannot become the Children of God, but by Faith in Christ Jesus, Gal. 3.26.

3. Obedience which is a grace necessary to inable us to walk answerably to this holy Covenant, Deut. 10.12, 13. And now Israel, what doth the Lord thy God require of thee, but to fear the Lord thy God, to walk in all his ways, and to love him, and to serve the Lord thy God with all thy heart, and with all thy soul? To keep the Commandments of the Lord and his Statutes which I com­mand thee this day for thy good.

CHAP. III. Of the Mediator between God and Man.

SECT. I. Of the Titles of the Mediator.I believe in Iesus Christ his only Son our Lord.

JEsus Christ the only Son of God is the Mediator of the Co­venant of Grace. Concerning whom we shall inquire 1. What his Titles are by which he is called. The Titles given him in the ancient Creed are four. Jesus, Christ, the only Son of God, our Lord; of all which I shall speak in or­der.

1. Jesus; Jesus. which signifies a Saviour. God by an Angel gave him that name, Matth. 1.21. He was designed by God the Father to perform for the Children of Men whatsoever is im­plied in his name. Jesus denotes the work and business for which he came into the World. The Angel told the Shepherds, Luke 2.11. unto you is born this day in the City of David a Saviour, who is Christ the Lord, so 1 Tim. 1.15. This is a faithful say­ing and worthy of all acceptation, that Jesus Christ came into the World to save Sinners, and here let us consider how Jesus is a Saviour, and why truly and properly so called. This will more particularly appear, if we consider the great evils he saves us from, and the great benefits he hath purchased for us.

1. He saves us from the guilt of sin. By his exact Obedience to the Law, and by his Sufferings and Passion he hath made sa­tisfaction to the Justice of God for our sins. He hath trod the Wine­press of his Fathers Wrath for us. Rev. 19.15. He hath born our sins in his own body on the tree. 1 Pet. 2.24.

2. From the dominion of sin, we have a promise, Rom. 6.14. that sin shall not have dominion over us, because we are not under the Law as a Covenant of Works exacting perfect obedience, and ministring no strength to perform it; but under a Covenant of Grace in Christ which ministers strength to resist sin and overcome it. So Tit. 2.14. The Apostle tells us, that Christ gave himself for us, that he might redeem us from all iniquity, and purifie unto him­self a peculiar people, zealous of good works.

3. From Satan. He rescues us, 1. from his power and domi­nion. The Seed of the woman, Gen. 3.15. destroys the power of the old Serpent the Devil. And therefore the Apostle tells us, Acts 26.18. that he was sent to preach the Gospel to the Gentiles that thereby he might open their eyes, and turn them from dark­ness to light, and from the power of Satan unto God, that they might receive forgiveness of sins, and inheritance among them that are sanctified. 2. From his Temptations. By Faith in Christ we are inabled to quench the fiery darts of the Devil, Eph. 6.16. And the Apostle tells us, 1 John 5.18. that whosoever is born of God keepeth himself that the wicked one toucheth him not; that is, tactu qualitativo (as Cajetan saith) so as to leave an impression of his own Devilish nature upon him. 3. From his Accusations, Rev. 12.10. I heard a loud voice saying in heaven, now is come Salva­tion and Strength, and the Kingdom of our God, and the power of Christ, for the accuser of our brethren is cast down, which accuseth them before God day and night. And they overcame him by the blood of the Lamb, &c.

4. From the curse of the Law. He came not to take away the Law as a rule of life, but to free us from the curse of it. He hath redeemed us from the curse of the Law, by being made a curse for us, Gal. 3.13.

5. From death. The last enemy is Death. But Christ will raise our bodies to a glorious life and so destroy Death, 1 Cor. 15.26, 54.

Thus Christ is an All sufficient Saviour, able to save to the utter­most. Heb. 7.25. able to save both soul and body and that for ever, Heb. 5.9. He is the author of eternal Salvation to all that obey him. And therefore Ephes. 5.23. He is stiled the Saviour of his mystical body.

All the three Persons save, but in a different manner.

  • The Father saves by the Son.
  • [Page 82]The Son by paying the price of our Ransom and Redemp­tion.
  • The Holy Ghost by perswading the heart savingly to close with Christ for the obtaining this Salvation.

Wouldst thou (therefore O sinner) have Christ to be thy Sa­viour; then 1. break off thy si [...]s by Repentance, and surrender thy self up to him to be pardoned in his blood, and sanctified by his spirit. For though Christ be able to save and willing to save, yet they that remain impenitent and disobedient have neither part nor portion in him.

2. Labour to stir up in thy heart a high love to Christ who has done so much for thee, 1 Cor. 16.22. If any man love not the Lord Jesus Christ, says the Apostle, let him be Anathema, Maranatha. So much of his first Title Jesus.

The second Title of our Saviour is Christ, Christ. which signifies anoint­ed, now He was anointed by the Spirit of God to three Offices.

To be our

  • Prophet.
  • Priest.
  • King.

Messias and Christ signifie the same thing, Joh. 1.14. we have fo [...]nd the Messias which being interpreted is the Christ.

Among the Jews after the Babylonish Captivity, the name Messiah was very frequent and familiar. In the Chaldee paraphrase The Chaldee Paraphrase was not an Exposi­tion word for w [...]rd of the Hebrew Text, but it took in the general sense of the learned Jews by way of Comment. now extant there is express mention of the Messiah in above seventy pla­ces.

The Jews expected a Messias to come of their own Nation, of the Tribe of Judah, and of the Family of David. And so was Christ our Lord.

In the old Testament three sorts of persons were anointed, Kings, Priests, and Prophets. To these three Offices was Jesus an­nointed, and took them all on him for our benefit. For a three­fold misery lay upon men that were to be saved; 1. Ignorance and blindness of mind. 2. Guilt, which we were not able to satisfie for. 3. Depravation, and corruption of nature, Bondage and Cap­tivity [Page 83] to Sin and Satan, which we were not able to free our selves from. Suitable to these three necessities, Christ is Anointed to a Threefold Office, of Prophet, Priest, and King: He was a Prophet to teach us, a Priest to make Atonement for us, and a King to go­vern us, and defend us. Of these his Three Offices I shall speak in order.

1. He took on him the Office of a Prophet. Christ was a Prophet. Anointing with Oyl was a Ceremony used in the Old Testament, whereby three sorts of persons, viz. 1 Kings 19.16. Prophets, Lev. 8.2.12.30. Priests, and Kings were inau­gurated into their Office. And their Ʋnction signified, 1. Their call to their Office. 2. A collation of gifts to fit them for their Office.

As Oyl does revive and refresh, so the effusion of the graces of the Spirit of God makes Persons fit and apt for the work to which they were called. Thus Christ though he were not materially, yet he was really Anointed by God to this Threefold Office, with the giftsHae duae part [...]s Un­ctioris Christi si [...] differunt, quod do­norum collatio ad humanam naturam tantum, ordinatio ad officiū, ad utram (que) naturam pe [...]tinet. and graces of the Holy Ghost, which quickned and made him joy­ful in all his undertakings for our Redemption. Which Anoint­ing or effusion of grace into his humane Nature, he received not in measure, John 3.34. But abundantly, above what was ever imparted either to Angels or any of the members of his mystical Body. This may appear from Psal. 45.7. compared with Heb. 1.9. Thou hast loved Righteousness and hated iniquity, therefore God even thy God hath Anointed thee with the Oyl of gladness above thy fellows. And from Isa. 61.1. compared with Luke 4.18. The Spirit of the Lord is upon me because he hath Anointed me to preach the Gospel to the poor, &c. Acts 10.30. God hath Anointed Jesus of Nazareth with the Holy Ghost and with Power, &c. And the Apostle tells us, Acts 3.22, 23. That Moses had Prophesied of this great Prophet commanding he should be heard and obeyed in all things. Deut. 18.15.18, 19. Now our Saviour executed his Pro­phetical Office by making known the will of God to the Children of men, and by revealing to them the way of Salvation.

His teaching was of Two sorts,

  • Outward.
  • Inward.

For his Out-ward teaching.

1. He taught by the Patriarchs and Prophets that lived before his coming in the Flesh, 2 Pet. 1.21. For Prophesie came not in Old time by the will of man: But Holy men of God spake as [Page 84] they were moved by the Holy Ghost.

2. He taught himself in Person for the space of about Three years and a half. John 12.49. For I have not spoken of myself, but the Father which sent me, he gave me a commandment what I should say, and what I should speak, Eph. 4.21. The Apostle tells the Ephe­sians they would not give themselves up to Licenciousness, if so be they had been taught by him, as the truth is in Jesus; that is, had received the Divine truth as it was preached by Christ himself, and is delivered in his Gospel. John 15.15. All things that I have heard of my Father, I have made known unto you, John 8.26. I have many things to say, and he that sent me is true, and I speak to the Word those things which I have heard of him. And Vers. 28. Then said Jesus unto them, when ye have lift up the Son of man, then shall ye know that I am he, and that I do nothing of my self; but as my Father hath taught me, I speak these things.

Here let us observe.

  • 1. The Matter he taught which (in general) was what he had heard and received of his Father. John 7.16. My Doctrine is not mine but his that sent me. Joh. 17.8. For I have given unto them the words which thou gavest me, and they have received them, and have known surely that I came out from thee, and they have believed that thou didst send me. In particular he taught both Law and Gospel.
  • The Law he vindicated from the corrupt glosses of the Pharisees, who placed the observance of it in outward acts. But he shews that the Law forbids not only outward acts but in-ward lusts also. And besides the Law, he preached also the Gospel; as you may see, Joh. 6.40. And this is the will of him that sent me, that every one that seeth the Son, and believeth on him, may have everlasting life, and I will raise him up at the last day. And John 3.16. God so loved the World that he gave his only begotten Son, that whosoever believeth in him should not perish, but have everlasting life.
  • 2. Let us observe also the places where he taught.
    • 1. In the Synagogues, Mark 6.2.
    • 2. In the Temple, Matth. 26.55.
    • 3. In the Cities and Villages, Mark 6.6. Luke 8.1.
    • 4. By the Sea-side, and out of a Ship, Mark 4.1. Matth. 8.2.
    • [Page 85]5. In Houses and Streets, &c. John 13. & Chap. 14. Chap. 15. & Chap. 16. Luke 13.26.
    • 6. On the Mount, Matth. 5. & Chap. 6. & Chap. 7.
  • 3. Let us observe the manner of his teaching which was frequently by Parables and Similitudes; and he spake with Authority.
  • 4. Let us observe how he confirmed his Doctrine with sun­dry Miracles, which were real, plain, open, and visible to Multitudes of Spectators, and Witnesses, Matth. 11.4, 5.

3. He taught also by his Apostles, Evangelists, and Ministers, giving them extraordinary gifts and stirring up some of them to write Books by the inspiration of his Holy Spirit, for the Churches use, Eph. 4.11, 12.

4. He now teaches outwardly by those Pastors and Teachers and Ministers of his word, whom in all ages he raises up for that pur­pose. And thus much of his outward Teaching.

As for his inward Teaching, he performed that of Old, and so does also now by his Holy Spirit, 1 Pet. 1.10, 11. Of which Salvation the Prophets have enquired and searched diligently, who Prophesied of the grace that should come unto you: Searching what, or what man­ner of time the Spirit of Christ which was in them did signifie, when it testified beforehand the sufferings of Christ, and the glory that should follow. John 16.13, 14. Howbeit, when he the Spirit of Truth is come, he will guide you into all truth: for he shall not speak of him­self; but whatsoever he shall hear that shall he speak: and he will shew you things to come. He shall glorifie me: for he shall receive of mine, and shall shew it unto you.

It remains now that we consider what improvement we are to make of this Doctrine that Christ is a Prophet. Let us learn these Lessons from it.

1. If Christ be so great a Prophet, and teaches now by his Mini­sters, then they should be listned to as Dispensers of his Mysteries, 1 Cor. 4.1, 2. Let a man so account of us, as of the Ministers of Christ, and Stewards of the Mysteries of God, &c.

2. We should pray to Christ that he would please to teach us in­wardly by his holy Spirit.The Spi­rit teaches by inlightning the minde, and inclining the heart, and bowing the will to obey.

3. We should labour to be humble. For the humble he will teach.

2. Christ was a Priest. Christ was a Priest.

There are Two parts of his Priest-hood

  • Oblation.
  • Intercession.

1. Oblation. We were all liable by reason of our sins, to eter­nal punishment, from which we could not be freed except our sins were remitted. Now without shedding of blood there was no remis­sion, Heb. 9.22. It was therefore necessary that Christ should ap­pear to put away sin, by the Sacrifice of himself, Heb. 9.26.

2. When Jesus had offered up himself a Propitiatory Sacrifice for our sins. He ascended up on high, and entred into the Holy of Holies to make intercession for us, Rom. 8.34. Who is he that condemneth? It is Christ that died, yea rather that is risen again, who is even at the right hand of God, who also maketh intercession for us. Heb. 7.25. He ever liveth to make intercession for us.

In the time of the Old Levitical Priest-hood the High-Priests Office had two Parts.

1. Oblation to offer up Sacrifice.

2. Presentation of it in the Holy of Holies with prayer and in­tercession unto God to accept it for the sins of the People. See Levit. 16 from 11, to 17.

Now in answer to this Type there are two distinct parts of Christs Priest-hood.

1. The offering up himself a Sacrifice on the Cross for us, Heb. 9.26. which answers to the killing of the Sacrifice without the Holy of Holies.

2. He carried this his Blood virtually into the Holy of Holies, name­ly into Heaven, Heb. 9.12. where he appears and there also prays and intercedes for us in the virtue and merit of that Blood. And the Type of those prayers was the Cloud of Incense made by the High Priest. Both these parts of his Priesthood the Apostle men­tions, 1 Joh. 2.2. Where he calls Christ a Propitiation or a Pro­pitiatory Sacrifice for our sins, and an Advocate to the Father for us. Christ therefore offered a Satisfactory Sacrifice to God for us on the Cross, and now intercedes for us in Heaven.

The virtue of Christs Priest-hood began with the first sinner that [Page 87] was pardoned. By him alone all that are pardoned are accepted, and without him none ever were, or will be accepted. His blood was reputed by God as shed from the time that the first Promise of the Covenant of Grace was made; namely, that the Seed of the Woman should bruise the Serpents Head, Gen. 3.15. And therefore Christ is said, Rev. 13.8. to be a Lamb slain from the beginning, that is, in Gods Decree; So that the Fathers that lived before he was offe­red, injoyed the benefit of his Death and Sufferings. They were saved merito pretii praestandi, as we are saved merito pretii praestiti. And of this Priesthood of our Saviour there is no end in regard of the virtue and efficacy of it. And thus we see how Christ was our Priest and how he made atonement for our sins by his perfect obedience and sufferings. His Person God-man was the Priest. The Sacrifice was his humanity, the Lamb of God without blemish. The Altar which consecrated this Sacrifice and added merit to the sufferings of his humanity was his God-head. And thus he made himself a Sacrifice for our sins. Three things Christ hath done for us as our Priest.

  • 1. He hath obeyed the Law perfectly.
  • 2. He hath offered up himself a Sacrifice for our sins.
  • 3. He now lives to make intercession for us.

From all that hath been said we should learn these les­sons.

1. That Christs active and passive obedience is of sufficient value, worth and merit, to satisfie Gods Justice for all our sins. For in that he voluntarily took on him our humane nature, and so vo­luntarily put himself under the obligation of the Law, his very active obedience becomes meritorious.

2. That Christ did intend his obedience and sufferings for this end and purpose.

3. That God has accepted of what Christ has done and suffered as a sufficient price for our Redemption.

4. We should learn from hence highly to prize Christs Sacrifice. 'Tis the great relief we have against sin. He has made satisfaction to Divine Justice, so that God is now reconcilable to fallen Man in and through him.

5. This should teach us to have a great care of our precious souls. The great price paid to ransom them should teach us their worth. We are wont to be exceeding careful to keep things [Page 88] that cost dear. Never any thing cost more than the soul.

6. Seeing Christ was Crucified for our sins, we should learn from him to crucifie sin in our selves, Gal. 5.24. They that are Christs have crucified the flesh with its affections and lusts.

7. Seeing Christ suffered so much for us, we should be content, yea ready to suffer for him when ever he calls us to it.

8. From the consideration of Christs intercession and the constan­cy and prevalency of it, we should encourage our selves to go to God in and through him for help in all our needs. He is a powerful advo­cate.

9. The Consideration of Christs oblation of himself once for us, and his continual intercession still performed in heaven for us, should inflame our hearts with intire love to him. He deserves our best, our most inlarged affections. We can never love him enough. I come now to Christs third Office.

3. Christ was a King. Christ was a King. God speaking of his Son, Psal. 2.6. says, I have set my King upon my holy hill of Zion. Zech. 9.9. Rejoyce greatly, O daughter of Zion; shout O daughter of Jerusalem: Behold, thy King cometh unto thee: He is just, and having Salvation, lowly, and riding upon an Asse, and upon a colt, the fole of an Asse. This is applied to our Saviour, Mat. 21.5. The Prophet Isaiah fully attests this. Isa. 9.6, 7. For unto us a Child is born, unto us a Son is given, and the Government shall be upon his shoulder: and his name shall be called, Wonderful, Counseller, the mighty God, the everlasting Father, The Prince of Peace. Of the increase of his Government and Peace there shall be no end; upon the Throne of David, and of his Kingdome shall he sit, to order it, and to establish it with Judgment and with Justice, from henceforth even for ever: the zeal of the Lord of Hosts will perform this. And Luke 1.33. 'Tis said of Him, He shall reign over the house of Jacob for ever, and of his Kingdom there shall be no end. To which we may add Rev. 17.14. These shall make War with the Lamb, and the Lamb shall overcome them: for he is Lord of Lords, and King of Kings. Now there is a twofold Kingdom belonging to Christ.

1. Regnum Essentiale, an essential Kingdom which belongs to him as God.

2. Regnum Vicarium or a deputatory Kingdom and dominion which God gave him as Mediator. This Kingdom Christ admini­sters and his Kingly Office he executes several ways, and by several royal Acts.

1. By gathering to himself a People out of the several King­doms and Nations of the Earth, and making them willing (by infusing his grace into their hearts) to submit unto him.

2. By giving them Laws by which they are to walk.

3. By appointing to them Officers and Censures. Eph. 4.11. And he gave some Apostles and some, Prophets: and some Evangelists: and some Pastors and Teachers. V. 12. For the perfecting of the Saints, for the work of the Ministry, for the edifying of the body of Christ. And so for censures, and discipline, he has appointed how an offending Brother should be dealt with. 1. He should be privately admo­nished, then in the presence of two or three. And if he shall neg­lect to hear them, then they must tell it unto the Church: but if he neglect to hear the Church, then he must be unto them as an Heathen man, and a Publican. Mat. 18.15, 16, 17.

4. By restraining, and curbing, and subduing His and His Churches enemies. Particularly,

1. Sin, that it shall not have dominion over those that are His.

2. The World, with its baits and allurements.

3. Satan, delivering them from his temptations and wiles.

4. Wicked and ungodly men. Thus he executed his Kingly power in bringing destruction upon the Jews by the Roman Ar­mies; and that destruction is called his coming in his Kingdom. Mat. 16.28. Verily, I say unto you, There be some standing here, which shall not taste of death till they see the Son of Man coming in his Kingdom.

5. Death it self, 1 Cor. 15. He will despoil the Grave and make it give up all its Captives.

By judging the quick and dead at the last day. And then this his Mediatory Kingdom He will render up to his Father. 1 Cor. 15.24. Then cometh the end, when he shall have delivered up the Kingdom to God even the Father, when he shall have put down all rule, and au­thority, and power.

6. By supporting those that truly believe in him in all their af­flictions here.

7. By rewarding them in a most royal manner hereafter.

And thus much of the several ways whereby our Saviour exe­cutes his Kingly Office.

Now as to the quality of his Kingdom, we are to know, it is not of this World, it is a Spiritual Kingdom. John 18.36. Jesus answered, My Kingdom is not of this World: if my Kingdom were [Page 90] of this World, then would my Servants fight, that I should not be delivered to the Jews: But now is my Kingdom not from hence. Rom. 14.17. For the Kingdom of God is not meat and drink; but righ­teousness, and peace, and j [...]y in the Holy Ghost. In the King­dom of Christ,

1. The King is Spiritual, the Lord from Heaven.

2. The Subjects are Spiritual, those that are regenerated.

3. The Laws are Spiritual, reaching the inward man.

4. The Priviledges are Spiritual. Justification, Adoption, San­ctification, Glorification.

Now Christ's solemn inauguration into this His Kingly Office was at his Ascention into Heaven, and sitting on the right hand of the Fa­ther. Not but that he was a King by right before; but he entred on the ful and publick execution of this his office, when God raised him from the dead, and set him at his own right hand in heavenly places far above all Principalities and Powers, Eph. 1.20, 21. Then He whose name is the word of God, had on his vesture and on his thigh a name written, King of Kings and Lord of Lords. Rev. 19.13, 16.

Let us now consider what improvement we ought to make of this Article that Christ is a King.

1. If Christ be a King, we should daily pray that his Kingd [...]m may come, that is, His Kingdom of Grace into the hearts of men. We should all earnestly desire and pray that he may reign in our hearts, and the hearts of others by his holy Spirit.

2. This may shew us the blessedness of those that are his Sub­jects. They are under a powerful Protector.

3. We should all examine our selves whether his Kingdom beset up in us or no. Christ is sometimes called the Head of the Church, Eph. 1.22, 23. Let us seriously consider whether we are guided and governed by him as the members of the body are by the Head? and whether we do receive life and influence from him.

4. If Christ be a King, then we may assure our selves that he is able to defend his Church, and subdue the enemies of it, though they be never so strong or subtil.

5. If Christ be a King, then we should acknowledge his Sove­raignty. The Apostle tells us, Phil. 2.10 11. That at the name of Jesus every knee should bow, of things in Heaven, and things in Earth, and things under the Earth: And that every tongue should confess, that Jesus Christ is Lord, to the glory of God the Father. [Page 91] To bow at the name of Jesus is to confess his Soveraignty, to submit to his power, and to humble our selves before him.

6. If Christ be a King? We should pray that the Kingdoms contrary to his Kingdom, may be subverted, viz. the Kingdom of Sin, Satan, and Anti-Christ.

And thus much of Christs three-fold Office. We come now to speak of the third Title given him in the antient Creed which is, His only Son, Christ is the only Son of God. Thus Nathanael the true Israelite makes his confession of him, John 1.49. Rabbi thou art the Son of God, thou art King of Israel. Thus Martha expresses her Faith concerning him, John 11.27. I believe that thou art the Christ, the Son of God, which should come into the World. This was the famous confession of Peter, John. 6.69.His only Son. We believe and are sure that thou art that Christ, the Son of the living God, Mat. 16.16. And Simon Peter answered and said, Thou art Christ the Son of the living God. And the Gospel of John was written that we might believe that Jesus is the Christ, the Son of God, John 20.31. Now Christ is so the Son of God as no other is, or was, or ever can be. He is his only Son, his only begotten Son.

This I shall further explain by these particulars following.

2 Our Saviour had a real being and existence before his concep­tion here on Earth, and distinct from that being which he assumed here, John 8.58. Before Abraham was, I am. Yea he had a Being before the Flood, 1 Pet. 3.18, 19. For Christ also hath once suffered for sins, the Just for the unjust, (that he might bring us to God) being put to death in the flesh, but quickned in the Spirit: By which also he went and preached to the Spirits (now) in prison who were disobedient in the days of Noah. Yea he had a being be­fore the World began: for the World was made by him, so the A­postle tells us, Heb. 1.2. God hath in these last days spoken unto us by his Son, whom he hath appointed Heir of all things, by whom also he made the Worlds: Col. 1.17. He is before all things, and by him all things consist.

2. The being which he had before his conception was not a created being, but the Divine Essence, he was truly God, John 17.5. And now, O Father, glorifie thou me with thine own self, with the glory which I had with thee before the World was. See more in the third Section of the first Chapter.

3. The Divine Essence which he hath, was eternally commu­nicated [Page 92] to him from the Father (who was always Father as well as always God;) And this is called his Eternal Generation. And therefore he is called the only begotten Son of God, John 3.16. For God so loved the World that he gave his only begotten Son: That whosoever believeth in him, should not perish, but have everlasting life. And thus he is distinguished from the Holy Ghost, (who pro­ceeds from the Father and the Son,) and from the Adopted Sons of God, being his Eternal Son by eternal and ineffable Emanation. Joh. 7.29. I know him that sent me (says Christ) for I am from him, Joh. 1.18 No man hath seen God at any time; the only begot­ten Son, which is in the bosom of the Father, he hath declared him. B [...]t some will (possibly) here object, God the Father says of Christ, Psal. 2.7. Act. 13.30, 33. Thou art my Son, this day have I begotten thee. To which we answer, God speaks not there of Christs Generation, but of the manifestation of it, which was ac­complished at the time of his Resurrection, by which he was migh­tily declared to be the Son of God, Rom. 1.4. And though he was then declar'd to be so, yet his Generation was Eternal. The Grave is as the Womb of the Earth. Christ, when he was raised from the dead was (as it were) begotten to a new life, and on this account God who now raised him is stiled his Father. But some will further Object. Christ is called The first Born of every Crea­ture, Col. 1.15. How can he then be the Eternal Son of God? I answer, he is call'd The first born of every Creature, because he was begotten of God as the Son of his love, antecedently to all other Emanations from him, and before any thing was framed or created by him.

And thus much for the Explication of this Article. Let us now consider what improvement we should make of it.

1. This should shew us the excellency and dignity of the Person of the Messias, and should assure us of the infinite value of his active and passive obedience.

As our offences are aggravated by the consideration of the high dignity of the Person whom we have offended, so the value of Repa­ration ariseth from the dignity of the Person satisfying. And this satisfaction consisteth in the reparation of the honour which by our sin was cclipsed. And all honour doth increase proportionably as the person yielding it is more honourable or worthy.

2. This may shew us that the more worthy the Person of Christ [Page 93] was before he suffered, the greater was his condescention in stoop­ing to such great and unworthy sufferings for our sakes.

3. This greatly magnifies the love of God in sending his only begotten Son into the world to die for Sinners. This love of God is frequently extolled and admired by the Apostles, Rom. 8.32. He that spared n [...]t his own Son, but delivered him up for us all, how shall he not with him freely give us all things, 1 John 4.9, 10. In this was manifested the love of God towards us, because that God sent his only begotten Son into the World, that we might live through him. Herein is love, not that we loved God, but that he loved us, and sent his Son to be the propitiation for our Sins. What an amazing thing is this love of the Father in sending his only begotten Son to be our Redeemer, and what an amazing thing is this condescenti­on of the only Son of God to dy for such worms as we are.

I come now t [...] Christs fourth Title. Our Lord.Our Lord.

After our Sav [...] [...] Relation, viz. of the only Son of God, found­ed upon his eternal generation, followeth his Dominion as the necessary consequence of his Son-ship; because the only Son must of necessity be Heir and Lord of all in his Fathers house; and all others (which bear the name of Sons, whether they be Angels or Men) must be looked upon as his servants, who is King of Kings, and Lord of Lords, Acts 10.36. He is Lord of all, Mat. 28.18. All power is given unto him both in Heaven and Earth, Ephes. 1.20, 21, 22. God hath set him at his own right hand in the Heavenly places far above all principality and power, and might, and dominion, and hath put all things under his feet.

The word Lord signifies properly Dominion, and implies a right of possession and power of disposing. This premised, let us consider how and in what respects Christ is Lord?

As there are two natures united in the person of Christ, so there are two kinds of dominion belonging respectively to those na­tures. One inherent in his Divinity; the other bestowed on his humanity. One by which he is Lord, maker of all things. The other by which he is made Lord of all things.

Christ as God hath a supreme universal dominion over the Worlp. So Thomas acknowledges in those words, John 20.28. My Lord and my God. But Christ as Mediator has some kind of dominion or Lord­ship bestowed on him, and given unto him. And in this sense the [Page 94] Apostle says, Acts 2.36. He was made both Lord and Christ. And one branch of this his dominion, was his power on earth to forgive sins, Mat. 9.2, 6. He said therefore to the sick of the Palsie thy sins are forgiven thee, that they might know that the [...]on of Man had power on earth to forgive sins. And another is the right of Judicature, or Judging the World committed to him, Joh. 5.22. The Father hath committed all Judgment to the Son, and hath given him autho­rity to execute Judgment because he is the Son of Man. He will Judge the World by that man whom he hath ordained, Acts 17.31. But let us further consider by what right Christ is Lord.

1. By right of Creation, Joh. 1.3. All things were made by him, and without him was not any thing made that was made.

2. By right of sustentation, and preservation of the Creatures he hath made, Col. 1.17. And he is before all things, and by him all things consist, Heb. 1.3. He upholdeth all things by the word of his power.

3. By right of donation, ordination, and the appointment of God, Acts 2.36. To him all power is given both in Heaven and Earth.

4. By right of Redemption. The ransomer of a bondslave was wont to be his Lord. When we were bond-slaves to Sin and Satan, Christ paid our ransome. No bondage so great as ours was: no price so great as that which he paid; therefore no service too great for us to pay unto him.

5. By right of Covenant. In our Baptism we bind our selves and Covenant to be his. Thus we see by how many Titles Christ is Lord. If any shall further inquire how he exercises this his dominion. I Answer, In these particulars.

  • 1. In giving Laws to his Subjects and servants.
  • 2. In appointing Officers in his Church.
  • 3. In providing for, and protecting his Family.
  • 4. In correcting his servants for their miscarriages.
  • 5. In rewarding them according to their Works and Ser­vices, both here and hereafter.

The improvement we should make of this Doctrine is in short this. We should seriously consider whether we do indeed take Christ for our Lord as well as for our Saviour. Many do like Christs Saviourship well enough, but do not like his Soveraignty. They will not have him rule over them. But let us often think by how many Titles Christ is our Lord [by right of Creation, Susten­tation, [Page 95] Redemption and Covenant] that so we may stir up our hearts to own him as our Lord, and humbly to submit to him and to pay him the Homage we owe unto him, and heartily, chearful­ly, diligently and constantly to obey him even to our lives end.

SECT. II. Of the Person of Christ.

WE come now to consider what manner of person our Sa­viour was. He was God and Man in the same Person: The Eternal Son of God, the second person in the Trinity, took to himself our humane nature (a humane Soul and Body) and uni­ted it after a wonderful manner, to his God-head, and so God and Man became one person. This I shall labour to make out by these seven following particulars.

1. Jesus Christ who was God before by the Divine nature which he had from Eternity, was in the fulness of time made Man, Gal. 4.4.

2. He was made Man by assuming our humane nature unto himself, and joyning it to his Divine nature.

3. Although our humane nature was joyned with his Divine nature, (that is, with the nature common to the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost) yet was that Union made only in the Person of the Son. Not the Father nor the Holy Ghost, but it was the Son, that was incarnate.

4. The Divine nature did not assume an humane person; but the Divine Person of the Son did assume our humane nature. If Christ had only taken the Person of a man, then there must have been two Persons in Christ, (a Person assuming and a Person assu­med;) Yea, then that only Person which Christ had assumed should have been advanced, and saved by him. He therefore as­sumed not an humane Person, but he assumed the humane nature common to all the Sons and Daughters of Adam and Eve.

5. He took an humane Soul as well as an humane Body. For he increased in wisdom and stature, Luke 2.52. In the one, in re­spect [Page 96] of his body, in the other, in respect of his Soul. He, whose knowledge did increase with his years, must have a Subject proper for it, which is no other than an humane Soul. This was the Seat of his finite understanding, and directed will, distinct from the will of his Father, and consequently of his Divine nature as may appear by that, Luke 22.42. Not my Will, but thine be done.

6. In this union the two natures remain really distinct in Christ, without either conversion or transubstantiation of the one into the other; and without commixtion or confusion of both into one. There was no conversion of the humane nature into the Divine, or of the Divine into the humane.

7. Though with us the Soul and Body being united make a Per­son, yet in Christ the Soul and Body were so united, as to have their subsistence not of themselves (as in us) but in the God-head. No sooner was the Soul united to the Body, but both Soul and Body had their subsistence in the Second Person in the Trinity.

SECT. III. How our Saviour became Man?

THis union between our humane nature and the Deity of the Son of God was wrought in the womb of the Virgin Mary. Yea, our Saviour was not only made man in her, but of her; The humane nature which he assumed being made of her sub­stance. This I shall clear and make out by these assertions.

was con­ceived by the Holy Ghost.1. He was not conceived in her by the help of Man, but by the power of the Holy Ghost. Her womb was the Bride Chamber where the Holy Ghost did knit this indissoluble knot between the Deity of the Son of God and our humane nature. Joseph was only Christs legal Father, his Foster-Father, Luke 3.23. Being as was supposed the Son of Joseph. This conception therefore was wrought by the Holy Ghost. He immediately and miracu­lously inabled the Virgin Mary to conceive our Saviour, Luke 1.35. And the Angel said unto her, the Holy Ghost shall come upon thee, and the power of the highest shall overshadow thee, therefore [Page 97] that holy thing which shall be born of thee, shall be called the Son of God. The Holy Ghost did not perform any proper act of Gene­ration, (such as is the foundation of paternity) but framed the humane nature of Christ of the substance of the Virgin.

2. The humane nature of Christ was totally sanctified, and so fitted for a personal union with the Word, John 17.19. For their sakes I sanctified my self. Christ out of his infinite love humbled himself and became Man: Yet at the same time, out of his infinite purity, he would not defile himself by becoming sinful man. The humane nature in its first original was for­med by the Holy Ghost, and in its formation sanctified and so united to the Word; that as the first Adam was the fountain of our Impu­rity, so the second Adam might be the fountain of our Righteous­ness.

3. Christ took our nature cloathed with sinless infirmities: Cul­pable and sinful infirmities he did not take on him. Indeed poe­nal infirmities such as are common to all the Sons and Daughters of Adam (as to be subject to pain, grief, and sorrow, hunger, thirst, cold, &c.) such he took on him, (Isa. 53. v. 4. Surely he hath born our griefs and carried our sorrows:) But he took not on him poenal infirmities such as are personal. He took our sin­less infirmities to shew the truth of his humanity. He took them on himself that he might pity us, and might teach us by his holy example how to bear them.

4. As the Virgin Mary conceived our Saviour by the power of the Holy Ghost, so she brought him forth into the world. He was born of her. And under this head these particulars are to be taken into consideration.

1. Christ was born of a woman that was a pure Virgin, Born of the Vir­gin Ma­ry. un­touched by man, even when she brought him forth. The pro­mised Messias was to be born after a miraculous manner, Jer. 31.22. The Lord hath created a new thing in the earth, a woman shall incompass or inclose a man. It is a new Creation because wrought in a woman without the help of man. The Prophesie in Isaiah must be fulfilled, Isa. 7.14. Behold, a Virgin shall conceive, and bear a Son and shall call his name Immanuel. The Messias pro­mised before and under the Law was to be born of a Virgin.

2. The Messias was to be of the house and lineage of David. Of whom the Apostle says, Acts 2.30. that he being a Prophet, [Page 98] knew that God had sworn with an oath to him, that of the fruit of his loins according to the flesh, he would raise up Christ to sit on his Throne. And it is from many places of Scripture evident and certain, that Mary and so Christ did lineally descend from David.

3. Observe the time when Christ was born. It was when Augustus was Emperor and taxed the Jews and all Nations under his dominion, as we find, Luke 2.

4. Observe the place where our Saviour was born. It was in Village of Judah called Bethlehem, that the Prophesie in Micah might be fullfilled, Mich. 5.2. But thou Bethlehem, Ephratah, though thou be little among the thousands of Judah, yet out of thee shall he come forth unto me, that is to be ruler in Israel.

5. Let us consider the manner of his Birth, which was very mean, namely in the Stable of a common Inn.

6. Observe the first tidings or manifestation of his birth, which was made by Angels to poor Shepherds, Luke 2.10, 11. And the Angel said unto them. Fear not, for behold, I bring you good tidings of great joy, which shall be to all people. For unto you is born this day, in the City of David, a Saviour, which is Christ the Lord And thus we have shewed how our Lord and Saviour was born into the World, and became man. Before I shut up this particular, it will be needful that I shew why it was requi­site he should be both God and Man.

1. It was requisite he should be God for these reasons.

1. That by his Divine and mnipotent power, he might up­hold his Humanity that it should not sink under the weight of Gods wrath l [...]id upon him for our sins.This s [...]nne think was sha­dowed in [...]e Altar [...]n which the Sacrifice wa [...] to be burned, which was made of wood but covered with brass to keep it from bei [...]g co [...]umed. So Christ was Man, but the weakness of the humane nature was covered with [...] pow [...]r o [...] Divinity, so that it might be supported under its sufferings. The wrath of God was so heavy, that no meer Creature could bear up under it. The man-hood of Christ would have sunk under those sufferings, had not the Divine power upheld it.

2. That he might make his obedience and sufferings in the h [...] ­mane Nature of infinite value and merit. This One-man, this God-man was more worthy then all the men of the World put toge­ther. Th [...] humane Nature of Christ being Personally united to [Page 99] the God-head, is of more worth than all the Race of mankind. So that Christs obedience and sufferings do make a full satisfaction to God for all the dishonour done him by our sins.

3. That he might do those great things for us (after he had laid down his life for us) which none but God could do, viz.

1. To Baptize us with the Holy Ghost. None can send the Spi­rit of God into the hearts of men, but he who is God.

2. To repair his Image in us.

3. To subdue sin in us.

4. To conquer Satan for us.

5. To guide and carry his Church to Eternal life, through all those hindrances, that lie in their way.

6. To conquer Death and raise our bodies to a glorious Immor­tality.

Secondly, It was requisite he should be Man, for these reasons.

1. Mans Nature had sinned; therefore it was requisite mans Na­ture should suffer. It seems fit and requisite in respect of the justice of God, that the same Nature should be punish'd which had offended.

2. He could not have suffered, if he had not been man.

3. If our Mediator were only God, he could have performed no obedience, the God-head being free from all manner of sub­jection.

4. It was fit he should be man, that Satan might be vanquish'd in that Nature he had supplanted, Gen. 3.15. And I will put en­mity between thee and the Woman, and between thy seed and her seed: it shall bruise thy head and thou shalt bruise his heel.

5. That he might be a merciful High-Priest. For in that, in our Nature he experienced temptation, he knows how to succour and pity us when we are tempted. And lastly, He was both God and Man, that he might be a meet Mediator to deal between God and Man, and to work a Reconciliation between them.

SECT. IV. Of our Saviours Life.

HAving thus spoken of our Saviours Birth, and how he came into the World, it will be requisite we should now speak of his Life, and how he lived and conversed in this World, which the Ancient Creed mentions nothing of, but passes immediately from his being conceived by the Holy Ghost, and born of the Virgin Mary to his suffering under Pontius Pilat. I have in my Harmo­ny of the Four Evangelists fully set forth the History of the Life of our blessed Lord and Saviour. Here I shall only give a short Summary of what I have there more largely delivered, to which I refer my Reader.

The Life of our Saviour we have divided into Six Parts, and in each Part have taken notice of the Particulars observable.

The First Part of our Saviours life was from his Birth to his Baptism containing, the space of about Thirty Years. In which we have these particulars.

1 At Eight days old he was Circumcised, Luke 2.21. Matth. 1.25.

2. Mary the Fortieth day after her delivery goeth up to Jeru­salem to the Temple to be purified, where she and Joseph present the Child Jesus to the Lord according to the Law, Exod. 13.2, 12, 13. Mary presents the offering for her Purification, viz. (be­ing a poor Woman) a pair of Turtle Doves, Levit. 12.6, 8. Si­meon and Anna here acknowledge him and prophesie of him, Luke 2. from 22. to 41.

3. This done, Joseph and Mary return with Jesus to Bethlehem, and there continue for some time. For about Two Years after our Saviours Birth, the Magi or Arabian Astronomers who had in their own Country, at our Saviours Birth, seen a strange Star, or extraordinary brightness over Judea, and understanding either by some Old Prophesie, or New Revelation from God, that it signi­fied the Birth of the Messias promised to the Jews, they being moved by the Spirit, come to Jerusalem to inquire after the place where this New King should be born. They are told by Herod, [Page 101] and the Priests that the Birth-place of the Messias was to be at Beth­lehem. Herod bids them go, and inquire for him, and when they had found him, bring him word. They come to Bethlehem, and there finding him do homage to him, and present him with gifts. This done, being warned of God not to go back to Herod, they return into their own Countrey another way, Matth. 2. from 1. to 13.

4. After their departure Joseph is warned by God in a Dream to fly into Egypt, and so provide for the life of the Child; which accordingly he did, and there He, Mary and the Child re­mained till Herod was dead. But in the mean time Herod finding himself deceived by the Magi, and thinking that this young Child had been still at Bethlehem or thereabout, that he might be sure to destroy him, he commands all the Male Children from Two years old and under that were in Bethlehem, or the Coasts thereof to be killed, Mat. 2. from the 13. to the 19.

5. Not long after, Herod dying, Joseph is warned of God in a Dream to return with the young Child unto the Land of Israel, which accordingly he did, and dwelt in the City of Nazareth, Mat. 2 from 19. to the end.

6. Christ at Twelve Years old is brought to Jerusalem at the Passover, and there disputes with the Doctors in the Temple. From hence he went down with his Parents to Nazareth again, and there lived privately till his Baptism, Luke 2. from 41. to the end.

.7 John Baptist being newly entred into his publick Ministry, preaches Repentance and Baptizes. He sharply reprehends some of the Pharisees and Sadduces that came to be Baptized of him. He gives particular answers to the questions of the People, of the Pu­blicans, and of the Soldiers enquiring what every one of them ought to do. He gives his first Testimony to Christ, preferring him before himself, Luke 3. from 1. to the 18. Mat. 3. from 1. to the 13. Mark 1. from 7. to 9.

The Second Part of our Saviours life from his Baptism to the Passover next ensuing containing the space of half a Year, in which we have these particulars.

1. He is Baptiz'd by John in Jordan, and witnessed from Hea­ven to be the Eternal Son of God, and a Second Testimony by John given of him, Mat. 3. from the 13. to the 18. Mark 1. from 9. to [Page 102] 12. Joh. 1. from 15. to the 19. Luke 3. from 21. to 24.

2. Immediately after his Baptism he goes into the Wilderness, and is there assaulted by Satan with a Threefold Temptation, Mat. 4. from 1. to 12. Mark 1. from 12. to 14. Luke 4. from 1. to 14.

3. John being now Baptizing in Bathabara, some of the Phari­sees come from the Sanedrim at Jerusalem to enquire who he was. He tells them he was only the Fore-runner of the Messias, Joh. 1. from 19. to 29.

4. Christ now comes to John, whom John calls the Lamb of God, and declares that he was made known unto him to be the true Messias by the descending of the Holy Ghost upon him, John 1. from 29. to 35.

5. Upon this Testimony Two of John's Disciples follow Jesus, viz. Andrew and Peter, Joh. 1. from 35. to 43.

6. Christ calleth Philip, and Philip bringeth Nathanael to Christ, who acknowledges him to be the Son of God, Joh. 1. from 43. to the end.

7. Christ worketh his first Miracle at a Wedding in Cana, where he turns Water into Wine, and prepares to go unto the Passover now at hand, Joh. 2. from 1. to 13.

The Third Part of our Saviours life from the first Passover after his Baptism to the Second, wherein are comprehended the Acts of the first intire Year of his publick Ministry.

1. He purges the Temple of Buyers and Sellers, Joh. 2. from 13. to the end.

2. He instructs Nicodemus, concerning Regeneration and Faith in himself, Joh. 3. from. 1. to 22.

3. He institutes BaptismBaptism instituted, of which see a parti­cular Tract at the end. appointing his Disciples to Baptize, which they accordingly perform; John in the mean time Baptiz­eth in Enon, John 4.1, 2.

4. John's Disciples take it ill that Christ was more followed than their Master; from whence John takes occasion to instruct them in the difference betwixt himself and Christ; whose high dig­nity above himself he sets forth and declares; as also what they shall have from Christ who believe in him; and what they are to expect who believe not in him, John 3. from 25. to the end.

5. Herod Antipas now casts John into Prison; for reproving his incestuous taking of Herodias, Luke 3. from 18. to 21. Mark 6. from 17. to 21. Mat. 14. from 3. to 6.

6. Christ hearing of John's imprisonment, leaves Judea, and resolves to go into Galilee, Mat. 4.12. John 4. from 1. to 4. Mark 1.14.

7. Going into Galilee through Samaria, he talks with a Wo­man of Samaria, and revealeth himself to her, and instructs her concerning the right way of Worship; and that he is the Messiah: which she relates to the Inhabitants of the City Sychar, many of whom come out to him. He declareth to his Disciples upon this occasion what is his principal meat and drink; and that now the time of his Spiritual Harvest is at hand. Many of the Samaritans be­lieve in him, John 4. from 4. to 43.

8. He goeth from thence into Galilee, and being at Cana, he healeth a Nobleman's Son with a word of his mouth, that lay sick at Capernaum, John 4. from 43. to 55.

9. He preacheth with great fame in the Synagogues of the Gali­leans, Luke 4 from 14 to 16. Mark 4. from 14. to 16. Mat. 4.17.

10. He t [...]acheth in the Synagogue at Nazareth out of Esai. 61. that he himself is the promised Messiah; and sheweth by the in­stances of what was wrought by Elias for the Widow of Sarepta; and by Eliseus for Naaman the Syrian, that Gods favours are free and gratuitous, and therefore he might bestow them where he pleased, giving that for a reason why he did no Miracle there. They being angry with him endeavour to cast him headlong from the brow of a H ll, but he passing through the midst of them, es­caped their hands, Luke 4. from 16. to 31.

11. He comes now to Capernaum, and teacheth there on the Sabbath day, Mat. 4. from 13. to 17. Luke 4.31.32. Mark 1.21.22.

12. In the Synagoue there he dispossesses a man of an unclean Devil, Luke 4. from 33. to 38. Mark 1. from 23.29.

13. He cures Simon's Wife's Mother of a Fever, Luke 4. from 38. to 40. Mark 1. from 29. to 32. Mat. 8. from 14 to 16.

14. Also many other sick and possessed Persons, Mat. 8. from 16. to 18. Mark 1. from 32 to 35. Luke 4.40.41.

15. He goes from thence and preaches in many other Cities in Galilee, and casts out Devils, Mark 1. from 35. to 40. Luke 4. from 42. to 45. Mat. 4. from 23. to 26.

16. He cleanseth a Leper, sending him to the Priest to offer for his cleansing, according to the Law of Moses, Mark 1. from 40. to the end. Luke 5. from 12. to 17. Mat. 8. from 2. to 5.

17. In the presence of many of the Scribes and Pharisees, he cureth one sick of the Palsie, that was let down through the Roof of the House to him; and pronounceth his sins to be forgiven him, and proves he had Authority so to do, Mark 2. from 1. to 13. Luke 5. from. 17. to 27. Mat. 9. from 2. to 9.

18. He teaches the Multitude out of Peter's Ship, and after a miraculous draught of Fish, which he had helped them to, he promises to make him and Andrew, James and John, Fishers of men, Luke 5. from 1. to 12. Mark 1. from 16. to 21. Mat. 4. from 18. to 23.

19. He calleth Matthew the Publican from the receipt of custom to follow him, Mark 2. from 13. to 15. Mat. 9. Vers. 9. Luke 5.27.28.

20. Matthew invites him, and many other Publicans and sin­ners, to a Feast; to which he goes, and eats with them and justi­fies it, because he was a Physician of Souls. He gives reason why his Disciples fasted not at that time, as the Disciples of John and the Pharisees did, Mat. 9. from 10. to 18. Mark 2. from 15. to 23. Luke 5. from 29. to the end.

The Fourth Part of our Saviours Life from the Second Passover after his Baptism to the Third, containing the Acts of the Second Year of his publick Ministry. In which we have these particulars.

1. Jesus goeth again to Jerusalem at the Passover, and there healeth on the Sabbath day a man that had had an infirmity Thirty eight Years, lying at the Bath of Bethesda; who at his command carries away his Bed, and being reproved for it by the Jews, he he justifies himself by the warrant he had from him, so to do. The Jews hereupon seek to put Jesus to death, as one that brake the Sabbath, and made himself equal with God. Christ justifies this action, and asserts his equality and conjunction with the Father in all his works, such as are raising the dead, judging, receiving Di­vine honour, saving sinners, quickning those that are dead in tres­passes and sins: and farther shews by the Testimony of his Father, of John, and of his Miracles themselves, and of the Scriptures, who he was, John 5. from 1. to the end.

2. His Disciples pluck and eat Ears of Corn on the Sabbath day, and are by him defended for it against the Pharisees, by Scrip­ture and reason, Luke 6. from 1. to 6. Mat. 12. from 1. to 9. Mark. 2. from 23. to 29.

3. He heals a man on the Sabbath day that had a withered hand, and proves that the Sabbath was not profaned thereby: Hereupon the Pharisees and Herodians consult to destroy him, Mark 3. from 1. to the 7. Mat. 12. from 9. to 15. Luke 6. from 6. to 12.

4. To avoid this danger, he withdraws himself to a private place, but Multitudes flock to him, and he healeth the diseased among them, forbidding them to noise it abroad, that the Prophe­sie of him Recorded, Isa. 42.1. might be fulfilled, Mark 3. from 7. to 13. Mat. 12. from 15. to 22.

5. He goes up to a Mountain to Pray, and continues all Night in Prayer and then chuseth out of his Disciples Twelve Persons to be his Apostles, whose Names are there set down, and gives a reason why he chose Judas for one of them, Luke 6. from 10. to 17. Mark 3. from 13. to 20.

6. Then he cometh down with them, and healeth divers sick Persons, and the multitude so tumultuously flowed in upon them, that they had not time to eat Bread, and refresh themselves, Luke 6. from 17 to 20. Mark 3. from 19. to 22.

7. Seeing so great a Multitude there present, he went up into the Mountain again, as a place of advantage to speak more audi­bly to them, and there preached that Divine and excellent Sermon, called the Sermon in the Mount, in which,

1. He propounds the eight Beatitudes.

2. He admonishes his Apostles of their duty, comparing them unto Salt, Light, and a City set on a Hill.

3. He shews he does not oppose the Law, or the Prophets.

4. He vindicates several Laws from the corrupt glosses of the Pharisees, viz. the Sixth, the Seventh and the Third Commandment, and the Law of Retaliation, and the Law of loving our Neighbours.

5. He instructs his Apostles concerning giving Alms, concern­ing Prayer (giving them a breviary or pattern of Prayer) and concerning fasting.

6. He disswades them from inordinate carking and caring for the things of this life; and advises them in the first place to seek Gods Kingdom and his Righteousness.

7. He dehorts them from rash judging, and from giving that which is Holy to Dogs.

8. Exhorts them to fervency in Prayer; to do as they would be done by; to strive to enter in at the strait Gate.

9. He gives them a Caveat to beware of false Prophets, teach­ing them how to discern them.

Lastly, He shews them that it is not enough to profess him for their Lord and Master in words, except they do his will, and per­form his command, Mat. Chap. 5. Chap. 6. Chap. 7. Luke Chap. 6. from 20. to 50.

8. Having ended his Sermon he goes to Capernaum, and there heals the Centurions Servant, by his word only, that lay sick of the Palsie; and highly commendeth the Centurions faith; and upon this occasion foretels the Calling, Conversion, and Salvation of the Gentiles. Luke 7. from 1. to 11. Mat. 8. from 15. to 14.

9. He raises from the dead a widows son at Nain, Luk. 7. fr. 11. to 18.

10. John being still detained in Prison, and hearing a great fame of Christ's Miracles, sends Two of his Disciples to him, (not so much for his own as their satisfaction) to know whether he were the Messiah or no. Christ proveth by his Doctrine and Works, that he is the Messiah: He gives a glorious Testimony of the Person and Office of John, as the first Preacher, that the Spiri­tual Kingdom of the Messiah was begun; into which Multitudes thronged, though the Pharisees rejected the counsel of God towards themselves. He upbraids the Jews under the Parable of little Chil­dren in the Market place (sometimes piping merrily, sometimes singing mournfully) that they would not be won neither by John's Austerity, nor his Affability. Particularly threatens the Cities of Corazim, Bethsaida; and Capernaum, with very heavy Judgments: He joyfully acquiesces in the good pleasure of his Father, in hiding the mysteries of Salvation from the wordly wise (who will not submit to the teachings of Christ) and revealing them to Babes and Sucklings: He shews, the power of revealing the Mysteries of the Kingdom of Heaven is commited to him by his Father; and thereupon invites all weary and heavy laden sinners to come to him, and to take his Yoke upon them, promising them rest, Luke 7. from 18. to 36. Mat. 11. from 2. to the end.

11. Simon a Pharisee invites him to eat with him, where Mary Magdalen bedeweth his feet with her tears, and wipeth them with her hair; whereat Simon is offended, but Christ defends her by the Parable of the debtors; he forgives her sin and commends her Faith, Luke 7. from 36. to 51.

12. He goeth up and down with his Disciples, Preaching the Gospel, and certain pious women followed him, and ministred to him, of their goods; among whom was Mary Magdalen, out of whom seven Devils had been cast, Luke 8. from 1. to 14.

13. He cures one so possessed, that the Devil had taken from him both the use of Eyes and Tongue. The Pharisees blaspheme his Miracles, saying he did them by Belzebub, which he confutes several ways. He shews that Blasphemy against the Holy Ghost, is never forgiven; that an account must be given of every idle word, Mat. 12. from 22. to 38. Mark 3. from 22. to 31.

14. He rebukes the Pharisees for seeking a new sign: He refers them to that of Jonas, which typified his Resurrection: He op­poseth against their stiff-neckedness, the example of the Ninevites, and of the Queen of Sheba: by the similitude of an unclean spirit, that was cast out and returned again, he shews how it shall go with them, Mat. 12. from 38. to 46.

15. He shews whom he accounts his Mother and Brethren, Luk. 8 from 19. to 22. Mat. 12. from. to 51.46 Mark 3. from 31. to the end.

16. He teaches the People out of a Ship, presenting unto them nine Parables. 1. Of the Sower, the Seed, and four sorts of ground. 2. Of the Tares. 3. Of the Seed growing insensibly. 4. Of the grain of Mustardseed. 5. Of the Leven. 6. Of Trea­sure hid in a field. 7. Of the Merchantman and the Pearl. 8. Of the Net. 9. Of the Candle set in a Candlestick, and not put un­der a Bushel. He shews the cause why he taught in Parables, and expounds them to his Disciples, Mark 4. from 1. to 35. Mat. 13. from 1. to 53. Luke 8. from 4. to 19. Luke 13. from 18. to 22.

17. He passes over the Lake with his Disciples, sleeps in the Ship, and a great Tempest arising, he is awakened by them, he stilleth the Tempest, Mark 4. from 35. to 42. Mat. 8. from 23. to 28. Luke 8. from 22. to 26.

18. When they came on the other side of the Sea to the Coun­trey of the Gadarens, he there dispossesseth a man of a Legion of Devils, and permits them to enter into a Herd of Swine, who thereupon ran headlong into the Sea: The Gaderens offended at this, desire him to depart their Coasts, which he doth, and com­mands him that was cured to abide there, to make known what great things he had done for him, Mat. 8. from 28. to 35. Mark 5. from 1. to 21. Luke 8. from 26. to 40.

19. He crosses the Sea again to Capernaum, where he is gladly received, Mark 5.21. [...]uke 40. Mat. 9.1.

20. He raises Jairus's daughter that was dead, Luke 8. from 41. to 57. Mark 5. from 22. to the end, Mat. 9. from 18. to 27.

21. He restores two blind men to their sight, Mat. 9. from 27. to 32.

22. He casts a Devil out of a man, which made him speechless, Mat. 9. from 32. to 35.

23. He teaches now at Nazareth his Countrey, where he is de­spised, Mark 6. from 1. to 7. Mat. 13. from 54. to 59.

24. He hath compassion on the multitude who were as Sheep without a Shepherd; and exhorts his Disciples to pray that La­bourers may be sent into the Harvest, Mat. 9. from 35. to 39.

25 He sends out his twelve Apostles to Preach, and to work Miracles, he giveth them their Charge and Commission, and forti­fieth them against persecutions, and promises a blessing to those that receive them, Mat. 10. from 1. to 43. Mark 6. from 7. to 12. Luke 9. from 1. to 7.

26. The Apostles depart and Preach up and down, and cast out Devils, and anoint such as were sick with Oyl, and recover them; Mark 6. from 12. to 14. Matth. 11.1.

27. John Baptist is now beheaded by Herod, and his body bu­ried by his Disciples, Mark 6. from 17 to 30. Mat. 14. from 3. to 13.

28. Herod hearing of the fame of Christ, thinks him to be John Baptist risen from the Dead; others think him to be Elias or one of the old Prophets, Mat. 14.1, 2. Mark 6. from 14 to 18. Luke 9. from 7. to 10.

29. The Apostles having preached up and down, return to their Master, and give him an account of their Labours: He takes them with him into a desert place, whither a great Multitude follow­ed him, of about five thousand men, whom he feedeth with five loaves and two fishes, Mark 6. from 30. to 45. Mat. 14 from 13. to 22. Luke 9. from 10. to 18. John 6. from 1. to 14.

30. The People are so affected with this Miracle that they would forthwith have made him King, but he with­draws himself to avoid it, and sends his Disciples to Sea; in the mean time retires himself to the Mountain to pray; then he co­meth to his Disciples (they being in a great Tempest) walking on the Sea; Peter desires leave from him that he may come to him [Page 109] on the water, which being granted, Peter being afraid beginneth to sink, but is saved by him. He stilleth the Tempest whereby he is acknowledged to be the Son of God: He comes again into the Land of Genezareth, and heals many sick persons, John 6. from 14. to 22. Mark 6. from 45. to 57. Mat. 14. from 22. to 37.

31. The multitude that had been miraculously fed by him, fol­low after him, and find him at Capernaum: He reproves them for following him for loaves, and admonishes them to seek for in­corruptible food, which is to be obtained by Faith in him: He shews that Faith in him comes from the Father: He declares himself to be the Bread of life to true Believers; that his Flesh is meat indeed, and his Blood drink indeed, which must be eaten and drunken Spiritually to obtain eternal life. At this Doctrine several of his Disciples stumbled: he instructs them concerning the right sence of his words: Many of his Disciples forsake him: Peter and the other Apostles confess that he hath the words of eternal life, and abide with him: He declareth that one of them is a Devil, John 6. from 22. to the end.

The fifth part of our Saviours life, from the third Passeover after his Baptism, to the fourth, containing the Acts of the third year of his publick Ministry. In which we have these particu­lars.

1. Our Saviour now goeth up to the Passeover at Jerusalem, and making there but a short stay, returns into Galilee, John 7.1.

2. Certain Scribes and Pharisees come thither to him from Jeru­salem, and quarrel with him because his Disciples did eat with un­washen hands. He reproves their Hypocrisie and Transgressing of Gods Commandments through their Traditions, instancing in the Fifth Commandment. Then he sheweth what it is that truly defileth a man, viz. that which cometh from within, out of the heart, Mat. 15. from 1. to 21. Mark 7. from 1. to 24.

3. He now retires himself into the borders of Tyre and Sidon, where he casteth out a Devil out of the Daughter of a Canaanitish woman, highly commending the strength of her Faith, who would not be discouraged though he called her Dog, Mat. 15. from 21. to 29. Mark 7. from 24. to 31.

4. He healeth one deaf and dumb, putting his fingers into his ears, and saying, Ephatha, and touching his Tongue, Mark 7. from 31. to 38.

5. He goeth up into a Mountain, and there he heals all man­ner of diseased People brought unto him, Mat. 15. from 29. to 32.

6. He feeds four thousand men with seven loaves and a few lit­tle Fishes, Mat. 15. from 32. to the end, Mark 8. from 1. to the 10.

7. He refuses to give the Pharisees and Sadduces any new Sign from Heaven, but refers them to what was prefigured by the rising of Jonah out of the Whales belly, Mark 8. from 10. to 13. Mat. 16. from 1. to 5.

8. He warneth his Disciples of the leaven and corrupt Doctrine of the Pharisees, Sadducees and Herodians, Mark 8. from 13. to 22. Mat. 16. from 5. to 13.

9. At Bethsaida he restores a blind man to his sight, Mark 8. from 22. to 27.

10. Divers opinions of the people concerning him. Peters con­fession of him to be the true Messiah, whom he commendeth, and promiseth upon the rock of that truth to build his Church, which he will govern by the Ministry of his Apostles and his other Servants that shall succeed them, giving them the Keys of his Kingdom. He foretelleth his Death and Resurrection, and rejects the evil Counsel of Peter, disswading him from dying and suffering. He requires of all that would be his Disciples, to be willing to bear the Cross, and to be ready to lay down their lives for him. He gives them an intimation that some of them there present should see a Type and resemblance of his second coming in the destruction he should bring upon Jerusalem, and the Jewish Nation by the Romans for their obstinacy. Mat. 16. from 13. to 29. Mark 8. from 27. to the end. Mark 9.1. Luke 9. from 28. to 28.

11. He taketh Peter, James, and John into an high Mountain, and is transfigured before them; Moses and Elias appearing to them: from Heaven he is declared to be the Son of God. He teach­eth that John is that Elias that was to come, Mat. 17. from 1. to 14. Mark 9. from 2. to 14. Luke 9. from 18. to 37.

12. He casteth out a Devil that inflicted dumbness and deafness on a Lunatick, which his Disciples were not able to do, the cause whereof is declared, as also the power of Faith quickned by Fa­sting and Prayer, Mat. 17. from 14. to 22. Mark 9. from 14. to 30. Luke 9. from 37. to 43.

13. He again foretelleth his Death and Resurrection, Mark 9. from 30. to 33. Mat. 17. from 22. to 24. Luke 9. from 43 to 46.

14. He pays the half shekel for himself and Peter, miraculous­ly fetching it out of the Fishes mouth, Mat. 17. from 24. to 28.

15. He teacheth by the example of a little Child, who is the greatest in the Kingdom of Heaven, and among his Disciples. He forbiddeth to hinder such as cast out Devils in his name. He pro­miseth a reward to any that do the least good office to any that are his. He sheweth what punishment they are worthy of, that give offence, and how narrowly men must beware they give not scan­dal to little ones, whom the Holy Angels do take care of, and whom he is come to save, as he declares by the similitude of a lost Sheep. He shews what mischiefs are like to come to the World by reason of the offences and scandals. That we must refrain from what­soever is an occassion of sin, or an hindrance to Salvation, though as dear to us as our right eye, right hand, or foot, rather than go to Hell, where the worm dieth not, and where the fire is not quenched. That the hearts of Christians must be seasoned with the Salt of Grace and Holiness, That they his Apostles are the Salt of the Earth, and must be of savoury Spirits themselves, and by the Savouriness of their Doctrine and Conversation, must sea­son others, and maintain concord and union among themselves. He gives rules about dealing with a trespassing and offending Bro­ther, and shews what the office and power of the Church is in such a case, when the first and second admonition doth not pre­vail to reform him. He promises his gracious presence with his Church, be the number great or small, when they joyn together in Prayer or Church-censures. He shews how we must be ready always to forgive, which is declared by the Parable of a King, forgiving one of his servants ten thousand Talents, who would not forgive a fellow servant of his one hundred pence, Mark 9. from 33. to the end. Mat. 18. from 1. to the end. Luke 9. from 46. to 51.

16 His Kinsmen now perswade him to go up with them to Jerusalem to the Feast of Tabernacles, which he refuseth for the present to do, John 7. from 1. to 10.

17. But after some days he setteth forth privately with his own [Page 112] Disciples for Jerusalem, journeying thitherward through Samaria, the Samaritans refuse him lodging; James and John desire they may call for fire from Heaven upon them, but are rebuked by him for it, John 7.10. Luke 9. from 51. to 57.

18. He declares his poverty to a Scribe that had a mind to fol­low him; he commands another to follow him without delay, and not go home to bury his Father. To another, that would have gone home to take leave of his friends, he declares, that as he that starteth from the Plough is not fit for the Field, no more is he that shifteth from his Calling fit for his service, Luke 9. from 57. to the end. Mat. 8. from. 19. to 23.

19. He now sendeth out his Diciples to preach the Gospel and work Miracles. He instructs them how they should fit themselves for their journey, and how they should carry themselves towards their hearers: He threatens Corazin, Bethsaida, and Capernaum for their great impenitency and contempt of the Gospel, Luke 10. from 1. to 17.

20. Being now come to Jerusalem at the Feast of Tabernacles, he teacheth in the Temple, vindicates his Doctrine, and shews them how they may try Doctrines and Teachers: Then he vindi­cates his practice in healing the impotent man on the Sabbath day; divers opinions of the people concerning him: He proceeds on in teaching, which so inraged some of the Jews, that they sought to take him, but for the present they could not. The Pharisees and chief Priests send their officers to apprehend him. He threa­tens the unbelieving Jews, that hereafter they shall seek him and shall not find him. On the last day of the Feast he invites unto him all that are spiritually athirst, and promiseth the Holy Ghost to those that believe in him; upon this a division ariseth among the people: The Officers that were sent to apprehend him return without bringing him Prisoner, and extol his Doctrine. The Pharisees are enraged at this, and speak reproachfully of him, and of the people who were so taken with him, Nicodemus gainsayeth their proceeding, pleading he was not to be condem­ned before he was heard: Hereupon not agreeing among them­selves, they part and go their several ways, John 7. from 11. to the end.

21. Early in the morning he teacheth in the Temple, whither they bring to him a woman taken in Adultery, he frustrates [Page 113] their intention against him, and dismisses the woman with a seri­ous admonition. He teacheth that himself is the light of the World: He defends himself against the Pharisees by his own and his Fathers testimony: He tells the Jews they shall hereafter seek him in vain and shall die in their sins if they believe not in him: He declareth who he is, and by whom he is sent: He promiseth those that be­lieve in him knowledge of the truth, and freedom from the Servi­tude and Slavery of sin: He proveth that the unbelieving Jews wrongfully boasted that they were Abraham's and Gods Children, they being Children of the Devil, because they fulfilled his lusts: He reproves their unbelief, for which they slander him as a Sama­ritan, who hath a Devil. This calumny he confuteth, and testi­fieth that Abraham saw his day, and that he was before Abraham; at this they would have stoned him, but he secretly conveyed him­self from their fury, John. 8. whole Chapter.

22. He anoints the eyes of a man that was born blind with clay, and that on the Sabbath day; and commanding him to wash in the waters of Siloam, restores him to his sight. The man being brought to the Pharisees relates the same. They reproach Christ as a breaker of the Sabbath, and seem to doubt whether this man had ever been blind. They send for his Parents, who refer them to their Son, whom they call and examine again: He answereth them, and from this Miracle argueth, that Christ is no Sinner, but a person extraordinary and sent from God; for which Testi­mony he is reproachfully cast out by them and excommunicated: He is further instructed by Christ, believeth in him, and worship­eth him. Christ telleth the Pharisees that they are Spiritually blind, and therefore they remain in sin, because they are not sen­sible of their blindness, John 9. whole Chapter.

23. Upon this occasion he propounds the Parable of the Faith­ful and true Shepherd, and of the false and unfaithful, descri­bing them by their contrary marks and properties, and points out himself as the true Shepherd of his Sheep, as also the true door of the Sheep-fold. That he is no hireling, seeing that he willingly lays down his life for his Sheep: His hearers are divided in their opinions concerning him, John 10. from 1. to 22.

24. The Seventy Disciples return, and joyfully relate what they had performed, whom he teacheth to be humble, and where­in they ought most to rejoyce. He giveth thanks to his Father [Page 114] who hath hid Mysteries of Salvation from the wise of the World, and hath revealed them to despised little ones. He sheweth from whom saving knowledge cometh. He declareth them happy whose eyes have seen the Messiah in the flesh, whom many Pro­phets and Kings desired to see, and saw not, Luke 10. from 17. to 25.

25. He answereth a Doctor of the Law, inquiring what he must do to inherit Eternal Life, and shews him who is his Neighbour, by a similitude of one fallen among Thieves, and pitied by a Samaritan, Luke 10. from 38. to 43.

26. He is now entertained at Bethany by Martha and Mary, where he commends the Godliness of Mary above the Carefulness of Martha, Luke 10. from 38. to 43.

27. He now a second time prescribes unto his Disciples that f [...]rm or pattern of Prayer, which he gave them in the Sermon on the Mount. He stirs them up to fervency and importunity in Pray­er, from the Parable of a Friend coming to his Friend at mid­night, and especially to pray for the Holy Spirit, which the Fa­ther will not deny to them that ask him, Luke 11. from 1. to 14.

28. He casteth out a dumb Devil, and confutes the Blasphemy of those, who said he did it by Belzebub. He shews by a Parable the miserable state of that man into whom the unclean spirit returns again after ejectment, Luke 11. from 14. to 27.

29. He sheweth to a woman, who pronounced the womb blessed that bare him, that they are blessed that hear the word of God and keep it, Luke 11. from 27. to 29.

30. He testifies that no other sign shall be given to those unbe­lieving Jews, than that signified by Jona's rising out of the Whales belly, that is, the wonder of his Resurrection. He oppo­seth to their stifneckedness the example of the Queen of the South, and the men of Nineveh: He teacheth by the similitude of a Can­dle, that the light of the Gospel must not be hid. He shews why that generation continued so blind, namely, because the eye of their mind was darkned, Luke 11. from 29. to 37.

31. He is invited to dinner by a Pharisee: He complies not with them in washing before dinner. He there reprehends the Pharisees, Scribes, and Lawyers, for their Hypocrisie, Ambition, and Cruelty against those sent to them from God, and threatneth the Judgment of God unto them. They lay new snares to catch him, but fail of their expectation, Luke 11. from 37. to the end.

32. He warneth his Disciples of the Leaven and corrupt Doctrine of the Pharisees, he exhorts them to do all things uprightly, seeing all things shall be brought to light, and not to be fearful of men in publishing his Doctrine, but to depend on God's care of them, he exhorts them to own and profess him before men, and he will own them at the day of Judgment. He shews the horrible dan­ger of Blasphemy against the Holy Ghost; and exhorts them not to be solicitous how to answer when they are brought before Councils, seeing they shall then be instructed what to say by the Holy Ghost, Luke 12. from 1. to 13.

33. He refuseth to arbitrate a difference about an Inheritance between two Brethren; and upon that occasion he dehorts them from covetousness by the Parable of a rich man, who would needs build his Barns bigger. He disswades them from being over-careful and solicitous about earthly things; and by the example of the Ra­vens and Lillies he shews that the care of this life should be commit­ted unto God; and that his Kingdom and the Righteousness thereof should be sought in the first place: He exhorts to give Alms, and so to deposite their riches in Gods hand, and to lay up Treasure in Heaven: To watch for his coming (the time of which is uncertain, like the coming of a Thief in the Night.) And if they approve themselves vigilant Servants, they shall be rewarded. He shews that his Ministers are diligently to look to their charge, which if they do, they shall be highly recompensed; but if they prove slothful, negligent, and tyrannize over their fellow Ser­vants, they shall be severely punished. He forewarns them of persecution and trouble. He shews them that he himself came to suffer, and to bring fire on Earth. He exhorts the People to dis­cern, take notice of, and improve the season of grace, and merciful visitation afforded to them; for it is a dreadful thing to die with­out reconciliation with God, Luke 12. from 13. to the end.

34. From the report of certain Galileans, whose blood Pilate mingled with their Sacrifices, and from the example of the eighteen, on whom the Tower in Siloam fell; He takes occasion to exhort the Multitude to repent, and to that end propounds the Parable of the barren Fig-tree, Luke 13, from 1. to 10.

35. He healeth a Woman on the Sabbath day, that had been bow­ed together Eighteen Years, and justifieth the same against the Ruler of the Synagogue. He compares his Kingdom to a Grain of Mu­stard-seed [Page 116] and Leaven, shewing thereby the power of his word, and spreading Nature of his Evangelical Doctrine, Luk. 13. frō 10. to 22.

36. He comes to Jerusalem at the Feast of Dedication, and being compassed about with the Jews, he is asked by them whether he be the Christ? He affirms it, and proveth it by his works. He tells them the reason why they believe not in him, namely, because they are not of his Sheep. Those that are his Sheep believe in him, and they are kept by him and his Father to eternal life. Upon this the Jews would have stoned him as a Blasphemer; but he proves by Scripture and by his works, that he did rightly call himself the Son of God. They attempt to seize on him, but he escaped out of their hands, Luke 13. vers. 22. John 10. from 22. to the end.

37. Being asked whether few should be saved, he exhorts them to enter in at the strait Gate, and to take the present season of grace, from the Parable of a man that had invited guests, and admitted those who came in due time; but shut out the Loyterers. He shews that the Gentiles shall receive and imbrace the Gospel, and shall enter into the Kingdom of God, whilst they for their impeni­tency shall be cast out, Luke 13. from 23. to 31.

38. He tells the Pharisees, who warned him of the great dan­ger he was in from Herod, that he feared him not; for he knew he must die at Jerusalem; and then he passionately complains of the cruelty and stifneckedness of the People of Jerusalem, and foretels their ruine, Luke 13. from 31. to 36.

39. He now cures one that had the Dropsie on the Sabbath-day, and justifies the same. He reproves the ambition of the Pharisees, striving for the upper-most Seats at Feasts, and exhorts them to hu­mility. He exhorts them also to feast the Poor, who cannot re­quite them, Luke 14. from 1. to 15.

40. By the Parable of a great Supper, and the excuses of those that were invited (to shift off coming,) he upbraids the Jews with their ingratitude; and foretells their rejection, and the cal­ling of the Gentiles, Luke 14. from 15. to 25.

41. He shews that he that will be his Disciple must deny him­self, and all that is dear to him, and must consider before hand what it may cost him (as he that intends to build a Tower, or as a King that intends to wage war with another King, must do) lest with shame he revolt from him afterwards, and become al­together unprofitable, like Salt that hath lost its Savour, Luke 14. from 25. to 36.

42. The Pharisees murmur that he coversed with sinners. Here­upon he shews Gods tender care of the recovery of lost sinners by three eminent Parables; First, Of the lost Sheep. Secondly, Of the lost Groat. Thirdly, Of the lost Son, Luke 15. whole Chapter.

43. By the Parable of the cunning though unjust Steward, he teaches them to make friends to themselves of the unrighteous Mammon, and to be faithful in a right imploying their Temporal Riches. He exhorts them also to take heed of serving Mammon, or setting their hearts on Riches. He reproves the Pharisees for their Pride, Hypocrisie, and affectation of the opinion of men. He shews that the Sacrifices prescribed by the Ceremonial Law Typified and prefigured him, and that the Prophets Prophesied of him un­til John came, who declared him to be actually come in the flesh, and began the Evangelical Ministry. He declares the permanent Authority of the Moral Law, which was by the Pharisees violated, particularly in the Seventh Commandment. By the Parabolical History of Dives and Lazarus, he shews the different estate of the Godly Poor and the unmerciful Rich in the other World, Luke 16. from 1. to 32.

44. He teaches his Disciples to take heed of giving occasion of offence and scandal, and to forgive those that trespass against them, who are sorry for their offence how oft soever they have of­fended, Luke 17. from 1. to 5.

45. The Disciples hereupon pray for the increase of their Faith, that they may depend on him for power to perform this, and his other injunctions. Upon this occasion he describes the power of Faith, and by the Parable of a servant coming from the service of the Field, and setting himself to other services after, he declares that a man doth not merit of God, by doing his duty, Luke 17. from 5. to 11.

46. He healeth ten Lepers whereof but one returns to give him thanks, Luke 17. from 11. to 20.

47. He shews that his Kingdom comes not with observation or outward pomp. He sorewarns them of the days of Tribulation, that would come on that Nation after his departure out of this World. He describes this his coming to execute vengeance on those ob­durate Jews, viz. That it should be suddenly, & would surprize them in their deep security, as it was in the days of Noah, & Lot. That there would be much of God's providence seen in rescuing some fr m that calamity, wherein others would fall, Luke 17. from 20. to 38.

48. He incourages his Disciples to fervency, importunity, and perseverance in prayer from the Parable of an importunate Widow prevailing with an unjust Judge, Luke 18. from 1. to 9.

49. By a Parable of a Pharisee and a Publican he teaches that God hears and justifies the penitent sinner, and not those which rely on their own righteousness, Luke 18. from 9. to 15.

50. He now crosses Jordan, and there teaches and heals, Mat. 19.1.2. Mark 10. to 1.

51. He answereth the Pharisees question concerning divorce, that the Married may not part but in case of Adultery. He shew­eth the gift of continence is not given to all, Mat. 19. from 3. to 13. Mark 10. from 2. to 13.

52. He commands that little Children should be brought unto him, and blesseth them, Mat. 19. from 3. to 16. Mark 10. from 13. to 17. Luke 18. from 15. to 18.

53. He answers a rich young man, who desireth to know of him, what he must do to inherit Eternal life, and gives him a special command to go and sell all and give to the poor, to try him and convince him of his secret covetousness, who thereupon de­parts very sorrowful. Upon this he teaches how hard it is for a rich covetous man who trusts in his riches, to be saved. He pro­mises them who leave all for his sake, both Temporal and Eternal recompences: And to his Apostles (who had done this) he pro­mises high favours at the day of Judgment, viz. That they shall sit upon Twelve Thrones judging the Twelve Tribes of Israel. Yet he cautions them to be humble minded, and to look to it that they persevere, for many that are last shall be first, and first shall be last, Mat. 19. from 16. to 31. Mark 10. from 17. to 32. Luke 18. from 18. to 31. Luke 22. from 28. to 31.

54. Under the Parable of an Housholder hiring Labourers at several hours of the day into his Vineyard, he sheweth that all ought to be Labourers; that God doth freely both call and re­ward; that none ought to have any confidence in their own works, but a low estimation of themselves, and of whatever they do or suffer for him, Mat. 20. from 1. to 17.

55. Lazarus is now sick at Bethany, and Jesus is sent for to him, but for the present goeth not, that he might die, and so God might be the more glorified in raising him to life again, John 11 from 1. to 7.

56. He acquaints his Disciples now a Third time that he should suffer death, and rise again the Third day; they thereupon diswade him from going into Judea, but he tells them as long as his day last­ed, Providence would secure him from danger, Mat. 20. from 17. to 20. Mark 10. from 32. to 35. John 11. from 7. to 11. Luke 18. from 31. to 35.

57. He gives answer to the request of James and John, Zebedees Children, desiring that they might sit one on his right hand, the other on his left in his Kingdom. He exhorts them to prepare for sufferings and the Cross, and commands all of them to be humble minded, and not to seek after dignity and preheminence one above another, (remembring that their Office was a Ministry and ser­vice, not a Lordship or Dominion) and to imitate his example who came not to be ministred unto, but to minister, Mat. 20. from 20. to 29. Mark 10. from 35. to 46. Luke 22. from 24. to 28.

58. He now sets forward towards Bethany for the raising of La­zarus who was dead. His way lying through Jerico, when he came nigh the City he cured a blind-man. Zacheus gets up into a Sycamore Tree to see him. He invites himself to Zacheus's House, who gladly receives him, and testifies his repentance by restitution, and is comforted by him. By the Parable of a Noble­man going into a far Countrey to receive for himself a King­dom, and to return, and delivering Ten Pounds to his Ten Ser­vants to imploy and improve in his absence. He shews he was not now presently (as they thought) to enter upon a Temporal Kingdom, but to die and suffer, and so go to Heaven; and then to return again in an eminent manner. In the mean time they ought to imploy the Talents he had intrusted them with for his service, and he would reward their diligence. He cures Two other blind men, whereof one was Bartimeus, as he goes out of the City, Luke 18. from 35. to the end. Luke 19. from 1. to 28. Mat. 20. from 29. to 35. Mark 10. from 46. to 53.

59. He now approacheth to Bethany, where Martha meets him, with whom he speaketh of the Resurrection of her Brother and all Believers. Mary comes out to him also. He weepeth and goeth to the grave, and finds Lazarus four days buried, he prays to his Father and raiseth him to life again; whereupon ma­ny believe in him, others go and tell it to the Chief Priests, John 11. from 11. to 47.

60. The Chief Priests and Pharisees call a Council, and con­sult upon the matter. Caiaphas unwittingly prophesies of the fruit of Christs death: Here they concludeThis is the First Council at which the Jews determined to put our Saviour to death. he shall be put to death, but to avoid their fury for the present, he withdrew him­self privately unto Ephraim, John 11. from 47. to 55.

61. He is inquired for at Jerusalem by those that came up sometime before the Feast to purifie themselves, John 11. from 55. to the end.

62. Six days before the Passeover he is entertained at a Supper at Bethany by Simon the Leper, where Lazarus fate at Supper with him. Mary pours a box of precious oyntment on his head and feet, wiping them with the hairs of her head. For this she is blamed, and repined at by Judas; but defended by Christ. Many Jews resort thither to see Lazarus newly raised, where­fore the Chief Priests seek to put him to death also, John 12. from 1. to 12. Mat. 26. from 6. to 14. Mark 14. from 3.The great week. Do­minica Palmarum. to 10.

63. On the first day of the week now commonly called Palm-Sunday, he sets out with his Disciples for Jerusalem. He sends two of his Disciples for an Asse, which the owner lets them have, and being set thereon, he rides towards the City. The people spread their Garments in the way, and cry Hosanna. When he was come to the descent of the Mount of Olives many from the City met him with branches of Palm-tree in their hands. The Pharisees speak to him to silence the People, and to forbid them to make such acknowledgments to him. He answers that if they should hold their peace, the very stones would cry out. Then coming within the view of the City, he burst out into tears at the consideration of their obstinacy, and their ruine that would en­sue thereupon. He rides into the City in this triumphant manner. The Pharisees are inraged hereat, Luke 19. from 28. to 45. John 12. from 12. to 20. Mat. 21. from 1.12. Mark 11. from 1. to 11.

64. He goes directly to the Temple. He drives the buyers and sellersSee §. 1. of the third part of our Saviours life. out of it. He heals the blind and lame that were brought to him. He justifies the Children crying Hosanna, and teaches in the Temple Luke 19. from 45. to 49. Mat. 21. from 12. to 17. Mark 11. from 15. to 20.

65. Certain Religious Greeks desire to see him. They speak to Philip about it. Being brought into his presence, he speaks [Page 121] to them of his death, and the fruit of it by the Parable or Si­militude of a grain of Wheat, which is not lost when it is sown, but springeth up with increase. He sheweth that all that will be his Disciples must follow him in suffering, and not think their life to dear to lay down for him. He prayes unto his Fa­ther, and is answered by Thunder, and with it a voice from Hea­ven, he tells them that that voice came not for his sake alone to comfort him, but to testifie to them that he was the true Messias. He goes on to declare the glorious fruits of his death, as parti­cularly the delivering the World from the usurping power of Sa­tan, and the drawing all sorts of persons to believe on him after he hath been lifted up on the Cross. He shews that his suffering death in his state of Humiliation, and yet abiding for ever in his state of Exaltation may well stand together. He exhorts them to walk in the light whilst they have it, testifying that he him­self is the light of the World. The consequent of this was that though the Jews generally continued blinded and hardned (as was fore-told by Esaiah) yet some of the Rulers believed in him, but durst not openly confess him. In fine, he shews the benefits of Faith and mischiefs of Ʋnbelief, John 12. from 20. to the end.

66. Having thus spent the day, at night he goes with his Apo­stles to lodg at Bethany, Mat. 21.17. Mark 11.11.

67. Next morning (viz. Munday Munday.) he sets forth with them for Jerusalem again, and cursed the barren Fig-tree by the way, and then goes to the Temple, and teaches there, and at night returns with his company to Bethany again, Mat. 21.18, 19. Mark 11. from 12. to 15. Luke 21.37, 38.

68. Next morning, (viz. Tuseday Tuesday.) coming again with his Apostles to the City, in the way they observed that the Fig-tree, (which the day before he had cursed) was now quite withered. Hereupon he discourses of the power of Faith in prayer, and ex­horts them to forgive such as have done them any wrong, Mark 11. from 20. to 27. Mat. 21. from 20. to 23.

69. He goes again to the Temple, and teacheth there. The Chief Priests and Scribes ask him by what authority he did these things. He answers them by propounding to them a question concerning the Baptism of John. He convinceth them of their disobedience by the Parable of the two Sons; and shews them [Page 122] that Publicans and Harlots imbrace the Gospel before them, for all their fair profession. He threatens their ruine by the Parable of a Lord of a Vineyard, whose Servants and Son were abused, and slain by the Husbandmen. By the Parable of the Marriage of the Kings Son, to which the guests invited re­fused to come, and therefore others were invited in their stead, (among which one appeared without a Wedding Garment, &c.) He declares the rejection of the Jews, the calling of the Gentiles, and shews that some do joyn themselves to the Church in Hypo­crisie, Mark 11. from 27. to 34. Mat. 21. from 23. to the end. Mark 12. from 1. to 13. Luke. 20. from 1. to 20. Mat. 22. from 1. to 15.

70. He gives an answer to the question of the Pharisees and Herodians whether they might pay tribute to Caesar or no. Then he answers the question of the Sadduces concerning a Woman that had seven Husbands, and proves to them the Resurrection of the Dead. He answers a Doctor of the Law, demanding of him which is the great Commandment, and tells him he is not far from the Kingdom of God. He then propounds a question to the Pharisees how the Messiah could be Davids Son, whom David himself calls Lord; but they could not answer him, Mat. 22. from 15. to the end. Mark 12. from 13. to 28. Luke 20. from 20. to 45.

71. He now begins a severe commination against the Scribes and Pharisees, exhorting his hearers to follow what they should rightly teach them out of Moses and the Prophets; but not their example and works. He describes their Hypocrisie and Ambition in making broad their Phylacteries and fringes of their Garments, in loving salutations in publick places, and to be called Rabbi. He admonishes his hearers to take heed thereof and to study Hu­mility. He denounceth eight woes against the Scribes and Phari­sees, 1. Because they shut Heaven against men. 2. Devoured Wi­dows houses. 3. Made bad Proselytes. 4. Taught perversely to swear by the Temple, Altar and Heaven. 5. Tythed small matters, and neglected the weightier matters of the Law. 6. Made clean the out-side, but not the heart. 7. Were like whited Se­pulchres. 8. Repaired the Sepulchres of the old Prophets, and sought to kill the new. Then complaining of the stiff-neckedness of the City of Jerusalem. He foretells her destruction, Mat. 23. [Page 123] whole Chapter. Mark 12. from 38. to 41. Luke 20. from 45. to 48.

72. He commendeth the poor Widows gift of two mites, which she cast into the Treasury of the Temple, Mark 12. from 41. to the end. Luke 21. from 1. to 5.

73. Going now out of the Temple (into which he never entred again) he foretells the destruction thereof; Being come to Mount Olivet, he foretells the grievous calamities that should be­fall the Jews, before the Temple, and Cities destruction; and gives them Signs that should sometime before precede it, as the arising of false Christs; Wars, and rumors of Wars; Famines, and Pestilence, and Earthquakes, and fearful sights and signs from Heaven: Great persecutions against those that professed him: The arising of many false Prophets and Heretical teachers: The spreading of the Gospel among all the chief and principal Nati­ons in those parts of the World: Then he gives them signs that should immediately precede it. Namely, the begirting the City by the Roman Army, at which time the Prophecy of Daniel should be fulfilled: The arising of false Christs and false Prophets, that should be so cunning that they should deceive (if it were possible) the very Elect. He now comes to describe the destruction it self, which he sets forth as the destruction of the whole World, of which it was to be a Type. For the precise time when this destruction should be, he tells them they must not expect to have it revealed to them, it being hid from men and Angels, yea, and from himself also as man. Yet two things he acquaints them with. 1. That this Judgment would come sud­denly, and unexpectedly on the Jews, as destruction did on the old World. 2.See §. 47. of this part That the Providence of God would much appear in the rescuing of some out of that calamity, in which others will fall. He exhorts them to watch and pray that they may be accounted worthy to escape those calamities, by the Para­ble of good servants, expecting the coming of their Master, and because the time of his coming is uncertain, he presseth them again to a diligent watchfulness by the Parable of an Hou­sholder, watching against the coming of a Thief, Mat. 24. whole Chapter, Mark 13. whole Chapter, Luke 21. from 5. to 37.

74. By the Parable of five wise and five foolish Virgins, he again exhorts them to watchfulness against his coming; and [Page 124] by the Parable of Servants which had each of them received Ta­lents from their Lord to trade withal, he exhorteth to a faith­ful improvement of the gifts which God had given to every one. Then he comes to describe his last coming to Judgment, and how he will distinguish his [...]heep from the Goats, and give and exe­cute Sentence upon them both, Mat. 25. whole Chapter.

75. Having thus Preached his Prophetick Sermon on Mount Olivet, he comes to Bethany and suppeth there; Rising from Sup­per, he girded himself and washed his Disciples feet. Peter at first refused to admit of it, but afterward suffered it. He teach­eth them hereby his spiritual washing of them, and exhorts them to imitate this example of his Humility, and to be serviceable one to another. He complains of, and detects the Tray­tor Judas, whom he discovereth to John by giving him a sop: After which the Devil entred into him, and he went forth. Our Saviour comforts himself against his near approaching death with this consideration, that God should be glorified thereby. He ex­horts his Disciples to mutual Love. Peter promises he will lay down his life for him; but Christ telleth him he will deny him thrice, John 13. whole Chapter.

76. Wednesday. Wednesday. On this day the Chief Priest and Elders met in Caiaphas's House, and hold the second Council how they might take Jesus and put him to death. Whilst they were thus consulting, Judas comes to them, and offers to betray him to them. They bargain with him for thirty pieces of silver to do it; which he having accepted, returns to his Master at Bethany, Mat. 26. from 1. to 6. and from 14. to 17. Mark 14.1, 2. and 10, 11. Luke 22. from 1. to 7.

77. Thursday. Thursday. Our Saviour now sendeth Peter and John to Je­rusalem to prepare the Passeover for him and his Disciples, and directs them by a special token to follow a man that would lead them to a great Chamber ready furnished; which they according­ly do, and having provided all things for the present Supper, re­turn to him again, Matth. 26. from 17. to 20. Mark 14. from 12. to 17. Luke 22. from 7 to 14.

78. Being now ready to go with his Apostles to eat the Passeover (which he was to eat that night) he comforts them concerning his going away from them to the Father, seeing he went to pre­pare Mansions for them at his Fathers house. He declares to [Page 125] Thomas that he is the way, the truth and the life; and to Philip that he that seeth him seeth the Father. He promiseth his Apo­stles that they should do great Miracles, and obtain what they shall pray for in his name. That they shall receive the Comfor­ter, the H [...]ly Ghost, and not be left Orphans. He exhorts them to love him and keep his Commandments, promising his, and his Fathers abode with them, and that the Holy Ghost should bring all things necessary to their remembrance. He leaveth his peace with them, and declareth that they ought to rejoyce, be­cause he goeth to the Father. He sheweth his willingness to obey his Father, even in suffering. Then arising he goeth forth with them to Jerusalem, John 14. whole Chapter.

The sixth part of our Saviours life comprehends what he did and suffered at the fourth Passeover after his Baptism, at which He our Passeover was Sacrificed for us, 1 Cor. 5.7. And here we have these observables.

1. Thursday evening he cometh with his Company to the place prepared for him, and there eats the Passeover with them. He tells them there was one at the Table with him that would betray him. He institutes the Sacrament of his Supper. Of the Lords Supper see a particu­lar tract at the end. They conclude with an Hymn, Luke 22. from 14. to 24. Mat. 26. from 20. to 31. Mark 14. from 17. to 27.

2. He warneth Peter of the approach of his Tryal, and that he should that very night before the Morning-Cock crew, deny him thrice. He acquaints his other Apostles with his own and their approaching troubles, Luke 22. from 31. to 39.

3. Before their departure from the place where they had eaten the Passeover, he gives them his farewel exhortations, contained in the fifteenth and sixteenth Chapters of John, where he compares himself to a Vine and his Disciples to branches, which abiding in him will be fruitful. He testifieth his singular love to them, and ex­horts them to keep his Commandments, and to love one another. He shews the greatness of his love to them, in that he is willing to lay down his life for them, and calleth them his friends and chosen ones. He comforts them against the hatred of the world by ma­ny arguments. He sheweth them that all manner of excuse is taken from the Jews, who have both heard his Doctrine and seen his Miracles. He declareth that the Holy Ghost shall testifie of him, and make his Person and Doctrine to be acknow­ledged [Page 126] in the World; and they themselves should bear witness concerning him. He fortelleth them they shall be persecuted, and must expect to meet with Excommunication and Martyrdom. He comforts them with the promise of the Holy Ghost, who shall convince the World of Sin, Righteousness, and Judgment, and shall lead them into all truth, and shall glorifie him, and shall in all things so accord with him, that he shall evidence he hath his message from him. He declares he shall shortly be taken from them, but shall be seen again by them for a little while; so that their Sorrows shall quickly be turned into joy. He tells that when the Comforter is come they shall be more fully illuminated and not puzled with doubts as now they were. He promises that their prayers shall be heard that are put up in his name, and for their encouragement he assures them not only of his own intercession, but his Fathers love, he declares plainly to them his leaving the World, and going to his Father. His Disciples hereupon are confirmed in their belief in him. He forewarns them they should be scattered and flye from him; yet his Fathers presence would be with him. He promises them, that trusting in him, they should have peace, and bids them be of good chear: for he had overcome the World for them, John 15. whole Chapter. Joh. 16. whole Chapter.

4. He now pours out a most Divine and Heavenly Prayer unto the Father, wherein he prayes. 1. For himself, that the Father would now glorifie him, (having thus far finished his work) that he may give eternal life to those that know him and believe on him. 2. For his Apostles, that the Father would keep them in unity of love, and would preserve them from the evil of the world, and Sanctifie and fit them more and more for the great work of Preaching the Gospel. 3. For all that shall believe on him, through their word, that they may be one here, and eternally glorified with him in his Kingdom hereafter, John 17. whole Chapter.

5. Having ended his Prayer, he went with the eleven towards the Garden of Gethsemane, at the foot of Olivet, John 18.1. Luke 22.39.

6. Judas as it seems slip'd away when they rose from Supper, and went to his Complices in the City, who were ready to execute their wicked design. As our Saviour goes along with his [Page 127] Disciples towards the Garden, he tells them they will be offen­ded at his sufferings that night, and like Sheep will be scat­tered, when they shall see him the Shepherd smitten. Yet not­withstanding he intended to meet them again in Galilee. He foretels Peter again of his fall that night, which Peter seems to abhor, Mat. 26. from 31. to 36. Mark 14. from 27. to 32.

7. Being come to the Garden, he leaves eight of his Disciples behind, and takes only Peter, James and John with him, and charging them to watch and pray, he falls prostrate on his face, and prayeth to his Father, that, if he were willing, that Cup might pass from him. An Angel from Heaven is sent to strength­en him: He comes to his Disciples, and finds them sleeping, and re­proves them for it, and exhorts them again to watch and pray. He goes a second time and prayes more earnestly, being in an A­gony, so that his sweat was as it were great drops of blood: Re­turning to his Disciples he finds them asleep again. He went away a third time and prayed to the same effect as before, and coming to his Disciples, found them asleep again; then he bids them sleep on; for he that would betray him, was at hand, Mat. 26. from 36. to 47. Mark 14. from 32. to 43. Luke 22. from 39. to 47.

8. Judas immediately comes with a great band to take him, and betrayes him with a kiss. At Christs word they fall back to the Earth. He speaks to them to let his Disciples go. When they began to lay hands on him, Peter draws his sword, and laies about him, and smote off Malcus'es Ear. Christ rebukes him for his rashness, and heals the wound presently; declaring that he could have more then twelve Legions of Angels for his guard, if he would be forcibly rescued. His Disciples now fly and forsake him. He is apprehended. A young man that followed him escapes their hands, Mat. 26. from 47. to 57. Mark 14. from 43. to 53. Luke 22. from 47. to 54. John 18. from 2. to 12.

9. He is first brought before Annas, John 18. from 12. to 15.

10. Then before Caiaphas and the Sanbedrim. In the night Caiaphas examines him concerning his Doctrine and Disciples. An Officer of the High Priest strikes him with the palm of his hand. They seek false witnesses to accuse him; at last two came, who agreed not in their Testimony. The High Priest adjures him to [Page 128] declare whether he were the Christ; he expresly saith he is, and they shall see him sit on the right hand of God, and coming in the Clouds of Heaven. Caiaphas at this rent his Cloaths, and he and the rest of the Bench pronounced him worthy to die as a Blasphemer. Then there were vile abuses put upon him in the High Priests house by the servants and others, by spitting upon him, blindfolding of him, smiting and mocking him, John 18.15, 16, 19. And from 20. to 24. Mat. 26. from 57. to 69. Mark 14. from 53. to 66. Luke 22. verse 54.63, 64, 65.

11. Peter having got into the High Priests Hall there denies him thrice, but upon Jesus's looking upon him, he goes out and be­wailes it bitterly, Mat. 26. from 69. to the end. Mark 14. from 66. to the end. Luke 22. from 54. to 63. John 18. from 15. to 19. and from 25. to 28.

12. Friday Friday. Morning. The Elders and Chief Priests met to­gether in Council again, and have Jesus brought before them. They ask him again whether he were the Messias, and the Son of God; He tells them he was; hereupon they judge him again a Blasphemer out of his own mouth, and lead him away bound to Pilate, Mat. 27.1, 2. Mark 15.1. Luke 22. from 66. to the end.

13. When they came to Pilates Palace they would not go in, lest they should be defiled. Pilate coming forth to them, they accuse Jesus before him of three things. 1. Of perverting the Na­tion. 2. Of forbidding to pay Tribute to Caesar. 3. Of saying that himself was Christ a King. Our Saviour makes no reply to these apparently false accusations. Pilate bids them judge him according to their own Law. They reply they had not power to put any man to death. Pilate hereupon examines him himself, and asks him whether he were the King of the Jews? Our Savi­our answers he was a King, but his Kingdom was not of this World: That he came into the World to bear witness to the truth. Pilate asks what is Truth? yet would not stay for an answer, but bringing Jesus out to the gate where the Jews stood, he professeth he found no fault in him. The Jews at this were more inraged, saying that he stirred up the People through all Jewry, even from Galilee to that place. Pilate hearing that he belonged to Galilee, sends him to Herod who was then in Jerusalem. Our Saviour would not work any Miracle before him, nor so much as vouch­safe [Page 129] him a word. Hereupon Herod and his attendants abuse him, and mock him, and array him in a gorgeous Robe, and so send him back to Pilate. Upon this occasion both the Gover­nors were made friends, Mat. 27. from 11. to 15. Luke 23. from 1. to 13. Mark 15. from 2. to 6. John 18. from 28. to 39.

14. Being brought before Pilate again, he calls the Jews, and tells them that neither he nor Herod found any fault in him, he would therefore (to gratifie them) chastise him and so release him. Then it comes into his mind how he might release him without any chastisement at all. He makes therefore a motion to them to have Christ given them in honour of their Feast, and that they might be the more willing to it, he matched him with Barabbas, but they by the instigation of the Priests chose Barabbas, (though pressed three several times by Pilate to the contrary) and cry out that Jesus should be crucified. When Pilate saw that all this would not do, he orders Jesus to be soundly scourged, supposing that that lesser punishment would have pacified the rage of the Jews. The Soldiers hereupon strip him, scourge him, put a Crown of Thorns upon his Head, smite him and mock him. Pilate now shews him to the people thus cruelly used; they cry out Crucifie him, Crucifie him; for he made himself the Son of God. When Pilate heard that, he was more afraid, not knowing how Divine a Person Christ might be; therefore he examines him again concerning his original and parentage, but our Saviour gave him not a word. Pilate at this is offended, that he would not speak to him, who had such power over him. Christ answers, he could have no power over him, except it were permitted to him of his Father. This so wrought on Pilate that he now seeks more earnestly to release him; but the Jews cried out, if thou lettest this man go, thou art not Caesars friend; By that word he is vanquished. He sits now upon another Tribunal in open view, and has Jesus brought before him. He says to the Jews, behold your King. They scornfully reject him, saying they had no King but Caesar. Whilst he is upon the Bench, his Lady sends to him to have nothing to do with that just man. He calls for water and washes his hands before them, and declares he is innocent of the blood of this just person, and bids them look to it. They cry out, his blood be upon us, and upon our Children. Then he released [Page 130] Barabbas, and condemned Jesus to be Crucified. Mat. 27. from 15. to 32. Mark 15. from 6. to 21. Luke 23. from 13. to 26. John 18.39. and 40. John 19. from 1. to 17.

15. Judas repenting, brings back the money and casts it in the Temple, and so goes and hangs himself. With the Money a Potters field is bought, as was foretold by the Prophet Zachary, Mat 27. from 3. to 11.

16. They now lead forth our Saviour to Crucifie him; Simon of Cyrene is forced to help him to bear his Cross. Two Thieves are led forth to be Crucified with him. A great many people follow him, and several women, lamenting him, to whom he foretells the misery that should come on them and their Chil­dren. When they were come to the place of execution, they gave him a bitter portion of wine mingled with Myrrh, which having tasted, he refused to drink. They strip him of his cloaths, and lift him up on the Cross, placing him between two Malefactors. He prayes, Father forgive them, they know not what they do. Pilate caused a superscription to be written in Hebrew, Greek, and Latine, This is Jesus of Nazareth King of the Jews. Not long after he was fastned to the Cross, a wonderful prodigious darkness began, and continued till three in the afternoon. The Souldiers divide his Garments, and cast lots for his seamless Coat. They that passed by reviled him. The Chief Priest and Rulers mocked him, saying he saved others, himself he cannot save. The Soldiers also did the same, off [...]ring him vinegar. One of the Thieves also cast the same in his Teeth, but the other rebukes him for it, and prayes unto Christ to remember him when he came into his Kingdom. His Mother standing by the Cross is commended by him to Jehu's care, about three of the Clock he cries out, Eli, Eli, Lamasabacthani. The Jews scoffingly say, he calls for Elias to help him. He then said he thirsted. They that stood by gave him vinegar, which having tasted, he said it is finished, then crying with a loud voice, he said Father into thy hands I commend my Spirit, and bowing his head he gave up the Ghost. The Centurion seeing these things glorified God, saying, certainly this was a Righteous man, truly this was the Son of God. Imme­diately upon his death four Prodigious things ensued. 1. The rend­ing of the Veil of the Temple. 2. An Earthquake. 3. The rending of the Rocks. 4. The graves were opened. The Centurion and [Page 131] people return to the City much affected. Towards the evening the Jews besought Pilate, that the legs of the Crucified persons might be broken to hasten their death, that so they might be removed, which being granted, the leggs of the two Thieves were broken, but not of Jesus, being already dead, yet a Soldier with a Spear pierced his side, out of which came blood and water, Mat. 27. from 31. to 57. Mark 15. from 20. to 42. Luke 23. from 29. to 50. John 19. from 16. to 38.

17. Joseph of Arimathea begs his body of Pilate, and he and Nicodemus wrap it in fine linnen, with spices, and lay it in Jo­sephs new Sepulchre, hewn out of a Rock in a Garden. They roll a stone to the door of the Sepulchre. Mary Magdalen and other Religious women observed where his body was laid, and went, and prepared Spices and Oyntments, purposing more ex­actly to embalm him when the Sabbath was over. The Chief Priest desired Pilate that the Sepulchre may be secured. Here­upon a Guard is set upon it, and the Stone sealed with the pub­lick Seal, Mat. 27. from 57. to the end, Mark 15. from 42. to the end. Luke 23. from 50. to the end. John 19. from 38. to the end.

SECT. V. Of our Saviours Death and Burial.

WE have now presented you with a short view of our Sa­viours Life, as also with the History of his Death. Touching which, these things are further to be taken notice of.

1. That the promised Messias was to suffer according to the predictions that went before of him. Esay. 53.4, 5. Surely he hath born our Griefs, and carried our Sorrows, yet we did esteem him stricken, smitten of God, and afflicted. He was wounded for our transgressions, he was bruised for our iniquities, the chastise­ment of our Peace was upon him, and with his stripes we are heal­ed. Mark 9.12. And he answered, and told them, how it is written of the Son of man, that he must suffer many things, and [Page 132] be set at naught, 1 Pet. 1.11. Searching what manner of time the Spirit of Christ, which was in them did signifie, when it testi­stified beforehand the Sufferings of Christ and the Glory that should follow. Luke 24.26. Ought not Christ to have suffered these things and to enter into his Glory? verse 46. Thus it is written and thus it behoveth Christ to suffer, and to rise from the dead the third day. Acts 26.22, 23. Having obtained help of God, I con­tinue unto this day witnessing both to small and great, saying none other things then those which the Prophets and Moses did say should come. That Christ should suffer, and that he should be the first that should rise from the dead, and should shew light unto the People, and to the Gentiles.

2. As his Sufferings in the general were foretold, so that he should Suffer Death was also particularly determined. God had in his all-wise Council determined, that his Son should die for the sins of men. The Serpent was to bruise the heel of the Womans Seed, and the same seed, viz. Christ to bruise his head, Gen. 3.15. And Acts 4.27, 28. For of a truth against thy holy Child Jesus, whom thou hast anointed, both Herod and Pontius Pilate with the Gentiles and the People of Israel were gathered together, for to do whatsoever thy Council had determined before to be done.

3. His suffering Death was typified, 1. By the Paschal Lamb slain. 2. By the brazen Serpent lifted up, John 3.14. 3. By the daily Sacrifices, which intimated, that without the shedding the blood of the Messias there could be no remission of sins.

Let us now consider in the next place how our Saviour Suffer­ed. The ancient Creed sayes, He suffered under Pontius Pilate. Suffered under Pontius Pilate. But who was this Pilate? Pilate was a Roman, sent by Tiberius the Emperor to be Governor of Judea. About sixty years before our Saviours birth, the Jews by Pompey the Great were made tributary to the Romans. For though during the life of Hircanus the High Priest, and the Reign of Herod and his Son Archilaus, the Ro­man State suffered the Jews to be Governed by their own Laws and Governors, yet when Archilaus was banished by Augustus they received their Governors from the Roman Emperors, being made a part of the province of Syria. Pilate therefore was Pro­curator of Judea at this time, and under the President of Syria was furnished with power of Life and Death. The Chief Priests and Elders, though they condemned our Saviour in their own [Page 133] Council as guilty of death, yet could not put him to death, the power of Life and Death being at this time out of their hands. Therefore they bring him before Pilate and vehemently accuse him before him. Pilate saw plainly that it was for envy that they thus ac­cused him, Mat. 27.18. For when he had examined him he found no fault in him touching those things whereof they accused him. Three times did he challenge the Jews to shew what evil he had done. Three times did he profess that he found no cause of death in him. His own wife sent to him this Message, Have thou nothing to do with that Just Man. And when he heard that our Saviour declared himself to be the Son of God, He was then more afraid. Yet at last through the vehement clamor and im­portunity of the Jews, (who told him, if he spared him he was not Caesars friend (He was prevailed upon (even against the light of his own Conscience) to condemn him to be Crucified. The Historians of those times acquaint us that this Pilate was a very vile Person. That he was a man of a high, rough and untractable Spirit; that he brought the Bucklers stamped with the picture of Caesar into Jerusalem (which was an abomination to the Jews,) and would not for all their intreaties remove them, till commanded by Caesar. After that he Seized on the Corban or Sacred Treasury, and spent it upon an Aquaeduct; nor could all their importunate Petitions divert his intentions. When the Gali­leans came up to Jerusalem to worship God at his own Temple, he mingled their blood with their Sacrifies, as we read, Luke 13.1. And being a notorious wretch he was afraid of being accu­sed at Rome, for the insolencies and rapines of his Government, and therefore to content the people, he released Barabbas unto them, and delivered Jesus to be Crucified. But though herein he acted against all principles of Honesty and Justice, yet he was an instrument of fulfilling the determinate Council of God. For the promised Messias (who was to die for our sins) was to be crucified and to suffer upon the cross. This was typified by the brasen Serpent, was Cru­cified. Numb. 21.9. and Joh. 3.14. As Moses lifted up the Serpent in the Wilderness: even so must the Son of man be lifted up: This also was Prophesied of our Saviour, Psal. 22.16. They pierced my hands and feet. And Zech. 12 10. They shall look on me whom they have pierced.

Now our Saviour was actually condemned and delivered up to that kind of death by Pilate, who gave sentence it should be as [Page 134] the Jews required; and they required he should be Crucified.

There are three things observable concerning Crucifixion.

1. 'Twas a painful death. The hands, and feet (which of all parts of the body are most nervous, and consequently most sensible) were pierced through with nailes, which caused a lin­gring and tormenting death.

2. 'Twas an ignominious 'Twas servile supplicium. Thieves and Robbers were usual­ly by the Romans punished with this kind of death death; and therefore among the Romans inflicted upon their Slaves and fugitives.

3. A cursed death, as 'tis written, Deut. 21.13. Cursed is every one that hangeth on a tree. Having premised these things let us now consider what are the instructions we should learn from this Article, that our Saviour was Crucified.

1. Christ hath hereby redeemed us from the curse of the Law, being made a curse for us, Gal. 3.13. that is, he hath indured that most shameful death of the Cross which was accounted ac­cursed, and inglorious.

2. Christ hath blotted out the hand-writing of Ordinances that was against us, and taken it out of the way, nailing it to his Cross. One ancient custome (as they tell us) of Cancelling Bonds was by striking a nail through the writing. Our Saviours Crucifixion hath done this for us.

3. Seeing Christ was Crucified for us, we should in imitation thereof labour to Crucifie sin in our selves. Our old man must be Crucified, that the body of sin may be destroyed. We must re­member that those that are Christs must crucifie the flesh with its affections and lusts. Gal. 5.24.

4. We should often meditate on the bitter Cup our Saviour drank, and on those nails that pierced his hands and feet; that so we may be the more ready and willing to suffer for him. We should consider how he humbled himself and became obedient unto death, even the death of the Cross, teaching us thereby to hum­ble our selves, and with patience to bear the lowest condition for his sake; and to imitate him who for the joy that was set before him, endured the Cross, and despised the shame.

We come now to the next word in the Creed, viz. He Dyed. Our Saviour was not only nailed to the Cross but died thereon. He suffered upon the Cross a dissolution, and died a true and proper death.Dead He died for our sins according to the Scrip­tures, [Page 135] 1 Cor. 15.3. He was cut off from the Land of the Living, Isa. 53.7, 8, 10. and made his Soul (that is, his life) an of­fering for sin. He said, Father into thy hands I commend my Spirit, and having said so he gave up the ghost, Luke 23.26.

'Tis true, Christ did voluntarily die; for he saith, no man ta­keth away my life from me, but I lay it down of my self, John 10.18. That is, He laid not down his life by a necessary compulsion, but by a voluntary election. He took upon him a necessity of dy­ing for our benefit. But the Jews were the causes of his death, and by wicked bands crucified him, Acts 2.23. and slew him and hanged him on a tree, Acts 5.30. They are truly said to have done it, because by their incessant importunity they prevailed with Pilate to do it. Our Saviour therefore being truly put to death and suffering a real dissolution, let us consider what union was dissolved by his death and what continued. In Christ there were two different substantial unions. One of the parts of his humane nature, each to other, (in which his humanity consisted, and by which he was truly man;) the other of his natures divine and humane, by which it came to pass that he was both God and Man in the same person. Now the union of the parts of his humane nature was dissolved on the Cross, and a real separa­tion made between his Soul and Body. But yet there was no disunion of either of them from his Deity. The union of the na­tures remained still, nor was the Soul or Body (though separated one from the other) separated from the Divinity, but still re­mained united unto it.

When he cried out My God, My God, why hast thou forsaken me? it intimates no more but that he was bereft of those joys and com­forts from the Deity which were necessary to asswage the bitterness of his present Agony. Having thus shewed that our Saviour did really die. Let us now inquire why it was needful he should die. 'Twas requisite for these reasons.

1. That the new Covenant or Testament might be ratified by his blood. Where a Testament is, there must needs be the death of the Testator, Heb. 9.16.

2. That he might perform that part of his Priestly Office which required the shedding of his blood. For without shedding of blood there is no remission, Heb. 9.22. Therefore Christ our Passeover must be Sacrificed for us, 1 Cor. 5.7.

3. If he would redeem us, he must give himself a ransom for us, 1 Pet. 1.18, 19. For we being enemies could not be re­conciled to God but by the death of his Son, Col. 1.21. And by his death he hath destroyed him that had the power of death, that is, the Devil, Heb. 2.15. By his death was our redemption wrought, as by the price that was paid, as by the atonement which was made, as by the full satisfaction that was given, that God might be reconciled to us, who was before offended with us.

and Bu­ried.Thus we have seen what our Saviour died on the Cross. And as he really died by the separation of his Soul from his Body, so his body was carried and laid up in a Sepulchre, hewn out of the Rock in which never man was before laid. This the Evan­gelists do sufficiently testify. Now that the Messias was to be buried was typified by Jonas, who was three dayes and three nights in the Whales belly. And accordingly the Son of Man was to be three days and three nights in the heart of the earth, He is said to be three dayes and three nights in the Grave, the whole time or space of three dayes being put for a part of it, by a synecdoche see my Harm. Ch. 6. pag. 266. Mat. 12.40. The Psalmist intimates as much Psal. 16.9. My flesh shall rest in hope, for thou wilt not leave my Soul in Hell, My Soul In Hell that is, my dead body in the Grave, see the next §. nor suffer thine holy one to see corruption, Isay. 53.9. He was cut off out of the land of the living. He made his Grave with the wicked and with the rich in his death, Christ being put to death, his body was by Joseph of A­rimathea begged of Pilate, and by him and Nico­demus (one of their great Council) taken down and wound in fine linnen with spices (as the man­ner of the Jews was to bury) and laid in a new Sepulchre in a Gar­den nigh the place of his execution, and a great stone rolled to the door of the Sepulchre, Matth. 27.60. Thus the design of the Jews made his Grave with the wicked, intending he should be buried with them who were crucified with him. But the design of Heaven placed him with the rich in his death, and caused a Councellor and a Ruler of the Jews to bury him. So that we may interpret that place of Isaiah thus, He was buried nigh to the wicked, yet with the rich when he was dead. Our Saviour notwithstanding the malice of the Jews being thus honourably buried. The Chief Priests desired of Pilate, that the Sepulchre might be made sure, lest his Disciples should steal him away. which was accordingly done, the Stone being sealed with the [Page 137] publick Seal, and then a watch was set upon the Sepulchre.

We come now to consider what improvement we are to make of this Article.

1. Then seeing Christ did really die and was buried, let us te­stifie our communion with him in his death, by dying unto Sin.

2. In his Burial, by the burial of the old man.

3. In his Resurrection, by rising unto newness of life. This the Apostle hints to us as our duty, Rom. 6.4. Therefore we are buried with him by Baptism into death: that like as Christ was rai­sed up from the dead by the glory of the Father, even so we also should walk in newness of life.

SECT. VI. Of that Article in the Creed. Descend­ed into Hell He descended into Hell.

AFter Christs Crucifixion, Death, and Burial, the Creed sub­joyns He descended into Hell. In treating of which I must in the first place suggest this, that this Article of Christs descent into Hell was not in the antient Creeds. 'Tis not found in the Rules of Faith delivered by Irenaeus. lib. 1. c. 2. by Origen. lib. [...], or Tertullian, Adversus Prax. cap. 2. 'Tis not in those Creeds that were made by the Councils as explications of this Creed; particularly not in the Nicene, where the words are these, He was Crucified for us under Pontius Pilate, He suffered and was buried, and the third day he rose again according to the Scriptures. It was not in the Roman, or any of the Oriental Creeds. This being premised we come to consider this Article, which cannot with any shew of reason be understood of Christs Divine nature, which is every where present, and cannot be said either to ascend or descend. It must therefore be understood of his humane nature. And here it will be needful to enquire whether it be to be understood of his Soul or of his Body. If it be to be understood of his Soul, it must be meant either Metaphorically [Page 138] or really. Some understand it Metaphorically, and so by Christs descent into Hell they understand those inexpressible sufferings of his Soul, See Calv. Instit. lib. 2. c. 16. (which of all his sufferings, were the most grievous) by which he felt the wrath of God in his Soul for our sins. But these sufferings were all antecedent to his death, he having suffered part of them in the Garden, and part on the Cross, and all be­fore he commended his Spirit into the hands of his Father, and said it is finished and gave up the ghost. But the descent into Hell (as it now standeth in the Creed) seems to signifie some­thing done after his death. Besides, the torments of the damned are surely such as these, 1. Remorse of Conscience or the never­dying worm. 2. A bitter sence of an utter rejection from the favour of God. 3. Despair of ever being eased of that unsupportable misery; Now certainly none of these could befall our Saviour. He did not endure so much as for a moment any of the Hellish torments. Therefore surely in this sense Christs Soul did not de­scend into Hell. Others hold that Christs Soul did really and by a local motion descend into Hell. This they pretend. 1. To prove and that from three places of Scripture. And 2. To assign the ends for which he did thus descend. We shall examine both. First They say, that though these words are not formally expres­sed in the Scriptures, that Christ descended into Hell, yet they are contained virtually in them, which they will prove. 1. From Eph. 4.9. Now that he ascended, what is it but that he also de­scended, first into the lower parts of the earth? by which they under­stand Hell. For answer, by the lower parts of the earth, I hum­bly conceive is meant, the earth it self, which is the lowest part of the World, as Heaven is the highest. For before Christ could ascend unto Heaven, it was necessary he should descend to the Earth by his incarnation, but there was no necessity of his de­scending into Hell. And further, the Grave may be called one of the lower parts of the earth in opposition to the surface or upper part of it, on which we live. And this is all that seems to be meant in this place. 2. They pretend to prove it from 1 Pet. 3.19. where 'tis said, that Christ being put to death in his humane nature, was quickned or raised up again by the power of his Spirit or God-head, by which he preached to the Spirits in Prison, whence they infer that he descended into Hell to preach to the Spirits there in torments. Answer, From these words it [Page 139] appeareth. 1. That Christ preached in the dayes of Noah by the same Spirit, by the vertue and power of which, he was raised from the dead. But that Spirit was not his Soul but something of a greater power. 2. those to whom he preached were disobe­dient all that time, the long-suffering of God waited for their re­pentance and return, while the Ark was preparing. And 3. Their Souls or Spirits, for their disobedience, are now in Hell, and for refusing of that mercy that was offered to them by the preaching of Christ. 'Tis true indeed, this was not performed by an immediate act of the Son of God, as if he had personally appeared on earth and actually preached to the old world, but it was performed by the Ministry of Noah (who was guided and inspired by his Spirit) and accordingly is called a preacher of Righteousness, 2 Pet. 2.5. The third place they alledge for the maintenance of their opinion is, Acts 2.25, 26, 27, (a place that relates to Psal. 16.10.) Thou wilt not leave my Soul in Hell, &c. Therefore (say they) surely Christs Soul did locally descend into Hell. I Answer, Soul is sometimes taken properly only for the Soul or Spirit of a man, sometimes improperly, for the whole person as Acts 27.37. We were in the Ship two hundred three­score and sixteen Souls. Sometimes the Hebrew word, [...], Nephesh, which signifies a Soul, doth also signifie a dead body, as Levit. 19.28. Ye shall not make any cuttings in your flesh for the dead, Levit. 21. v. 1. There shall none be defiled for the dead among his people, Numb. 6.6. All the days that he separateth himself unto the Lord, he shall come at no dead body. In all which places the word rendred here the dead or dead body is Nephesh. And Anima is used pro cadavere, in Virgils Aeneiad. 3. animamque Sepul­chro condimus. And as the word Nephesh sometimes signifies a dead body and might have been so rendred in Psal. 16.8. so the word Sheol there rendred Hell does also sometimes signifie the grave. As Psal. 55. v. 15 Let death seise upon them, and let them go down quick into Hell: Psal. 141.7. Our bones are scattered at the graves mouth, where the word Sheol signifies the grave and not a place or receptacle of Souls under the earth. And let this be further considered that these words are to be un­derstood only of Christs Resurrection (as appears plainly by the Apostles drift, v. 31.) and prove not at all the deliverance of his Soul out of Hell, but of his body from the Grave. And if the [Page 140] words instead of, [Thou wilt not leave my Soul in Hell,] had been rendred thus (as the Hebrew words, as we have shewn, will well bear) thou wilt not leave my dead body in the Grave, nor suffer thine holy one to see Corruption, there had been no pretence to alledge this place to prove Christs descent into Hell. Having thus examined their Scripture-grounds for this Doctrine, I come now to consider the ends assigned by them, why our Saviour should thus descend. And those are two,

1. Some hold that he descended into Hell to deliver the Souls of the Patriarchs detained till then (as they sup­pose) in limbo Patrum, that is, in an out-skirt, or outward region The Papists divide Hell into four Regions 1. The Hell of the Damned or place of everlasting torments. 2. Pur­gatory, where they say the Souls of such as were not sufficiently purged from their sins in this life are de­tained for the thorow purging of them. And are there in torment, equal for the time, to that of the dam­ned. 3. Limbus infantium, a place where they suppose such children are disposed of, as die without Baptism, whom they suppose to suffer the loss of H [...]aven and heavenly happiness, but no pain or torment. 4. Limbus pa­trum, Where in like manner the Fa­thers before Christ (as they suppose) were detained, though suffering no pain, yet wanting the joys of H a­ven. And they say Christs Soul when it was separated from his Body de­scended thither to deliver them f [...]om thence, and to carry them to Heaven. of Hell, where they suffered no pain indeed, yet wanted the joys of heaven. I Answer, There is no ground to believe that the Souls of the Patriarchs or other Righte­ous Persons, that died before the coming of Christ, were kept in any place below, which can be called hell or limbus Patrum. Abraham's bosom surely was in the Heavens above, far from any region where the Devil, and his Angels were. Elias was carried up in a Chariot to Heaven; and our Saviour sayes, Many shall come from the East and West, and shall sit down with Abraham, Isaac and Ja­cob in the Kingdom of Heaven, Matth. 8.11. And surely the Kingdom of Heaven is no region of Hell. This also must be remembred, that Christs death was efficaci­cous for the Salvation of Believers before his coming as well as since, he being a Lamb slain (in the decree of God) from the beginning. And there­fore no necessity to place the Patriarchs in limbo, our Saviour ha­ving by his Allsufficient merits, and intercession provided a better place for them.

2. Others say that the end of our Saviours descent into Hell was to triumph over Satan, and all the powers below, within their own dominions. And the places of Scripture they bring to prove it are Col. 2.14 15 He blotted out the hand-writing of Ordinances that was against us, which was contrary to us, and took it out of [Page 141] the way, nailing it to his Cross: And having spoiled Principalities and Powers he made a shew of them openly, triumphing over them in it. And Ephes. 4.8. Wherefore he saith, when he ascended up on High, he led Captivity Captive and gave gifts unto men. I Answer. From these two places of Scripture no more can be proved than this, that Christ triumphed over Principalities and Powers at his death upon the Cross, and led Captivity Captive at his ascen­sion into Heaven. And if the places be well weighed, I believe they will be so far from proving that Christ descended into Hell to triumph there, that they will appear more proper to perswade the contrary. For why shoud he go to Hell to triumph over them, over whom he had triumphed on the Cross? And why should he go to Captive that Captivity then, which he was to lead Captive when he ascended into Heaven? And further, in vain shall we pretend that Christ descended into Hell to lead Captivity Captive if we withal maintain, that when he descended thither, he brought none away that were Captive there. And for his triumphing over his enemies in Hell, surely the Prophet David intended no such thing when he said, Acts 2.26, 27. Therefore did my heart rejoyce and my tongue was glad because thou wilt not leave my Soul in Hell. He speaks of it as a matter of joy and gladness, as a matter of great benefit not to be left there. But can it be accounted a benefit or matter of joy to any one not to be left or permitted to stay in that place to which he came pur­posely that he might triumph over his adversaries, whom he had conquered? surely no. So that there seems not to be any suf­ficient ground to assign either of these for the ends of his suppo­sed descent. But to come closer to the matter, none need trou­ble themselves to find out ends why our Saviour should descend thither, seeing there is no express place in the Scripture where the Holy Ghost sayes, that Christ did descend into Hell, the place of the damned. The four Evangelists that wrote the History of our Saviour make no mention of his going to any such place. The Apostle Paul. 1 Cor. 15.1, 2. mentions Christs Death, Bu­rial, and Resurrection, but not a word of his descent into Hell. This was no part of the Gospel which Paul Preached. And for the further clearing of this matter, let us consider these things. 1. His God-head could not descend, being every where present as we said before. 2. His Body was laid in the Grave. [Page 142] 3. His Soul went not to Hell, but immediately to Paradise the place of joy and bliss, Luke 23.43. This day (sayes our Savi­our to the penitent Thief) shalt thou be with me in Paradise. These things being premised I see not that this article of Christs de­scent can be understood of his Soul either metaphorically or really. Others therfore understood it of his body. And here also is some difference. For some by Christs descending into Hell understand only his burial, because in those Creeds where this Article of Christs descent was expressed, there is no mention of his Burial, but it is wholly omitted. Thus the Athanasian Creed, who suffered for our Salvation, descended into Hell, rose again the third day from the Dead. And Ruffinus tells us, that though the Oriental and Roman Creeds had not these words in them, that Christ descended into Hell, yet they had the sense of them in the word Buried. By which it appears that the first intention of putting these words into the Creed was to express the burial of our Saviour, and the descent of his body [...] [...] quasi [...], lo­cus invisi­ [...]lis, sic [...]eddidit v [...]tus I [...]e­nai inter­p [...]s. into an invisible place, namely, the Grave. The Aquileian Creed is the first that we read of, that mentioned both his burial and descent into Hell: But Ruffinus thinks they intended by both expressions one and the same thing, though others by mistake (as it seems) did from the latter ex­pression conclude that our Saviours Soul did actually and locally descend into Hell. But we have shewed before what little ground there is for that opinion. But there are some, who by Christs descent into Hell, will not allow, should be meant his burial only; for then (say they) there will be a tautology in the Creed, which that in so short a symbol the composers of it would be guilty of, is hard to imagine. Others therefore to obviate that objection say, by his descent into Hell is not to be understood his burial, but his continuance under the power of death for some time, though it was very short. For death had no long dominion over him, Rom. 6.9. This I acknowledg to be a true and safe sense. But that [...] doth signifie a permansion or continuance for some time in the state of the dead, does not to me appear. However let every pious and judicious person follow his own Judgment here­in, especially seeing, as the learned Vossius tells us, The Fathers did not hold this descent of Christ into Hell for an Article of Faith. Patres hoc dogma de descensu animae Christi non habuere pro capite, sive (ut nunc loqui solemus) pro articulo fidei. Ʋnde id videas [Page 143] prope in omnibus symbolis omitti: ut in ipsius synodi Nicenae sym­bolo: ubi profecto non praeteriissent, si dogma hoc agnovissent. Quippe eo nihil magis valuisset ad refellendum Arrium, siquidem is negabat Christum habuisse animam, ac Divinitatem ei pro anima fuisse, ai­ebat. Nec hujus meminit confessio fidei synodi Illyricae nec memi­nere Concilia duo Occumenica Constantinopolitanum, & Chalcedo­nense. Sic ergo statuimus Orientales per descensum Christi ad in­feros primitus intellexisse, id quod Occidentales vocarunt Sepul­turam: Et errore quodam factum esse, ut cum prius qui unum di­cerent, alterum praeterirent, ambo postea caeperint conjungi. Sa­ne temporibus Ruffini, id est, circa annum quadringentesimum ipsa ecclesia Romana erat contenta meminisse solius sepulturae. Aqui­leiensis vero Ecclesia habuit quidem utrumque in symbolo suo, sed si ex Ruffini mente judicandum, unum idemque ambobus signifi­cari arbitrabatur. Ruffini verba in expositione symboli haec sunt. Sciendum est quod in Ecclesiae Romanae symbolo non habetur additum, descendit ad inferna sed neque Orientis in Ecclesiis habe­tur hic sermo. Vis tamen verbi eadem videtur esse in eo quod sepultus est. Errore etiam illa duo conjungi judicium est doctissimi Schindleri, sic in Lexico suo scribentis in voce Sheol. Sheol signi­ficat Sepulchrum. Gen. 44.29. deducetis canos meos (i. e. ca­nitiem meam, vel me canum ex senectute) in Sheol, id est, in ter­ram, quatenus est mortuorum receptaculum 1 Reg. 2. v. 6. 9. Ne­que sinito canitiem ejus descendere cum pace [...], ubi Gehennam non possumus intelligere, nec enim hec poena a Judice terreno in­fligitur sed plane sign atur Sepulchrum, statusque mortuorum.

SECT. VII. Of our Saviours Resurrection.The third day he rose a­gain from the Dead.

OUr blessed Lord and Saviour (as we have shewed) was cru­cified, put to death and buried. We come now to shew that the third day after his burial, He rose again from the Dead. And here several particulars will fall under our consideration. 1. We shall shew That it was prophesied of the Messias that he should rise from the dead. 2. That Jesus our Lord did so rise as [Page 144] was foretold. 3. We shall produce the proofs of his Resurrection. 4. We shall shew the principal cause of his Resurrection. 5. The time 6. The ends for which he arose. I begin with the First, namely, that Christs Resurrection was prophesied of and foretold. And this may appear from Acts 2.31. Where the Apostle shews us that David seeing this before, spake of the Resurrection of Christ; that his Soul was not left in Hell, neither did his flesh see corruption. Christ himself did foretell it, Mat. 17.22.23. The Son of man shall be betrayed into the hands of men, and they shall kill him, and the third day he shall be raised again. And John 2.19. De­stroy this Temple (viz. of my Body) and in three days I will raise it up. Christ had so plainly and so often foretold his Resurrecti­on that the Chief Priests and Pharisees could say to Pilate, Sir, we remember that this Deceiver said while he was yet alive, after three days I will rise again. And the Apostle Paul professes, Acts 26.23. that he said no other things then what Moses and the Prophets did say should come, viz. that Christ should suffer and that he should rise from the Dead. And as Christs Resurrection was prophe­sied of, so it was typified and prefigured. 1. By Isaac, Gen. 22. who was bound, and laid on the Altar, and as good as dead in his Fathers account, yet Abraham received him from the dead again in a figure, Heb. 11.19. that is, in a figure of Christs Resurrection. 2. By Jonas, Matth. 12.40. as Jonas was three days and three nights in the Whales belly, so shall the Son of man be three dayes and three nights in the heart of the earth. 2. Je­sus Christ our Lord did so rise as was foretold. The Lord of Life was buried on that day on which he was Cruci­fied; and his body was in the grave some part of that day, and all the next day, and some part of the day following. And very early on the first day of the week he arose. The Apo­stles to whom he shewed himself alive after his passion by ma­ny infallible proofs gave witness of his Resurrection, Acts 1.3. He being seen of them forty days, and speaking of the things, pertaining to the Kingdom of God. And our Saviour himself after his Resurrection, said to his Apostles, Luke 24.39, 40. Behold my hands and my feet, that it is I my self, handle me and see, for a Spirit hath not flesh and bones, as ye see me have; and when he had thus spoken, he shewed them his hands and his feet. 3. For a further proof of his Resurrection, let us consider the manner [Page 145] of it, and his several Appearings after it. 1. Very early on the first day of the week with a great Earthquake our Lord arose, and an Angel descending rolled away the stone, and sate thereon. The watchmen are frighted away. 2. Mary Magdalen, Joanna, Mary the mother of James with others, come to the Sepulchre with spices prepared to embalm him. The Angel speaks to them not to be affraid, but to come and see where Jesus had been laid, but was now risen. He bids them go tell his Disciples that in Galilee they should see him. 3. The women go and tell the same to the Dis­ciples, but their words seemed to them as idle tales. 4. Peter and John run to the Sepulchre and see the linnen cloaths in which Jesus was wrapped; but his body was not there. They return home wondring: but Mary Magdalen still stayed there weeping, and looking back she saw Jesus; yet thought it had been the Gardner, but upon his speaking to her she discerned that it was He. This was his first appearing after his Resurrection.1. Appear­ing. She goes to imbrace his feet, which he forbids, but sends her to tell his Disciples, (whom he calls his Brethren;) which she accor­dingly does, but they believe her not. The other women run to the Sepulchre to try if they likewise could see him; and being there told by the Angel that he was risen, Christ meets them in the way and sayes All-Hail, and sends them to his Brethren to tell them they should meet him in Galilee. 2. Appear­ing. This is his second appearing. The affrighted watchmen who had fled into the Ci­ty and had acquainted the Chief Priests with all that had hap­ned, have money given them to say that his Disciples stole him a­way while we slept. But how miserable a fiction was this? For if they had stoln his body away, (which yet they did not) could they have put life into it?3. Appear­ing. And we see our Saviour is alive again. His third appearing was to the Disciples that were go­ing to Emaus. His fourth was to Simon Peter. 4. Appear. His fifth appear­ing was to his Disciples met together, Thomas being absent.5. Appear. Here he shews them his pierced hands and side, See these things morefully set down in the 8th. Ch. of the 6th. Book of my Harmony. and eats a piece of a broiled fish and an honey-comb with them; bids them tarry at Jerusalem till the gifts of the Holy Ghost should be poured forth upon them. He gives them a new Commission, and breaths on them, saying, Receive ye the Holy Ghost; adding, whose sins ye remit they are remitted, and whose sins ye retain, they are retained. Thus he appeared five times on the day of his Resurrection. His [Page 146] sixth appearing was to his Disciples on the eighth day after his Re­surrection,6. App [...]ar. being the first day of the Week, Thomas being pre­sent, whom he condescends so far to satisfie, that he cries out, my Lord and my God. 7. Appear. His seventh appearing was to several of his Disciples at the Sea of Tyberias, as they were fishing; he helpeth them to a great draught of Fish (having before caught nothing) whereby they knew him. Peter casts himself into the Sea to swim unto him. The other Disciples come to him by boat. He eats with them bread and fish. He asks Peter thrice whether he loved him, and commands him to feed his Sheep. He foretelleth him of his future sufferings, and reproves him for his Question concern­ing John. 8. Appear. His eighth appearing was on a Mountain in Galilee to above five hundred at once. Where he gives commission to his Disciples to go, and teach all Nations, and baptize the Converted. And promises that not only many shall be converted to the Faith, but that miraculous gifts of the Holy-Ghost shall be conferred on them that believe, as casting out Devils, speaking with tongues, &c. and that he will be with them and their successors to the end of the World. [...]. Appear. His ninth appearing was to James. His tenth and last was on the fortieth day after his Resurrection;10. Appear. At which time having commanded them to wait at Jerusalem for the descending of the Holy Ghost upon them, and answered their question, whe­ther he would restore the Kingdom to Israel at that time or no, He led them forth to Mount Olivet, and there lifting up his hands, and blessing them, he was carried up into Heaven, a Cloud receiving him out of their sight. Two Angels appearing to them, assure them that he will so come to Judgment as they had seen him go to Heaven. And thus much for our Saviours several appearings after his Resurrection.

Fourthly, Let us consider how our Saviour arose. The prin­cipal cause of his Resurrection was God himself. For no other power then that which is Omnipotent can raise the dead, as the Apostle intimates, Acts 2.32. This Jesus hath God raised up, Eph. 1.19, 20. according to the working of his mighty power, which he wrought in Christ when he raised him from the dead and set him at his own right hand in the heavenly places. This great work is attributed to the Father, but not to him alone; For to whomsoever that infinite power doth belong, by which Christ was raised; That Person must be acknowledged to have raised him. [Page 147] The Son of God therefore being of the same essence and conse­quently of the same power with the Father, and the same being true also of the Holy Ghost, we must accordingly acknowledge that the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost raised up Christ from the dead. John 2.19, 21. Jesus said unto them, destroy this Tem­ple and in three-days I will raise it up, he spake of the temple of his body So that not only God the Father raised the Son, but also God the Son raised himself, by the power of his Divinity, which was never sepa­rated after his incarnation either from his Body or his Soul.

5. Let us consider the time when he arose, viz. on the third day from his passion. This was foretold of the Messias not only that he should rise again, but that he should arise the third day after his death, it was typified by Jonas as we shewed before. Our Saviour did rise properly on the third day after his death; and he was three days and three nights in the heart of the earth, synecdochically the whole time or space of three dayes being put for a part of it. Our Saviour rose the first day of the Week: and his Resurrection being so eminent a declaration, that he had fully accomplished the work of our Redemption, from thence the Sabbath was changed to that day. Acts 20.7. And upon the first day of the Week, when the Disciples came together to break bread, Paul preached unto them. 1 Cor. 16.1. As I have Or­dained in the Churches of Galatia so do ye. Ʋpon the first day of the week, let every one of you lay by him in store, as God hath prospered him, that there be no gatherings when I come. He or­dains that their Collections for the poor Saints and oblations should be on that day. And St. John sayes Rev. 1.10. I was in the Spirit on the Lords day. Thus the observation of the se­venth day of the week, which the Jews kept, did cease and was buried with our Saviour. And the observation of that day on which the Son of God rose, by the practice of the blessed Apostles was transmitted to the Church of God, and so hath continued in all ages of the Church ever since. As God spake by Moses to the Israelites, Exodus 31.13. Verily my Sabbaths ye shall keep, for it is a sign between me and you. viz. that you profess your selves to be my people in an especial manner. So they that belong to the Church of Christ are known by observing the first day of the week, on which he arose, and by this mark (among o­thers) are distinguished from such who own not Christ nor his Gospel.

6. And lastly, Let us consider the ends for which Christ arose? And those were such as these, 1. for our justification. Rom. 4.25. He was delivered for our offences and rose again for our justi­fication. 2. To assure us of our resurrection. If Christs body had not been raised, how could we have expected the Resurrecti­on of our bodies? The Resurrection of the members depends upon the Resurrection of the Head. 2 Cor. 4.14. 3. That he might be declared to be the Son of God with power, Rom. 1.4. by his Resurrection from the dead. Therefore says the Apostle, Acts 13.32.33. We declare unto you glad tidings, how that the promise which was made unto the Fathers, God hath fulfilled the same unto us their Children, in that he hath raised up Jesus again, as it is also written in the second Psalm. Thou art my Son, this day have I begotten thee. Christ was the Son of God before, but then he appeared so to be against all contradiction. For he arose by his own divine power, which no meer man ever did or shall do. 4. He rose again to encourage us firmly to believe in him as a most perfect Redeemer. Our Surety is released and set free, therefore Gods Justice is satisfied, and so we are begotten unto a lively hope of eternal life by the Resurrection of Jesus Christ from the Dead, 1 Pet. 1.3. 5. By his Resurrection he hath shewed us how we ought to imitate him and to rise from the death of Sin to the life of Grace. This the Apostle intimates to us, Rom. 6.4. Therefore we are buried with him by Baptism into death, that like as Christ was raised up from the dead by the glory of the Father; even so we also should walk in newness of life. Let us consider therefore and seriously examine our selves whether we be risen with Christ or no? Are our affections set on things above? Acts 3.2. Do we delight in the Ordinances of God? (They that have a spiritual life will delight in that food whereby that spiritual life is maintained.) Do we delight in communion with God, and exercise our selves in frequent meditation and the believing views of the Glory of the other life? Those who are risen with Christ seek the things that are above.

SECT. VIII. Of our Saviours Ascension and sitting on Gods right Hand.He ascen­ded into Heaven.

THe words of the Creed are these. He ascended into Heaven, and sitteth on the right hand of God the Father Almighty. In treating of this Article I shall first shew that the promised Messias was to ascend into Heaven. 2. That our Jesus did really and truly ascend thither. 3. I shall shew what Heaven it was he ascended into. 4. The reasons of his Ascension. 5. The time when he ascended. 6. The place from whence he ascended.

I begin with the First, namely, that the promised Messias was to ascend into Heaven. This was typified of him by the High Priests going once a year into the Holy of Holies, Heb. 9.11. which was a type of Heaven. The High Priest when he had slain the Sacrifice, did with the blood thereof enter into the Holy of Holies. So the Messias having offered up himself a Sacrifice to God for us with his own blood, went into the Holy of Holies, viz. into Heaven, there to intercede for us by the virtue and merit of that blood. And as this was typified, so it was also prophesi­ed of the Messias, Psal. 68.18. compared with Ephesians 4.8. Thou hast ascended up on high, thou hast led Captivity Captive, thou hast received gifts for men. He was to conquer Sin and Death and Hell, and triumphing over them, he was to ascend to the highest Heaven, and thence to send the precious and glorious gifts of the Spirit unto the Sons of Men. And accordingly he himself did foretell his Ascension, John 6.62. and John 20.17.

2. This was not only foretold of the Messias, but really perfor­med by him. He who was the Eternal Son of God, and by his Divinity present in Heaven while here upon the Earth, did by local translation of his humane nature, really and truly ascend from this earth below into the Heavens above, as is sufficiently testified by these following Scriptures, Mark 16.19. Luke 24.50, 51. Acts 1.9, 10. Christs Ascension was visibly performed in the sight of his Apostles. They saw him when he ascended; [Page 150] the holy Angels there present bearing also Testimony unto it, Acts 1.10, 11.

3. Let us consider the place he ascended unto, which was the Heaven of Heavens, he passed through all the regions of the air, through all the coelestial Orbs, till he came to the Heaven of Hea­vens, the most glorious presence of the Majesty of God. He ascend­ed far above all visible Heavens to the third Heaven, 2 Cor. 12.2. that he might fill all things, that is, fulfill all things prophe­sied of him.

4. Let us consider the reasons why he ascended.

1. Having finished the work of our Redemption, it was meet he should return thither from whence he came, John 16.28. John 17.4, 5. 2. After his Humiliation his Exaltation was to follow. The first step of which was his Resurrection, and his Ascen­sion another step of it. 3. Christ by his Ascension manifested his victory over Sin, Satan and Death. 4. He Ascended to make intercession for us. Rom. 8.34. 1 Joh. 2.1. Heb. 9.24. 5. That he might send down a more plentiful effusion of the gifts and graces of his Spirit. And accordingly he tells his Apo­stles, John 16.7. Nevertheless, I tell you the truth, it is ex­pedient for you that I go away, for if I go not away the Comforter will not come unto you. John 7.38, 39. He that believeth on me, as the Scripture hath said, out of his belly shall flow rivers of living water. But this spake he of the spirit, which they that believe on him should receive, for the Holy-Ghost was not yet given, because that Jesus was not yet glorified. 6. He ascended that he might prepare a place for his members. John 14.2. In my Fathers house are many Mansions, if it were not so I would have told you: I go to prepare a place for you, Heb. 6.20. Whither the fore­runner is for us entred even Jesus made an High Priest for ever after the order of Melchisedeck.

5. We come to consider the time when he ascended, viz. forty dayes after his Resurrection, Acts 1.3. The reasons why he continued so long, we may suppose to be these two. 1. to confirm unto his Disciples his Resurrection, and assure them of the truth of it; and, 2. To instruct them in the things pertaining to the Kingdom of God.

6. Let us consider the place from whence he ascended, viz. Bethany, that part of Mount Olive [...] which was near Bethany.

7. Let us consider how he ascended, viz. while he blessed his Dis­ciples, he was parted from them. And while they beheld, a Cloud received him out of their sight.

We come now to consider what improvement we ought to make of this Doctrine. 1. Christs ascension confutes the Popish Doctrine of transubstantiation. He is not really and corporally pre­sent in the Sacrament. He is not there, for he is ascended into Heaven. 2. It makes for our consolation. It may serve to encourage us to go to God in all our necessities, seeing we have so powerful an advocate at Gods right hand. 3. Seeing Christ is ascended, it may assure us that if we be his members we shall ascend also. The head being ascended, the members must likewise in due time ascend. John 17.24. Father, I will that those also whom thou hast given me be with me where I am, that they may behold my glory which thou hast given me. The Apostle speaks of the ascension of true Believers as a thing already effected by Christs ascension, Eph. 2.6. And hath raised us up together, and made us sit together in Heavenly places in Christ Jesus; that is, having by that power by which he raised Christ from the grave, quickned us and bestowed a new spi­ritual life upon us, he hath also (in assured hope) raised us up from the dead in Christ our Head, and hath set us with him in Heaven. For He sitting there who is our Head, we who are his members may at present not unfitly be said to fit there also in him, and shall infallibly come thither in due time. 4. It may take away the fear of death, yea, make it desirable to us, if we be members of Christ, seeing it will but carry us thither, whither he is gone before to prepare a place for us. Therefore the Apostle sayes Phil. 1.23. that though he was in a strait betwixt two whe­ther he should desire to die or live, considering the need the Phi­lippians and others had of his Ministry; yet as for himself he had a desire to depart, and to be with Christ, which is far better than to continue in this World.

Having thus spoken of Christs ascension to Heaven,sitteth on the right hand of God the Father Almigh­ty it remaineth that I speak of the other part of the Article, viz. his sitting on the right hand of God the Father Almighty. Concerning this Article we shall shew these things. 1. That the promised Messiah was to sit on the right hand of the Father. 2. That our Messiah did after his ascension sit on the right hand of God. 3. We shall shew the importance of this phrase. 4. What improvement we are to make of this Article.

1. The promised Messias was to sit on the right hand of the Father. This was foretold Psal. 110.1. The Lord said unto my Lord, sit thou at my right hand untill I make thine enemies thy footstool. That those words were spoken concerning the Messiah, may appear from Mat. 22.44. and Acts 2.34, 35.

2. Our Messias after his ascension did sit at the right hand of God, Mark 16.19. He was received up into Heaven and sate on the right hand of God. This was an honour never promised, ne­ver given to any but the Messias, Heb. 1.13. To which of the Angels said he at any time sit on my right hand? The Angels in­deed stand about the Throne of God, but never any of them sate down on his right hand. But our Saviour was so assured of this honour, that before the Chief Priest and Elders, when he saw his death contrived, and his Cross prepared, he expressed his assu­rance of it, Luke 22.69. Hereafter shall the Son of man sit on the right hand of the power of God. And the Apostle Peter speak­ing of him after his Ascension, 1 Pet. 3.22. sayes Who is gone into Heaven and is on the right hand of God, Angels and authorities and powers being made subject unto him.

3. Let us inquire what is the importance of this phrase sit­ting at the right hand? The intent of the Holy Ghost is not to shew what bodily posture Christ is in, but what dignity he is in, therefore in Scripture Christ is sometimes said to be at Gods right hand, Rom. 8.34. 1 Pet. 3.22. sometimes to sit on Gods right hand, as Mark 16.19. sometimes to standSedere judicantis est, stare vero adju­vantis, G egor. at Gods right hand; and thus he appeared to Stephen, Acts 7.55, 56. as ready to as­sist him, as ready to plead for him, as ready to receive him. 'Tis true, God being a Spirit hath no material parts, no right hand or left hand; but he is pleased to condescend to our capacities, and to speak to us after the manner of men, among whom the right hand is the most honourable place. Thus 1 Kings 2.19. Bathsheba was placed on Solomons right hand. The right hand of God must therefore be taken here metaphorically, not properly. And so it signifies. 1. The great honour given to Christ. 2. The great Power and Dominion he hath obtained in Heaven. It im­ports his Kingly Power, and it was his solemn entry upon his Re­gal office as to the execution of that full dominion which was due unto him. For worthy is the Lamb that was slain to receive Power and Riches and Wisdom and Strength and Honour and Glory [Page 153] and Blessing, Rev. 5.12. Therefore he said after his Resurrection, all power is given to me in Heaven and in Earth, Mat. 28.18. And the Apostle tells us Phil. 2.8, 9. To him every knee shall bow, that is, that all should be subject to him. The principal end of this Regal Office of Christ is the effectual Redemption and actual Salvation of all those whom God hath given him. And whosoever, or whatsoever opposeth their Salvation, is by that opposition, become his enemy. And seeing the Promise of God cannot be evacuated, our Saviour must exercise this his Regal Power at the right hand of God till all such enemies be subdued, 1 Cor. 15.25. For he must reign till he hath put all enemies under his feet. And when the whole Office of the Mediator shall be compleated and fulfilled, then every branch of the execution shall cease, 1 Cor. 15.24, 28. Then cometh the end when he shall have delivered up the Kingdom to God even the Father, when he shall have put down all Rule and all Authority and Power, and when all things shall be subdued un­to him, then shall the Son also himsef be subject unto him that put all things under him, that God may be all in all. But though the Mediatorship of Christ be then resigned, and the Regal Office, as a part of that Mediatorship; yet Christ shall not cease to be King or loose any thing of that power and honour he had before; but as the Nicene Creed has it, His Kingdom shall have no end.

4. Let us now consider what improvements we ought to make of this Article.

1. If Christ be set down on the right hand of God, let this mind us of our duty, which is humble subjection and obedience to him.

2. Let us encourage our selves if we belong to him, to expect protection from him. God hath given him to be head over all things to his Church. And all power is given him both in heaven and earth.

3. Let us remember his intercession, Heb. 9.24. For Christ is not entred into the Holy places made with hands, which are the figures of the true, but into Heaven it self, now to appear in the presence of God for us. 1 John 2.1. If any man sin we have an Advocate with the Father, Jesus Christ the Righteous. Heb. 7.25. He is able to save them to the uttermost, all that come unto God by him, seeing he ever liveth to make intercession for them. Doth the guilt of sin sting and wound our Consciences? Let us [Page 154] remember what an Advocate we have. Are we in want of any mercy? Let us remember what our Saviour himself sayes, John 16, 23. Whatsoever you ask the Father in my name he will give it you. Whatever trouble we are in, let us not be dismayed, con­sidering Christ is at Gods right hand. Heb. 12.2.

4. Let all those that oppose Christ and his Kingdom think seriously of this, His enemies must be made his footstool.

SECT. IX. Of our Saviours coming to judge the World.

THe words of the Creed are these. From thence He shall come to Judge the Quick and the Dead. From thence he shal come to judge the quick and the dead. Concerning this Arti­cle we shall make these inquiries.

1. How may we be assured there will be a day of Judgment.

2. Who is to be the Judge at that great day?

3. What will be the nature and manner of that Judgment?

4. What will be the Consequents of it?

1. How may we be assured there will be a day of Judgment?

The Scripture holds forth to us a twofold Judgment to come.

1. Particular judgment which follows immediately upon eve­ry ones death, Eccles. 12.7. Then shall the dust return to the earth, and the Spirit shall return unto God who gave it. This is also held forth by that Historical Parable of Dives and Lazarus, Luke 16.22, 23. and Heb. 9.27. The Apostle tells us It is ap­pointed unto man once to die, and after this to Judgment. Unum sci [...]icet. Nam ulti­mum judicium nihil aliud erit quam promulgatio solennis, & totalis executio sententiae se­mel in singulos cum moriuntur latae, Jac. Capellus. in loc.

2. A General, Judgement at the end of the World, the cer­tainty of which may appear to us from these Arguments.

1. From the sence that even natural conscience seems to have of it. Acts 24.25. and as he reasoned of Righteousness, Temperance and Judgment to come, Foelix trembled.

2. From the Justice of God which requires it. Here Barabbas a murderer is released and Christ is Crucified; here Judgment is often perverted, and the Righteous oppressed. But there is a Judgment to come that will set all things streight.

3. From the clear and manifest declaration of the will of God [Page 155] that it shall be so, Eccles. 12.14. God shall bring every work in­to Judgment with every secret thing, whether it be good or whether it be evil, And Acts 17.31. He hath appointed a day in the which he will judge the World in Righteousness by that man whom he hath ordained, whereof he hath given assurance unto all men, in that he hath raised him up from the dead.

4. From the representation made of it to some of Gods ser­vants in Divine visions, as 1. to Daniel. Dan. 7.9, 10. I beheld till the Antient of dayes did sit, whose Garment was white as Snow; thousand thousands ministred unto him, and ten thousand times ten thousand stood before him. The Judgment was set and the books were opened, and 2. to St. John Rev. 20.12. I saw the dead small and great stand before God, and the books were opened. And another book was opened which is the book of life; and the dead were Judged out of those things which were written in the books according to their works.

2. Let us inquire who is to be the Judge? The Apostle assures us that this Jesus Christ will be the Judge, Acts 10.42. He hath commanded us to preach unto the people and to testifie that it is he which was ordained of God to be the Judge of quick and dead, John 5.22, 27. For the Father Judgeth no man (that is imme­diately by himself) but hath committed all Judgement unto the Son, and hath given him authority to execute Judgment also, because he is the Son of man. Now Christ is appointed the Judge.

1. Because he is the Son of man, The au­thority of Judging is common to all the three Persons; but the execution of this power is proper only to the Son. The Fa­ther and the Holy-Ghost will Judge the World by Him. who suffered so much for the sins of men, and this as a reward of his humiliation.

2. Because God intending to make a general and visible Judge­ment, will have a visible Judge, Rev. 1.7. Behold he cometh with Clouds and every eye shall see him, that the Judicial proceedings may be in an outward and visible manner. Christ indeed came not at first as a Judge but as a Redeemer, John 3.17. but his second coming will be to Judge the World, 2 Tim. 4.1.

3. Let us inquire what will be the nature and manner of this Judgment? And here 1. Let us consider the Preparations to it, Scripture sets forth this by the Arch-Angels Trumpet, by which all the World shall be (as it were) summoned to appear at Gods [Page 156] Tribunal, 1 Thes. 4.16. 2. For the manner of it, the Scripture repre­sents it to us under the form of a judiciary process, wherein,

1. The Judge himself will appear exceeding glorious. He will come with power and great glory even the glory of the Father, Mat. 16.27. And when this his Glory shall be revealed, then the Saints shall be glad with exceeding joy, 1 Pet. 4.13.

2. His attendance will be very glorious, Mat. 25.31. The Son o [...] man shall come in his [...]lory, and all the holy Angels with him.

3. A Throne will be set, a Tribunal, a seat of Judgment erect­ed, Mat. 19.28. The Son of man shall sit in the Throne of his glory, &c. Rom. 14.10. For we shall all stand before the Judg­ment Seat of Christ.

4. There will be a personal apearance of all men before this Tribunal. He shall judge both the quick, that is, those found alive at his coming (upon whom a change different from death shall pass,) and the dead, viz. that died before,It was a singular & extraordi­nary priviledge v [...]uchsafed to E­noch and Elias that they should not di [...]. But according to Gods or­dinary and usual dis­pensation It is ap­pointed to all men once to die, Heb. 9.27. Acts 10.42.

5. The Actions and Works of those that shall be judged shall then be manifested, 1 Cor. 4.5. He will bring to light the hid­den things of darkness and will make manifest the counsells of the heart, Eccles. 12.24. God will bring every work into Judgment with every secret thing, whether it be good or whether it be evil. The Books will then be opened, viz. 1. The Book of Gods Omniscience and Remembrance, Mal. 3.16. and the book of Conscience, Jer. 17.1.

6. The Statutes shall be produced, upon which they shall be tryed, and found guilty or not-guilty. And they are two. 1. The Law of Nature, written on Mans heart at his creation, which re­quires perfect obedience, and which God gave man power at first to perform. 2. The Law or Covenant of Grace. Now we shall all be found guilty upon the first Statute. Woe to us if we be cast by the second also. To prevent this, let us set our selves se­riously to repent of all our sins, and by a lively faith lay hold on Christ, and take him for our Lord and Saviour, and faithfully en­deavour to conform our selves unto his precepts.

7. The evidence or witnesses that will be ready to prove the in­dictment against all impenitent sinners, especially such as lived under the Gospel, are,

1. God the Father whose mercy was by them so wretchedly slighted.

2. God the Son, whose blood they trampled under their feet.

3. God the Holy Ghost, whose blessed motions they so often re­sisted.

4. All faithful Ministers who strove with all affectionateness to draw them to Christ.

5. All good Parents, Governors, Masters or faithful Christia [...] friends among whom they lived, who gave them faithful counsel for the welfare of their Souls, and a good example.

6. All their sinful companions, who were partakers with them in their sins.

7. Their own Consciences, which are a thousand witnesses.

8. The Judge will pronounce sentence upon every one accord­ing to his works. And this will be twofold.

  • 1. Of Absolution.
  • 2 Of Condemnation.
  • 1. Of Absolution to the Righteous, in these words, come ye blessed of my Father inherit the Kingdom prepared for you, Matth. 25.34. The Saints of God shall first be acquit­ted before the wicked be condemned, that they may af­terwards joyn with Christ in Judging the World, 1 Cor. 6.2. There the Apostle tells us that the Saints shall Judge the World, that is, not Authoritatively, but by way of Approbation, approving and magnifying Christs Righ­teous Sentence on Devils and wicked men, and giving some such approbation (probably) as that of the Angel Rev. 16.5. Thou art Righteous O Lord, which art, and wast, and shalt be, because thou hast thus Judged. Thus all the Saints shall be Judges, but some of them more eminently as Assessors with Christ, as is intimated concer­ning the Apostles, Matth. 19.28. ye shall sit upon twelve Thrones, Judging the twelve Tribes of Israel.
  • 2. Of Condemnation upon the wicked, Matth. 25.41. Then shall he say to them on his left hand, depart from me ye cursed into everlasting fire, prepared for the Devil and his Angels.

9. The execution of the Sentence, and disposing of the per­sons Judged to their everlasting state according to that sentence, Matth. 25.46. And these shall go away into everlasting punish­ment, [Page 158] but the righteous into life eternal. The sentence is irrevo­cable; no reprieve to be expected. Then there will be an ever­lasting separation between the Righteous and the Wicked.

4. What will be the consequents of this Judgment?

  • 1. Christs resigning up his Kingdom, (not his essential King­dom, but that which he administred as mediator) to the Father, 1 Cor. 15.24.
  • 2. The burning of the World; of which we read 2 Pet. 3.12. By which fire some think the World shall not be utterly consumed, but renewed, clarified and refined.

I come now to the Application, which I shall reduce to three heads.

This Doctrine of the day of Judgment may be useful.

  • 1. By way of exhortation to all.
  • 2. By way of consolation to the Righteous.
  • 3. By way of terror to the Wicked.

1. By way of exhortation to all.

1. Let us all labour to strengthen and confirm in our selves a belief of this great Article. There is no Doctrine more certain in the word of God, nor more clear and fundamental than this of the day of Judgment. Heb. 6.2.

2. Let us frequently meditate on it, let us often think on those awakening places, 2 Thes. 1.7.8. The Lord Jesus shall be re­vealed from Heaven with his mighty Angels in flaming fire, taking vengeance on them that know not God, and that obey not the Gospel of our Lord Jesus Christ. Who shall be punished with everlasting destructi­on from the presence of the Lord and from the glory of his power, 1 Thes. 4.16. The Lord himself shall descend from Heaven with a shout, with the voice of the Arch-Angel, with the trump of God, and the dead in Christ shall rise first, Jude verse 14.15. And Enoch also, the seventh from Adam, prophesied of these, saying, be­hold, the Lord cometh with ten thousand of his Saints, to execute Judgment upon all, and to convince all that are ungodly among them, of all their ungodly deeds which they have ungodly committed, and of all their hard speeches, which ungodly sinners have spoken against him. To think often of this great day may prevent many a sin, Psal. 58.11. Verily there is a reward for the Righteous, and doubtless there is a God that Judgeth the earth.

3. Let us all solemnly prepare our selves for this great try­al [Page 159] by setting up a Judgment Seat in our own Souls before­hand.

  • 1. Let us seriously examine our state towards God. Every one is either a Child of Wrath and Perdition, or a Child of God and an heir of Heaven. Let us examine whether we are the one or the other. We keep a great stir about Sects, but the truth is, there are but two great Sects or Parties in the World; And those are either such as are for the present in the state of Nature, or such as are in the state of Grace. Let us therefore seriously consider to which of these two we do belong. Let us consider what our present state is. Have we the marks of a con­verted person upon us or no? Has the work of sound conversion ever passed upon us or no? Let us remember, that except we be converted we cannot enter into the Kingdom of God, John 3.3.
  • 2. Let us examine our hearts. Let us consider what Prin­ciples we act from; what projects we are driving on, and what ends we aim at, let us examine whether Grace rule in our hearts or Sin. Whether we labour to keep a good Conscience toward God and Man?
  • 3. Let us examine our lives. Have we performed duties of Piety towards God as we ought? Have we performed our relative duties towards men as we ought? Have we been so careful in the right governing our selves as we ought.
  • 4. Let us consider whether we have improved our Talents as we ought? 1. Our Spiritual Talents, viz. the means of Grace God hath afforded us. 2. Our Temporal Ta­lents, such as Power, Riches, Health, Strength, &c. Let us remember that of all these things we must give an ac­count.

4. Let the consideration of the day of Judgment quicken our Repentance. There is no way to live free from inward rebuke here, or to appear with comfort at the day of Judgment, with­out having our peace made with God upon Gospel terms. O Sin­ner break off thy sins by repentance now while there is time, be­fore thou be brought to thy tryal at Gods Tribunal.

5. Seeing we must all come to Judgment, let us be wise before­hand [Page 160] to make the Judge our friend. But how shall we do that?

1. By repenting unfeignedly of all our past sins, as I said be­fore.

2. By believing in him, and giving up our selves sincerely to obey him.

3. By owning him before the World, and owning our selves for his Disciples.

4. By being willing to deny our selves for his sake and to take up his Cross, Luke 9.23.

5. By duly regarding his Embassadors and their Message, Matth. 10.40.

6. By prizing and and improving his Ordinances.

7. By doing good to others according to our abilities and op­portunities. See Matth. 25. from 34. to 41.

6. Having prepared our selves for our tryal, let us watch for our Summons to appear before this great Judge. And so much of the first use.

2. This Doctrine may serve for consolation to the Righteous. 'Tis a fountain of great comfort to all the people of God.

1. Christ the Judge is their Head, Husband, Advocate, their elder Brother, their Intercessor, who hath loved them and wash­ed them from their sins in his own blood, Rev. 1.5. O let them think of it to their unspeakable comfort.

2. Let them consider that he will reward them for all the works and faithful services they have done for him in this life. Here they have performed many secret duties that no eye hath seen; there is a time coming, when he that sees in secret will re­ward them openly, such or such a service they have done for God; the thing possibly in it self but small (as the Widows mite) but it was performed with much love and desire to please God, and much singleness of heart; such a service shall not go unre­warded.

3. Let them consider, that though here they they lie under many scandals and reproaches for the name of Christ and the [...]estimony of their Consciences, yet there is a time coming when God will wipe away all tears from their eyes, and blots from their names.

4. Though here they suffer many afflictions and tribulations, [Page 161] yet let them comfort themselves and have patience but a little, James 5.8. for the coming of the Lord draweth nigh, whose coming will be to their unspeakable comfort.

3. And lastly, This Doctrine speaks terror to the wicked, Acts 24.15. When Paul Preached of Righteousness, Temperance and Judgment to come, Foelix trembled. People love a general way of Preaching, such as will give fair quarter to their Lusts, but they should be often told of that great day wherein God will judge them for all their proud Rebellions against him. Here they will do what they list (as far as they are suffered) but they should be remembred, that for all these things God will bring them to Judgment.

CHAP. IV.

SECT. I. Concerning the Holy Ghost.I believe in the Holy Ghost.

IN speaking to this Article, it will be requisite that I 1. pre­mise this, viz. that each Person in the sacred Trinity is to be believed in by us, and we are thankfully to accept the mercies that are conferred by each Person, and to labour to perform the duties we owe to each of them distinctly. For as to take God for our God is more than barely to believe that there is a God; and to take Christ for our Saviour, is more than barely to believe that he is the Messiah: so to believe in the Holy Ghost, is not barely to believe that he is the third Person in the Trinity, and truly God, but to take him for our Guide, Sanctifier, Helper, Advocate and; Comforter. 2. We are to know that he is called the holy Spirit, because of all the three Persons his peculiar office is, to Sanctifie and make Holy the Church and people of God. And therefore the Apostle tells the Thessalonians, 2 Thes. 2.13. that God had chosen them to Salvation through the Sanctification of the Spirit and belief of the truth. There are some that say, they believe in the Holy Ghost and that he Sanctifies them, and all the elect people of God, and yet reject all his Sanctifying motions, and hate all those that are Sanctified by him, making them the objects of their scorn. There are others of another strain who enthusiastically plead the authority of the Spirit in themselves against the authority of the Spirit speaking in the Holy Scriptures. But let us take heed of both these. That therefore I may speak pertinently to this Article, I shall shew that we must labour 1. Rightly to understand the Doctrine of the holy Spirit. 2. Our duty towards him. The Doctrine concerning the Holy Ghost (which is to be believed by us) we have in part already explained in the Section concerning the Trinity, viz. Sect. 2. of Chap. 1. Wherein we have shewed

1. That the Holy Ghost is a Person, not a meer quality, energy or operation.

2. That he is a Divine Person, and has one and the same di­vine nature with the Father and the Son, and so is God truly, and properly.

3. That he is a Person distinct from the Father and the Son.

4. That he is a Person proceeding both from the Father and the Son. We shall now in some more particulars shew what is further to be known and believed concerning this blessed Spi­rit.

1. This holy Spirit infallibly inspired both the Prophets of old, and also the Holy Apostles and Evangelists first to preach, and and then to write the Doctrine of Christ, which is contained in the holy Scriptures.

2. This same blessed Spirit setled this holy Doctrine, and the testimony of those holy men, by many miracles and wonderful works, which he enabled them to work, by which they did con­vince the unbelieving World, and plant the Gospel.

3. This same blessed Spirit having constituted the Offices and Officers of the Church, he doth qualifie and fit men with requi­site gifts for their stated ordinary ministerial work (which is to explain and apply the foresaid Scriptures, and administer the Sa­craments, and guide and govern the Flock) and doth assist them in a discharge of their Office.

4. This same blessed Spirit is Christs advocate with men, and does by the word illuminate their minds, and sanctifie and renew their wills, and draws them to Christ, to rest on his great propiti­ation.

5. This same holy Spirit also assisteth the Sanctified in the ex­ercise of Grace given them, as in the exercise of Repentance, Faith, Obedience, and Selfdenial. He also directs and governs their conver­sation, inabling them to walk watchfully, that they may not disho­nour God nor their holy profession. For if we live in the Spirit (being quickned by his renovation) we must also walk in the Spirit, following his directions; and if we walk in the Spirit we shall not fulfill the lusts of the Flesh. And as many as are thus led by the Spirit, they are the Children of God, Gal. 5.25.

6. He teacheth us to pray, and guides us, and directs us in our prayers and devotions, Zach. 12.10. Rom. 8.26, 27. and [Page 164] so is said to make intercession for us, by teaching us how to pray and intercede for our selves. For which intercession, among other things, he hath the name of a Paraclete given him by Christ, Joh. 14.16. [...] si­ve Advocati officium est Clienti suggerere utilia, ad ea hortari, eum animare atque confi [...]mare coram judice, ejus causam agere, pro eo intercedere.

7. We are said to be sealed by this holy Spirit. As a mans Seal does signifie the thing sealed to be his own, so the Spirit of Holi­ness in us, is God's Seal upon us, signifying that we are His, Eph. 4.30. Grieve not the Holy Spirit of God whereby you are sealed unto the day of Redemption.

8. This holy Spirit is the earnest, or first fruits to us of eter­nal life. The Spirit is given to us by God as the earnest of the glory which he will give us. To whomsoever he giveth the Spi­rit of Faith, Love, Holiness, he gives the earnest of eternal life.

9. This Spirit doth also witness or evidence to true Converts that they are the Children of God, and so is called the spirit of A­doption, Rom. 8.15, 16. Ye have not received the spirit of bon­dage again to fear, but the spirit of adoption whereby we cry Ab­ba Father. The Spirit it self beareth witness with our spirit that we are the children of God. And this he doth evidence to us se­veral wayes. 1. By shewing or manifesting to us the Grace which he hath given us. 2. By shewing the certainty of the Promise made to all those who have such Grace. 3. By helping us from those Graces and those Promises to conclude with confidence that we are the Children of God. And then he comforts us, and helps us to rejoyce in what we do or suffer for Christ, in the hope of the glory that we shall be partakers of.

Thus much concerning the Doctrine of the Spirit; we come now to consider the duties which we owe to him. Which are these.

1. We ought to obey and follow his blessed motions. Yet here we must take heed that we do not mistake the Spirit of God and his motions, and instead of them follow the motions of Sa­tan or of our own Passions or Pride, or fleshly wisdom. By these marks the Spirit of God may be known. 1. The Spirit of God infuses into us Heavenly wisdom to mind the securing our peace with God and our title to the Kingdom of Heaven in the 1. place. [Page 165] 2. He is a Spirit of Love, his motions are for love and doing good. 3. He is a Spirit of Concord and moves Believers to unity, and disswades them from divisions among themselves, or to joyn in carnal confederacies with the wicked, see 1 Cor. 12.25. Eph. 4.3, 4, 5. 4. He is a Spirit that teaches Humility and Self-denial making us little in our own eyes. 5. He is a Spirit that teaches Meekness, Patience and Forbearance; not Boisterousness, Contention Reviling, or Revenge. 6. He is a Spirit that teacheth zeal for God; not a furious destroying zeal, but a zeal against known sin, and for known truth and known duty. 7. He is a Spirit that teacheth mortification and crucifying of our lusts, and subduing of sensuali­ty. 8. He is a Spirit that doth not contradict the Doctrine of Christ delivered in the holy Scripture, but moveth us to ende­vour to conform our selves thereunto, Isa. 8.20. 9. The moti­ons of this blessed Spirit do alwayes tend to our good, and to drive us to God, and to obey his holy Will and Command­ments, and never to transgress any of his precepts.

2. We must take heed of quenching the Spirit, 1 Thes. 5.19. (that is, the gifts and graces of the Spirit in our selves) but must labour to stir them up by prayer and the due exercise of them.

3. We must take heed of grieving this blessed Spirit. Eph. 4.30. Not that he can properly be grieved; but he is said to be grieved when we do that which in it self is apt to grieve him, if he were capable thereof; and which provokes him to do that which grie­ved persons use to do, namely to withdraw his gracious and com­forting presence.

4. We must not neglect the means the Spirit hath appointed us to use for our improvement in Sanctification. We must attend upon him and expect him in his own ways, and not in wayes wherein he useth not to go.

5. We must do most when this blessed Spirit helps us most. If he extraordinarily help us at any time in prayer, we should not break off so soon as at other times.

6. We must be very thankful for the assistances he is pleased at any time to afford us. And above all, if he hath convinced us of the evil and danger of our sins, hath wrought in our hearts true Godly sorrow and contrition for them, and a real hatred and loathing of them, and hath drawn our hearts to Christ Jesus, to seek pardon and reconciliation with God in and through his me­rits [Page 166] and Intercession, and hath begun a work of Sanctification in us, then we ought to admire and to be for ever thankful for the free and efficacious grace of this Holy Spirit.

SECT. II. Of the Holy Catholick Church.The Ho­ly Catho­lick Church.

THat which we are bound to believe concerning the Holy Ca­tholick Church is this, viz. that Christ hath a Church upon the earth, which for the latitude and extent thereof may be cal­led Catholick, and for the Piety of the Professors thereof may be called Holy. In the treating of which, I shall speak. 1. Of the name. 2. Of the nature of the Church. 3. Of the distinctions of it. 4. Of the notes of it.

1. Of the name. Church is a name not found in all the wri­tings of the Old Testament, in which the body of Gods people is represented to us after a figurative manner of Speech, by the names of Sion and Jerusalem, Psal. 87.2. The Lord loveth the Gates of Zion more then all the dwellings of Jacob, and Psal. 112.6. Pray for the peace of Jerusalem; they shall prosper that love thee. The name Church occurreth not till the time of the Gospel, and then it was imposed by our Saviour. For no sooner had Peter made this confession for himself and the rest of the Apostles, Thou art Christ the Son of the living God, Mat. 16.16. but pre­sently our Saviour adds, upon this Rock (that is, the rock of this confession, or upon this Truth whereof thou hast made profession) will I build my Church. As if he should have said, This pro­fession, or this Faith which thou hast professed, shall be the foun­dation of Believers, especially the object of this faith and confessi­on, viz. I my self who am the true Messias. The Greek word for Church is [...] which signifies coetum evocatum, a chosen or selected company, a company called forth of the world or chosen out of others to profess Faith in Christ, and to worship the true God according to his will. And hereby is to be under­stood the body collective of all Gods people professing Faith in [Page 167] Christ, though made up of several particular Congregations, which have been called by the grace and goodness of God to a participation of his Word and Sacraments and other outward means of eternal life. The Church therefore in the language of the New Testament doth alwayes signifie a company of persons professing faith in Christ. Single persons so professing, are members of the particular Churches to which they appertain. And all those particular Churches are members of the universal or Catholick Church, which is one by unity of aggregation, not only of many persons, but also of many Congregations of believing and baptised persons. The Church is therefore one, though the members be many; And there are several things wherein the members of the Catholick Church do agree, and several things also wherein they differ. The things wherein they differ are these.

1. The members of the Church are not all of the same age or standing in Christ. Some are Babes, some Young men, and some are Fathers, 1 John 2.12, 13, 14.

2. They are not all of the same degree of strength. Some are of small strength, and have need to be fed with milk and not with strong meat. Some are weak in Faith and apt to be offend­ed, whom the stronger must take heed of offending. Some are of sounder understandings, and others are tainted with errors and corrupt opinions.

3. They have not all the same degree of gifts, nor the same sort of gifts.

4. They are not all of the same usefulness and serviceableness to the Church. Some are as Pillars, Gal. 2.9. Some are fit to be teachers of others, some so live that the Church hath much benefit by their lives, and great loss by their deaths. And some are such troublers of it by their weaknesses and corrupt distem­pers, that their death is some ease to the places where they did live.

5. They are not all the same in regard of office. Some are ap­pointed to be Pastors, Teachers, Elders, Overseers and Ste­wards of the mysteries of God, and to feed the flock, and to be their Rulers in spiritual things. And some are the Flock, com­manded to learn of them and to have them in honour and high esteem for their works sake, and to obey them. As there are di­versity of gifts, so also of offices.

6. They have not all the same imployment. The Magistrates work is of one kind and the Ministers of another. There is one sort of duties belongs to Parents, and another to Children, one to M [...]sters, and another to Servants.

7. All the members of the Church are not to be equally ho­noured and loved. Even among the Elders there are some that are worthy of double honour. Some are of high and excellent gifts and graces; and as more of God doth shine forth in them, so a greater love and honour is due to them.

8. The members of the Church will not have all an equal de­gree of glory, there being a great inequality in their graces and the services they have done for God in this World.

And so much of the things wherein the members of the Church do differ.

2. Let us consider what are the things wherein they agree.

1. The members of the Catholick Church (strictly taken as comprehending only the true living members thereof) have all one God, the fountain of their being and happiness, and are all re­lated to him as Children to one Father, Eph. 4.6.

2. They have all one Head, Redeemer, Saviour, and Mediator, Jesus Christ, to whom they are all united.

3. They have all one Holy Ghost dwelling in them, illumina­ting, sanctifying and guiding of them, and are all animated by this one Spirit, 1 Cor. 12.13.

4. They have all one principal ultimate end, which is the glory of God and their own eternal Salvation, which they all aim at, hope for, and expect. Eph. 4.4.

5. They have all one Gospel which teaches them the knowledge of Christ, and the things appertaining to their Salvation.

6. 'Tis one kind of Faith that by the holy Doctrine is wrought in their Souls, though the degrees be various: and in the main essen­tials of Christianity they usually agree, though in lesser things there is sometimes much difference among them, Eph. 4.5.

7. There is one new disposition or holy nature wrought by the spirit of God in them all. And the affections predominant in them have one and the same object. Sin is the chiefest thing that all of them hate; the displeasing of God is the chief thing they all fear; and God in Christ is the prime object of all their loves.

8. They have all one rule or law to live by. The moral Law is to them all a rule of life.

9. They are all entred into one and the same Covenant to re­nounce the World, the Flesh and the Devil, and to give them­selves up sincerely to the service of God the Father, Son and Ho­ly Ghost.

10. They agree in a special love to the whole Church, and de­sire of its welfare. And though there may be some differences (through mistake) between some particular members, yet they desire and pray for the safety of the whole.

11. They agree in their love to all the Ordinances and institu­tuted means of Grace, and make use of them in order to their im­provement in holiness.

And thus much of the things wherein the members of the Ca­tholick Church do agree.

2. We come to consider the nature of this Church. There are two things by which the nature of this Church may be discer­ned from such other publick Assemblies which may seem to lay claim to this title. 1. Holiness. 2. Catholicism or Ʋniversality. Now this Church may be called Holy. 1. In respect of its vocati­on. All the members hereof are called unto, and engaged unto Holiness. 2 Tim. 2.19. Let every one that nameth the name of Christ, depart from iniquity. The end of Christs gathering them out of the World to be his people is, that they may be holy and a peculiar people to himself, zealous of good works. Thus Moses speaking of the Congregation of Israel, Deut. 7.6. Thou art an holy people unto the Lord thy God. That is, they were so by de­stination and engagement, though many of them were not really so [...] 2. The Church may be called holy, because it trains up people in the wayes of holiness and godliness. 3. It may be called holy in respect (though not of the greater yet) of the better part of it, whom God hath sanctified by the graces of his holy Spirit. The other Attribute of the Church is Catholick. Catholick as it is not in the Scriptures, so was it not anciently in the Creed, but inserted by the Fathers of the Constantinopolitan Council. It signifies Ge­neral or Ʋniversal. Now the Church is called Catholick.

1. In respect of place. It being not now shut up in the narrow bounds of Judea, but diffused through the World. 2. In respect of persons. All sorts of persons being promiscuously called to Faith in Christ. Neither Jew nor Gentile, neither bond nor free being excluded, Gal. 3.28. 3. In respect of times; It com­prehending [Page 170] all the Faithful that have been in all times and ages ever since the giving of the first promise [that the seed of the woman should bruise the Serpents head.] And to our Saviours dayes; and since then to the age in which we live, and is to conti­tinue from hence by a continual accession to the end of the world. Nay it doth not only include that part of the Church is now militant on earth, but that also which is triumphant in Heaven. Both they with us and we with them make one body mystical, whereof Christ is the Head. And all together, together with the antient Patriarches and other holy men of God, which lived under the Law, do make up that one glorious Church, which is called in the Scriptures, the general Assembly, the Church of the first born, whose names are written in the Heavens. Heb. 12.23. Catholick then the Church may be called in regard of extent, whether we consider time, place or persons. 4. In respect of Doctrine, because it maintains the Catholick Doctrine, quae semper, quae ubique, quae abomnibus credita est, Adversus Haereses c. 3 as Lirinensis (d) sayes, which hath allwayes, and in all places, by all sorts of real Christians been received as Orthodox. Catholick in this sence is the same with Orthodox, and a Catholick Christian the same with a true professor. A private Christian may be called Catholick in this sense. And thus the Fathers of the purest times made use of this word Catholick to distinguish themselves from Hereticks, according to that famous saying of Pacianus; Christianus mihi nomen est, Catholicus cognomen. Christian (saith he) is my name, and Catholick my sir-name. By the one I am known from Infidels, by the other from Here­ticks. And so long as the main body of Christians retained the form of wholsom words, and kept the unity of the Spirit in the bond of peace, it served fitly for a distinctive mark to know an Or­thodox Professor from an Heretical. But when the main body of the Church was once torn in pieces, and every leading faction would be thought the true Church of Christ, they took to them­selves the name of Catholicks also. And thus our great Masters in the Church of Rome have appropriated to themselves the name of catholicks, accounting all men Hereticks that differ from them, and do not hold communion with them in their errors. And then they defend themselves by the name of Catholicks, from having dealt unjustly with their fellow Christians, men every way more Orthodox than themselves. But let them talk what they will, the [Page 171] Church which is truly Catholick containeth within it all those Congregations, which are truly the Churches of Christ. And all persons whatsoever who are true Christians belong to it. So that whosoever is not of the Catholick Church, cannot be of the true Church, out of which ordinarily there is no Salvation.

3. I come now to the distinctions of the Church.

1. The Church of Christ may be considered either as

  • Militant or
  • Triumphant.

The Church Militant is that company of Christians here on earth who are in warfare, warring against Satan, the World and the Flesh.

2. The Church Triumphant are those Saints who having van­quished and overcome those adversaries, do now reign and tri­umph in Heaven. This distinction is founded upon Ephes. 3.14, 15. Where the Apostle sayes, I bow my knees unto the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, of whom the whole Family in heaven and earth is named. The Family in Heaven is the Church Triumphant. The Family on Earth the Church Militant: of which the Apostle himself was one when he said 2 Tim. 4.7. I have fought a good fight, I have finished my course, I have kept the Faith. The Triumphant we may read of, Rev. 7.9. After this I beheld, and lo, a great multitude, which no man could number, of all Nations, and Kindreds, and People, and Tongues, stood before the Throne, and before the Lamb, cloathed with white Robes, and Palms in their hands. Having thus premised this distinction of the Church Militant and Triumphant. I come now to speak particularly of the Church Mi­litant.

1. Then we must know that the Churcrh Militant here on earth consists partly of such as are truly of it, partly of such as only in respect of their outward profession belong to it. As the Holy Ghost speaks, Rev. 2.9. of some who professed themselves Jews, I know the Blasphemy of them that say they are Jews and are not, but are the Synagogue of Satan: so we may say of some who profess themselves Christians, that they are very far from being such in truth and reality. For prophane persons and hypocrites are rather in the Church than of it.

The Militant Church is either visible or invisible. The visible [Page 172] Church is a visible company of people professing the Gospel, whe­ther they do it in truth and sincerity, or no. It doth consist of good and bad. It is compared to a net cast into the Sea which ga­thered of every kind, &c. Matth. 13.47. And to a field wherein were both wheat and tares, Matth. 13.24. And to a great house wherein are vessels of several sorts, some to honour, some to dishonour, 2 Tim. 2.20. The invisible Church consists of such as truly are what they profess themselves to be. It is called invisible because it is not visible to the eyes of men. They can see the profession, but whether it proceed from the heart or no they cannot see. The Invisible Church therefore is hid in the visible, and there is no more difference between them, than between the whole and a part.

3. The Church Militant is distinguished into Particular and Ʋniversal; A particular Church is a company professing the Faith, in some particular place. Thus we read of the seven Churches of Asia, Rev. 1.7. that is, Churches that were in seven Cities in Asia, as appears verse 11. Yea we read of Churches in parti­cular houses, as in the house of Aquila and Priscilla, Rom. 16.5. and in the h [...]use of Nymphas, Col. 4.15. The universal Church is the whole company of Believers that profess Faith in Christ throughout the world. All Christians as Christians who profess and hold the essentials of Christianity are the Catholick or univer­sal Church. And all Congregations consisting of lawful Pastors, and Christian people, associated for personal communion in the worship of God, and holy living, are particular true Churches, though they may also much differ in degrees of purity. This is the universal Church, as upon earth. Otherwise, as I said before, the universal Church comprehends both the Saints on Earth and the Saints in Heaven. The Church of Rome most absurdly affects to be called the Catholick Church, yea Roman Catholick. Catho­tholick imports the universal Church, and Roman but a particu­lar. The Church of Rome was once indeed an eminent part, (yet but a part) of the Catholick or Ʋniversal Church. But now she is so degenerate and corrupt, that she is termed Babylon. Rev. 1.7. And the people of God are commanded to come out of her, Rev. 18.4. And I heard another voice from Heaven saying, come out of her my people, that ye be not partakers of her sins, and that ye receive not of her plagues, Did the Church of Rome in the Apostles [Page 173] dayes worship Images? Did it pray to Saints? Did it pray for the Dead? Did it perform its Divine Worship in an unknown tongue? Did it withhold the Cup from the Laity? Was this the Primitive practice of the Church of Rome? I suppose the Roma­nists themselves will not assert it. We can make it appear that we hold the same Faith that was of old delivered to the Saints, and that we have not departed farther from the Church of Rome than they have departed from this Faith and the truth of Christia­nity. Yet the Papists notwithstanding use to ask us, where was your Religion before Luther? To which we answer wherever there were any true and real Christians before Luther, among them was our Church. This is the Church we profess our selves of. And surely there were many more more Christians at that time in the world then those that were in the Cummunion of the Church of Rome. 'Tis true Christianity that makes any to be Christians, and members of the Catholick Church; it is not eve­ry inferiour truth that doth so; neither doth every error cast a man out of it. That Church then which comprehended all the true Christians in the World is the Church we were of before Luther. We do not confine the Catholick Church to any Sect or Party. Protestants we hold are the soundest part of this Church, but not the whole Church. All within the Communion of the Church of Rome that are true Christians we allow to be of this Church. And the same we say of the Greeks, Armenians, Ethiopians, Abyssines, or any other professing Christianity. And though the Papists talk much of Antiquity, if they will try whether their Doctrine or ours be the sounder, we are willing to appeal to Antiquity. Let the eldest way of Religion carry it. We are of a Religion that is not less then sixteen hundred years old. For we hold the Doctrine delivered by Christ, and his Apostles, which they have shamefully departed from. But the Papists farther ask us, If their Church be not the true Church, what is become of our Fore-fathers who died in the Communion of their Church? We answer, They might live and die in the Communion of that Church and yet be free from many of the gross errors in it. And God might graciously pass by their ignorance and weakness, who had not so great a light as we have to shew them the error of the Romish Church. We do therefore in Charity think, that some of our An­cestors formerly, and some of the Papists at this day who hold and [Page 174] believe the main Articles of the Christian Faith, and do live good lives according to their knowledge, may be saved; but not by their Popery, but by their Christianity.

And thus much of the distinctions of the Church.

4. I come now in the last place to speak of the notes of the Church, which are these three. 1. True and sound Doctrine preached. 2. Right administration of the Sacraments. For as those are more or less purely administred, so the Church is more or less pure. 3. Obedience to Christ and his Doctrine. Discipline in­deed is necessary for the preservation of the Church, in purity of Doctrine and Manners; yet it belongs not to the very being, but to the well being of it. But here a question may arise. How is the Church said not to erre? Answ. 1. The whole doth not erre, though some particular Church may. 2. The Church doth not erre universally though in some points of Doctrine it may, which are not essential or fundamental to Salvation.

Let us now consider what improvement we are to make of this Article.

1. This shews us the admirable priviledge of every truly rege­nerate sanctified person, who is most certainly a member of the true Catholick Church. All true Christians are Catholicks in a better sense than the Romanists use that word. But whosoever is wicked and prophane, let them talk they are for the Church, &c. 'tis ma­nifest they are not members of Christs Holy Catholick Church.

2. All that are true members of the Catholick Church, should keep close to the Catholick Rule of Faith and Life, which is the will of God revealed in the holy Scriptures.

3. They should labour for a Catholick Spirit, and Catholick affections which may incline them

  • 1. To love all Christians as Christians for Christs sake, though they may differ from them in some particulars. A true Catholick Spirit is for union among all the People of God.
  • 2. To compassionate all real Christians in their sufferings and afflictions, Rom. 12.15, 16.
  • 3. To pray earnestly for the prosperity of the Catholick Church, and to be solicitous and much concerned touch­ing the welfare thereof. And all true members of the [Page 175] Catholick Chhurch may comfort themselves with this consideration, that they have a share in the paayers of this Catholick or Ʋniversal Church now Militant upon the Earth.

SECT. III. Of the Communion of Saints.the Communion of Saints

COncerning this Article we shall inquire. 1. Who may truly be called Saints; and wherein the true nature of Saint­ship doth consist, and how the Saints are distinguished from o­thers. 2. Who are those persons with whom these Saints have Communion. For the first

1. By the tenure of the Gospel we shall find that those are tru­ly and properly Saints, who being called with an holy calling, have not been disobedient to it, but are indued with a holy faith uniting them to Christ, and are purified thereby, and are Sancti­fied by the holy Spirit of God, and by vertue thereof do lead a holy life, daily endeavouring to perfect holiness in the fear of God; such persons are really and truly Saints; and being true members of the Church of Christ are, the proper subject of this Article.

2. Who are those persons with whom these Saints have com­munion? and in what doth this their communion consist?

1. The Saints of God living in the Church of Christ have com­munion with God the Father, praying unto him and praising of him, trusting in him, and exercising such acts of worship as he requires, 1 John 1.3. That which we have seen and heard, de­clare we unto you, that ye also may have fellowship with the Father and with his Son Jesus Christ. David affectionately expresseth his desire of this communion, Psal. 42.1. As the heart pant­eth after the water-brooks, so panteth my Soul after thee, O God.

2. They have Communion with God the Son, 1 Cor. 1.9. God hath called us to the fellowship of his Son. For being united to Christ by faith, they are thereby made partakers of his Righte­ousness, [Page 176] and receive spiritual life and grace from him for the sanctifying of their natures, and sincerely endeavour after con­formity unto him.

3. They have communion with God the Holy Ghost. The A­postle hath two wayes assured us of the truth hereof; one Rheto­rically by a seeming doubt. If there be any fellowship of the Spi­rit, Phil. 2.1. The other directly, praying devoutly for it, 2 Cor. 13.14. The grace of our Lord Jesus Christ, the love of God, and the communion of the Holy Ghost be with you all, Amen.

This is the communion which the Saints enjoy with the three blessed persons in the Trinity, John 14.23. If any man love me (sayes our Saviour) he will keep my words, and my Father will love him, and we will come unto him, and make our abode with him. And the presence of the Spirit cannot be wanting where these two are inhabiting; for if any man have not the Spirit of Christ, he is none of his. The Spirit therefore with the Father and the Son inhabiteth in the Saints. For know ye not (saith the Apostle) that ye are the Temple of God, and that the Spirit of God dwelleth in you, 1 Cor. 3.16.

4. The Saints of God living here in the Church of Christ have communion with the Holy Angels. They are Ministring Spirits for our good, Heb. 1.14. They rejoyce at the Conversion of a Sin­ner. They do many good offices for the people of God, which possibly they are not sufficiently sensible of. And this their Mi­nistry is exercised (as 'tis probable) about the ordinary concern­ments of our lives, and not in some extraordinary cases only.

5. The Saints of God living in the Church of Christ have communion with all the Saints departed out of this life, and ad­mitted to the presence of God. The Godly on earth do in heart and affection converse with the Saints in Heaven. And 'tis pro­bable the Saints triumphant wish to the Saints militant the happi­ness they enjoy, and possibly pray for them in general, though their particular cases they may not know. But we are not to think (as the Papists fondly conceive) that they interpose their merits for us, and that for this cause we are to invocate them, or perform any Religious worship towards them. These are but in­ventions of mans brain, wanting warrant from the word of God.

6. The Saints of God living in the Church of Christ have [Page 177] communion with the Saints living in the same Church. If we walk in the light (sayes the Apostle) we have fellowship one with another, 1 John 1.7. And another Apostle tells us, 1 Cor. 12.13. By one Spirit they are are all baptized into one body. So that they have communion one with another in these offerings, 1. They all joyn together in the use of and have benefit by the same ordi­nances, and all partake of the same promises, are all ingraffed into the same stock, and receive life from the same root. 2. According to their places and calling they teach and admonish one another. 3. They endeavour to walk by the same Rule, and to mind the same things Acts 3.16. Heb. 3.13. 4. They pray one for another, Ephes. 6.18. and Jam. 5.16. Confess your faults one to another, and pray one for another, that ye may be healed: the effectual fervent prayer of a righteous man availeth much. 5. They comfort and encourage one another in the wayes of God. 6. In respect of temporal things they are ready to succour, relieve and help one another according to their abilities.

Having thus opened the nature of this Article, let us now con­sider what are the instructions we should learn from it?

1. If we believe this communion of Saints, which hath been before described, then let us seriously consider whether we have a part and share in it or no. There are many instead of commu­nion with God and with Christ, have communion with Satan, and instead of communion with Saints have communion with the ungodly and wicked, and joyn with them in the practice of iniquity, in swearing, swaggering, drinking, revelling, and scoffing at Saints and Saintship; and this they account and call good fellowship. But let no man deceive himself. The Apo­stle tells us, 1 John 1.5, 6, 7. That God is light, and in him there is no darkness at all. If we say that we have fellowship with him, and walk in darkness, we lye and do not the truth. But if we walk in the light as he is in the light, we have fellowship one with another, &c.

2. If we have a share and part in this communion, it should inflame our hearts with an ardent love to all that are within this communion. If similitude of shape or feature will beget a kind­ness, if congruity of manners and disposition will unite affections, what great love should there be among all the Saints who have the same image of God stamped upon them, and are acted by [Page 178] the same spirit? Surely all that are true members of Christ should heartily desire and pray for the welfare of all their fellow-mem­bers. And should have their hearts touched with the miseries that befall either the Church of Christ in general, or the par­ticular members thereof. See Amos 6.6.

3. A belief of this Article should teach us, that as we are to do good to all in our several places and according to our abilities, so especially to those who are of the houshold of Faith.

SECT. IV. Of Forgiveness of Sins.the for­giveness of sins,

REmission or Forgiveness of Sins is a priviledge that belongs to them, who are true members of Christs holy Catholick Church. That we may the more clearly explain this Doctrine we shall consider. 1. What Sin is? 2. What are the kinds of it. 3. What is the wages due to it. 4. By whom sins are forgiven. 5. Ʋp­on what account they are forgiven. 6. What forgiveness of sins doth contain in it. 7. What is required of them who may expect this great priviledge.

1. We shall consider what Sin is, and what is the foul nature of it, that so we may the better estimate the great goodness of God in pardoning of it. The Apostle shews us 1 John 3.4. that Sin is the transgression of the Law. The Law of God is the rule of the actions of man, and any deviation from that rule is a Sin, and brings us under guilt.

2. Let us consider what are the kinds of Sin. Sin is either original or actual. 1. Original Sin is by the Church of England in her Articles described to be a fault and corruption of the nature of every man that naturally is engendred of the off-spring of Adam, whereby man is very far gone from original Righteousness and incli­ned unto evil. In which description three things may be observed. 1. Original sin is the corruption of the nature of every man descended from the loins of Adam. 2. It is a departure from that original [Page 179] Righteousness wherewith the Lord enriched Adam and our selves in him. 3. 'Tis an inclination to evil. So that the whole race and off-sping of Adam, who were then radically, seminally, and potentially in his loins, were infected with this contagion. As the Scripture sayes of Levi, that he paid tythes in Abraham to Melchisedec, Heb. 7.9, 10. For he was then in the loyns of his Father Abraham when Melchisedec met him. So all we and the whole race of Mankind were in Adam when he lost himself. And that we are all from the womb tainted with this original corruption Unum il­lud pecca­tum fons est aliorum Becan. and depravation of nature, is plain and manifest from these Scriptures, Psal. 51.5. Behold I was shapen in iniquity and in sin did my mother conceive me, Ephes. 2.3. And were by nature the children of wrath even as others. And that even Infants themselves are tainted with this original corruption may appear from this, that they are liable to death. Now Death is a wages no way due to Infants for actual sins (for actually as yet they have not offended) therefore there must need be in them some original guilt, some birth-sin, which makes them liable to death. 2. Actu­al sin, (which is the fruit of original) is any action or commission or any omission repugnant unto the Law of God.

3. Let us consider the wages of sin. The Apostle tells us, Rom. 6. last. The wages of sin is death. The wages, due reward, and fruit of sin is death. But life eternal is the fruit of righte­ousness, not as its wages, but as a gift freely given by God, upon the account of the merit and intercession of Jesus Christ. Every sin therefore being a deviation from the Law of God, brings us under guilt; and guilt makes us liable to suffer the punishment which is due to our sins, and proportional to our offences. And our offences are augmented by the consideration of the dignity of the person against whom they are committed. And being committed against God, must therefore needs be very heinous, and bind us over to suffer eternal punishment, except we obtain a pardon, and our sins be remitted.

4. Let us consider by whom sins are remitted. 1. Men may forgive offences committed against them, so far forth as they con­cern them, Luke 17.3, 4. If thy brother trespass against thee, rebuke him, and if he repent, forgive him, and if he trespass against thee seven times in a day, and seven times in a day turn again to thee, saying, I repent, thou shalt forgive him. But as Sin is a [Page 180] transgression of Gods Law, so God only can forgive it. 2. 'Tis God the Fathers Prerogative to forgive Sins. Isaiah 43.25. I even I am he that blotteth out thy transgression for mine own sake, and will not remember thy sins. 3. God communicated this power to his Son, while he was here on the earth, who had pow­er of forgiving sins as part of that power that was given him both in Heaven and Earth, Mark 2.5. and 7. When Jesus saw their Faith he said unto the sick of the Palsie, Son, thy sins be forgiven thee: The Scribes ask who can forgive sins but God only? Their position was good, that God only can forgive sins, but their supposi­tion false, that Christ was a meer man, and not God as well as Man. 4. Ministers may forgive sins not authoritatively, but Ministerially, and declaratively. They preach remission in Christs name, & declare what persons they must be, and what they must do, who shall obtain it.

5. Let us consider upon what account and for whose sake sins are forgiven. The external impulsive cause inclining God to pardon us our sins and trespasses, is the respect he hath to the obe­dience and sufferings of our Saviour Jesus Christ. The Apostle tells us, Rom. 3.24. that we are justified freely by the grace of God (as by the internal impulsive cause of our justification, by which he was first moved to forgive us our sins,) and then through the redemption wrought by Jesus Christ, as the external moving or impulsive cause of so great a mercy. The death of Christ is the meritorious cause of our forgiveness, Mat. 26.28. For this is my blood of the New Testament, which is shed for many for the remis­sion of sins, Ephes. 1.7. In whom we have redemption through his blood, the forgiveness of sins, according to the riches of his grace, Acts 13.38, 39. Be it known unto you therefore men and brethren, that through this man is preached unto you, the forgive­ness of sins. And by him all that believe are justified from all things, from which they could not be justified, by the Law of Moses, 1 John 1.7. And the blood of Jesus Christ his Son cleanseth us from all sin. Rev. 1.5. Ʋnto him that loved us and washed us from our sins in his own blood. God is indeed said to remit our sins, but never to remit the price, without which we had never been redeemed. The Law promised life but upon perfect, abso­lute, uninterrupted obedience, and the voice thereof was, Do this and live; But this we failed in; we need therefore the interposi­tion of the Sacrifice of Christ for us. The atonement made by [Page 181] the Sacrifices under the Law, clearly had relation to the death of the Messias, and whatsoever vertue was in them, did operate through his death alone. As he was a Lamb slain from the foun­dation of the world in Gods decree, so all atonements which were ever made, were only effectual through his blood. So that no sin was ever forgiven but by vertue of that satisfaction, and God was never reconciled to any sinner, but by intuition of that propi­tiation. Yet the general doctrine of remission of sins was never clearly revealed, and publickly preached to all Nations, till the coming of our Saviour in the flesh.

6. Let us consider what forgiveness of sins doth import, and contain in it. Forgiveness of Sins doth comprehend in it reconciliation of an offended God, and a satisfaction made to a just God. It contains reconciliation (without which God cannot be conceived to remit;) It comprehendeth satisfaction, without which God was resolved not to be reconciled. Christ by his death hath reconciled God unto us, who was before offended by our sins. His death was ordained to be a propitiation for us, and to render God propitious to us. The punishment which Christ endured was a full satisfaction to the Will and Justice of God. He gave his life a ransome for many, Matth. 20.28. Now a ransome is a price given to redeem such as are any way in captivity, or any thing laid down by way of compensation to take off an obligati­on, whereby he who was before bound, becometh free. Christ bought us, and the price he paid for us was his own blood, and that blood was a full and perfect satisfaction unto God. And as the offence is augmented (as we said before) by the dignity of the person, against whom the offence is committed, so the value and dignity of that which is given by way of compensation is enhaun­ced according to the dignity of the person who makes that satis­faction. If therefore we consider on our side the nature and ob­ligation of sin, and on Christs side the satisfaction made and re­conciliation wrought, we shall easily perceive how God forgiveth Sins, and in what the remission of them consisteth. Christ taking upon him the nature of man and offering himself a Sacrifice to God for mans sin, giveth that unto God (for, and instead of the everlasting punishment due to man,) which is more valuable and acceptable unto God than that punishment could be, and so maketh a sufficient compensation and satisfaction to God for the sins of [Page 182] man. Which sacrifice God accepting, releases the offence, and becomes reconciled unto man (He performing the conditi­ons required of him) and for the punishment which Christ endured, taketh off mans obligation to eternal punishment. And in this act of God consisteth the forgiveness of sins.

7. Let us consider what is required of them, who may ex­pect this great priviledge and blessedness, the remission of all our sins. The things required of them are these.

1. True Repentance. Of which see Chap. 2. of the second part of Knowledge and Practice. 2. Faith in Christ. Of which see Chap. 3. of the same Treatise. 3. Sincere obedience unto Christ. Heb. 5.9. He is the author of eternal Salvation to all that obey him. 4. A readiness and willingness to forgive others who have done us wrong. Matth. 6.14, 15. For, if ye forgive men their trespasses, your heavenly Father will also forgive you. But if ye forgive not men their trespasses, neither will your Father for­give your trespasses. Mark 11.25. And when ye stand praying, forgive if ye have ought against against any; that your Father also which is Heaven may forgive you your trespasses. Having thus in brief explained the Doctrine of remission of sins, it will possi­bly seem requisite that I should add a few things more for the ful­ler explanation of so great an Article, which we are all so much concerned clearly and distinctly to understand. In order here­unto, I shall further consider these three things.

  • 1. What is meant in Scripture by Justification.
  • 2. What is the procuring cause thereof.
  • 3. How any come to be partakers thereof.

For the first. Justification and remission of Sins in the Scripture are one and the same thing.See Acts 13.38, 39. Matth. 26.28. Eph. 1.7. Acts 10.43. Rom. 5.19. In some texts of Scri­pture we are said to be justified by Christ. In others, that we ob­tain remission of Sins by Christ. In others that we are made righteous by Christ. By which expressions one and the same thing is intended. For Justification is a discharging us from the guilt of all our sins, and an acquitting us from the chal­lenges of the Law, and a constituting us righteous before God, not qualitative by making us inherently righteous, with such a per­fect righteousness as is Gods Justice-proof, (for by such a righteous­ness no Son of fallen Adam can be justified, as we shall shew after­wards) but it is a constituting us righteous in the sight of God [Page 183] or a judicial absolving of us upon the account of satisfaction given and accepted on our behalf: and though Justification principally con­sists in our pardon, and the remission of our sins yet; there are other blessings also springing from it. For those whom God justifies, he sanctifies, & whom he sanctifies here, he will also glorifie hereafter.

2. Let us consider the procuring cause of our pardon and justi­fication. The procuring cause of it is the Satisfaction made to Di­vine Justice by the active and passive obedience of Christ. And that we may understand this the more clearly, let us take into our consideration these particulars.

1. The Law or Covenant of Works required of our first Parents perfect and sinless obedience upon pain of death. But they trans­gressing, fell under the curse and condemnation of the Law. However, it pleased God of his infinite mercy that the Law should not be immediately executed upon them. And yet he did not abrogate it but only relax it as to the right of it by introdu­cing another Covenant, viz. the Covenant of grace.

2. By this second Covenant or Covenant of Grace no Son of fallen Adam can be justified with the justification of an innocent person or as one perfectly and inherently righteous. For such per­sons (if they should be challenged) are justified because they are found without fault or blame, and their justification is nothing but a declaration of their righteousness and innocence. But by this Covenant of grace we must be justified as sinners and offenders, upon a satisfaction made to the justice of God for our sins. For offenders can no other way be brought into the state of just men, but upon a legal pardon and discharge. And so we may be said to be justified when the compensation or satisfaction made for us is accepted, and we thereupon are legally pardoned & discharged.

3. This Compensation or Satisfaction made to the justice of God in our behalf, is made by the active and passive obedience of Christ, and the whole of our justification is founded thereon. I say the active as well as the passive obedience of Christ is here to be reckoned as concurring hereunto. For though Christ when he had once assumed our nature, and was made Man, was bound to obey the Law; yet in that he voluntarily came from Heaven, and voluntarily took our nature, and so voluntarily put himself under the obligation of the Law, this consideration makes his active obedience also meritorious. These two are therefore joyntly to [Page 184] be considered in this matter. For Christ voluntarily took on him the office of a mediator, He was not compelled to it. Indeed when he was man, he was obliged as a man. A creatures homage was due from him when he had assumed our nature, but it was his own free choice that brought him into that state and condition. From hence therefore it will follow that all that Christ did and suffered, he paid by way of valuable consideration unto God for the sins of men. The whole fabrick of the Gospel is bottomed up­on satisfaction made to the justice of God on our behalf. We are said to be ransomed, redeemed, purchased, bought with a price, and that must needs be by a valuable consideration paid, and by Satisfaction made. No works of our own could ever amount to such a purchase. Could men either have pefectly kept the Law, or have sufficiently answered for the breach of it ex post f [...]cto, Righteousness would have been that way, and Christ had not died.

4. Christs active and passive obedience is reckoned accounted and imputed to those who perform the conditions required of them in the Gospel, for their benefit and advantage, and so is made theirs as to the benefits redounding therefrom. But it is not so impu­ted to them as if they were righteous in the sight of God with the self-same active and passive righteousness wherewith Christ was righteous; or as if they had suffered in Christ and obeyed in Christ, and were as righteous and innocent in Gods esteem as Christ him­self. Which some men dangerously presuming and asserting, in­fer from thence that God sees no sin in his children but all righte­ousness, which is a wondeful mistake. For no other persons righ­teousness can otherwise become ours, or be imputed to us, than by the effects and advantages of it. It cannot be a just judge­ment to adjudge us to have performed that our selves which was actually done by another, though done on our behalf and reckoned to our benefit. We are therefore judged righteous for, not in the very righteousness of Christ. Some indeed have conceived that Christs active and passive righteousness are so made ours by impu­tation, as if we our selves were accounted by God to have done and suffered those very things that Christ himself in his own person did and suffered. But how can it be supposed that God can account us to have done all that which Christ did, (that is, to have performed all righteousness without sin) or to have [Page 185] suffered all that which Christ suffered, which in truth and reality we did not. 'Tis true that God is pleased, that the whole of what Christ did and suffered, as to the effects and advantages of it should redound to us, and be for our good and benefit. Thus all that Christ did and suffered is imputed to us as done for us, but not as done by us. See a late learned Treatise called Justificati­on Evan­gelical, by Sr. C. W. And thus Christ is the Lord our righteousness. And what can we desire more than to reap all the benefits of Christs whole undertaking, and upon the account of it, (it being accepted of God in our behalf) to be pardoned and justified, sanctified and saved. And thus to have Christ made to us of God (as the fundamental cause, procurer and spring of them) wisdom, righteousness, sanctification and redemption. And thus we see that Christs personal righteousness is not imputable to any creature otherwise than as to its operation fruits, and effects. Each justified persons righteousness before God is not identically and numerically the same with Christs in his publick capacity as Mediator. For then every justified person would be personally righteous with a righteousness that has a stock of merit in it suffi­cient to save the world, which is very absurd to imagine.

But there are some that alledge against what hath here been as­serted, these following Scriptures. 2 Cor. 5.21. God hath made him to be sin for us who knew no sin, that we might be made the righteousness of God in him. I answer, whereas Christ is said to be made sin for us, we are to understand it, that he was made a Sacrifice for our sins and that to this end and for this purpose, that we might be made the righteousness of God in him, that is, that we might be made righteous with a Gospel righteousness. He did and suffered what was requisite to make satisfaction to the justice of God for sins, that we might reap the fruit of his righteousness, and by believing in him might be accounted for righteous, that is, acquitted and pardoned. Not that his righteousness is made per­sonally ours, as if we had done and suffered what he did and suf­fered; but that we might be made the righteousness of God in him, that is, made righteous or acquitted by God through the merit of his righteousness. [In him] therefore is not to be taken per­sonally and literally, but we are said to be righteous in him, when we are so according to the rule of the Gospel, and are righteous in the righteousness of Gods appointing and Christs procuring. And thus we are said to walk in him, when we walk according to [Page 186] the rule of his Gospel. We are said to abide in him, when we continue stedfast in his doctrine. We are said to sleep in him, when we die in the faith and hope of the Gospel. We are said to marry in the Lord, when we marry according to the rules he has prescribed. A second Scripture alledged is, Rom. 5.19. As by one mans disobedience many were made sinners, so by the obedience of one many shall be made righteous. I Answer, this text makes nothing for the transferring or imputing of Christs personal righte­ousness to us. But it shews us these things. 1. That as the effect of Adams sin was universal and came upon all, so the effect of Christs obedience was universal; It came upon all, that is, all sorts of men both Jews and Gentiles without distinction. 2. One sin of Adams introduced death, but Christs obedience procures forgive­ness not only for that one sin, but for all other sins whatsoever that have insued thereupon. 3. One act of disobedience was enough to condemn, but more than one act of obedience was requisite to pro­cure our pardon. 4. Though Christ do not save so many by his obedience as Adam brought into a state of condemnation by his disobedience, yet the second Adam is much more potent than the first: because there is much more efficacy and power required to the saving of one than there was to the condemning of many. As the restoring of one man to life is much harder than the de­stroying the lives of many.

5. As the effect of one mans disobedience was that thereby many became sinners, (to be shapen in iniquity and brought forth in a sinful nature;) so as the effect and consequent of one mans obedience many come to be new born and are made righteous. And this seems to be the true meaning and import of this Scrip­ture.

The last Scripture alledged is that of Phil. 3.9. Not having mine own righteousness, but the righteousness which is of God by faith Answer, The Apostle desires not to be found in his own righte­ousness as he was a Jew or Pharisee, but to be found in Christ, ingraffed into him by faith, and to have that righteousness which is of Gods ordaining and Christs procuring (and by faith is made ours) which is Gospel righteousness, and this righteousness we have before described.

3. I come now to the third thing I propounded to inquire into, namely, How any come to partake of this great mercy and benefit, [Page 187] viz. Justification before God. I Answer. This is obtained by performing the condition the Gospel requires, which is Faith in Christ. The Covenant of Grace is in the proposal of it conditional; and Christ with all his saving benefits is proposed to us upon terms which we are to perform. Our Saviour sayes, He that be­lieves shall be saved, and he that believes not shall be damned. We are said in Scripture to be justified by Faith, and the Gospel is sti­led the Law of Faith; and whatsoever is required of us by it, is cal­led the obedience of Faith.

1. 'Tis not a bare assent to the truths of the Gospel or to the Revelation or History of Jesus Christ. That Faith that the Scri­pture calls a justifying Faith is an operative working Faith, a Faith that includes in its nature a sutable acting and obedience. This Faith is never spoken of in the Scripture as a bare believing and assenting to the truth of the Gospel in opposition to acting agreeably there­unto, but as the grand principle of action, and so it is in it self. Since Abels time, the spring of all religious actions has been Faith, viz. believing God and his promises and threatnings. The bare believing the truth of Christianity or the bare professing of it, without answerable walking and sutable obedience is not enough to save any man. And therefore to be a true believer is to be a sincere practical Christian. The Apostle tells us that he that does righteousness is righteous, and not he that reckons himself so without righteous acting, upon the meer score of his believing or bare profession. When Paul sayes, Abraham was not justified by Works, we must suppose him to mean either such perfect sinless works as would in strict rules of justice make the reward to be a debt. And such works Abraham had not. Or el e such works as were depended on by the carnal Jews, as sufficient to procure their pardon and acceptance with God by their own inward work and merit. These he disclaimes. And when he opposeth works to grace, he means such works as were supposed to justifie by their own merit, and which put us out of need of grace. But he knew that justi­fication is not now so attainable but by Faith; yet not by such a Faith as is not accompanied with good works, as St. James proves. For by works (sayes he) Faith is made perfect. As if he should have said, true saving faith comprises obedience in it, and is not compleat and perfect without it, nor such a faith as in Scripture is accounted for righteousness. Now Abrahams Faith, the Scripture tells us, was [Page 188] accounted to him for righteousness. But it was so accounted with reference to that obedience that was virtually comprised in it and naturally flowed from it. And that his Faith comprised in it a sutable obedience, is manifest; else it would have been so far from being esteemed or accounted to him for righteousness, that it would rather have been accounted to him for hypocrisie. 'Tis true, Abraham could not pretend to a sinless perfection; he had no such works to plead as were Gods Justice-proof. He had no such righteousness as in its own nature and by its own intrinsick worth could justifie him, and denominate him a perfect righteous man. Had it been so, it needed not any favour to have been ac­counted for righteousn [...]ss. But God was pleased out of his free grace and favour so to reckon and account of it. Abrahams faith therefore was a believing the revelation of the Messi [...]h to come and of pardon and salvation obtainable by him, and acting sutably thereunto by a sincere though imperfect obedience. This God did impute and account to him for righteousness. Therefore Paul never intended to exclude Gospel works or such a sincere obedience as is naturally consequent to a true and saving Faith, and which is accepted of meer grace, and cannot pretend to any merit. But he speaks against such works as were depended on, and by vertue of which men pretended to claim justification as a reward justly due to them, in opposition to free grace. Now this Gospel justi­fication we have described, is so far from being such a justification by works as the Jews sought after, and St. Paul disputes against, that it is a justification that results wholly from grace, and is the effect of Christs purchase and of another covenant; and all merit and reward that can be claimed as a debt is utterly excluded there­by. Abraham was not justified upon the terms of the Law, viz. sinless perfection, but he was justified as one that had sin and fail­ings about him which needed forgiveness, and so was justified by Faith in the Gospel-way; but it was by an operative faith which was productive of good works. Which works were not such as by any innate virtue in themselves did constitute him just, but were the fruits and genuine off-spring of his faith which rested on the promised Messiah, as the sole procurer of his pardon and forgiveness. Sinless works therefore we see were necessary under the Covenant of Works to obtain the reward as a just debt; but sincere works are necessary under the Covenant of Grace as the [Page 189] genuine fruits of faith without which it is imperfect. For if it be without works 'tis no true justifying Faith, as the Apostle James abundantly proves.

2. We must take heed we do not so apprehend of Faith, as if it had in it self any justifying virtue or were of any innate worth to acquit us before God from the guilt of our sins. The value of it is wholly from Gods ordination and its relation to Christ. We are justified by Christ alone meritoriously and by what he has done and suffered. Faith is but a conditional means by which we come to reap the fruit and benefit of Christs merits.

Faith therefore and believing being the Gospel condition, let us further inquire what is comprehended in it.

1. Then, The way and method of Gods justifying a sinner being founded on the depth of his own infinite wisdom, and no way suited to the corrupt reasonings of a carnal mind, God expects we should fully believe it and firmly assent to the truth of it. And this in it self is a righteous act (and so accounted of God) firmly to believe him and what he reveals to us.

2. He expects we should thankfully accept and acquiesce in, and rely upon this way of Justification, which he tenders to us, without quarrelling or disputing; and that we should receive Christ in all his offices as our Prophet, Priest and King.

3. That we should subject our selves to all the Precepts of the Gospel, and that our faith should approve it self to be of the right kind by a sutable obedience.

Objection. But does not the annexing of such a condition as this unto forgiveness lessen the grace and bounty of it.

Answer. No, in no wise. For consider these things.

1. The dispensing of pardon and forgiveness upon such a con­dition as faith in Christ, which includes Gospel obedience, is one of the most effectual means to introduce sanctity and holiness into the World. For what more effectual way can there be to do it, than to make it conditionally necessary to justification and salvation.

2. Gods immutable holiness and justice is hereby made more illustrious, and his solemn hatred and dislike of sin is more ma­nifested. For hereby 'tis evident that God will save no man in his sins, but from his sins. Whom he justifies he will sanctify. No mans sin is so forgiven, that the least allowance is vouchsafed to it. None but such as are sanctified can be accepted of him.

3. Whatever is by the Gospel conditionally required of us, is fully and freely given us. Faith and every other grace is the gift of God. We perform the condition required of us solely by the power of his grace freely given unto us. And all the rewards of the Gospel are but the gracious remunerations of Gods own gifts and graces. Free grace and divine bounty is the root that bears all. And therefore the holiest men on earth have the great­est cause to be most humble. For having received most, they ought most to abase themselves.

4. 'Tis fit that all who shall be saved should be rationally satis­fied of the excellency of that life the Gospel calls them unto. For the precepts of the Gospel are framed and calculated for our advantage and benefit. The commands of Christ are in no wise grievous to any man truly and rationally informed of his own in­terest. The Gospel commands us to be sober, righteous, and god­ly; and 'tis rationally best for us so to be, both in order to our own good, and the good and benefit of others among whom we live. And therefore 'tis fit we should make a solemn choice of this life for our selves, and seriously resolve as men of truth and fi­delity to pursue it. There ought to be sincerity of intention and en­deavour in us to live this life, though we do not arrive at perfecti­on of action. We should therefore examine what is the delibe­rate choice of our wills, whether to be Sanctified by the Spirit of Christ as well as to be justified by his merits. Christ will not judge of us by a suddain passionate choice, but by our rational and ad­vised choice. And we must especially take heed of all degrees of insincerity and hypocrisie, which of all sins under the Gospel does most dangerously border on a breach of the condition required. Be­lieve it, those things that keep people usually from the good things of the Gospel are either a direct refusal of Christ, or a sloathful carelesness, unconcerned neglect of him, or a prevailing falseness in the course of Gospel obedience.

I shall conclude all that I shall say upon this argument with these four particulars.

1. Our Lord and Saviour did certainly perform all things that were required to be performed by him as our mediator.

2. By reason of the high dignity of his person, his obedience and sufferings are of more value and worth than the obedience and sufferings of all mankind would have been.

3. These things being performed by him in our nature and wholly upon o [...]r account, God accepts them for us, though not as done by us, and reckons all the benefits and advantages of them to us.

4. If we desire to partake of the benefits of Christs active and passive obedience, we must sincerly believe in him and take him for our Lord and Saviour; and if our Faith be a true justifying Faith, it will purify our hearts and reform our lives.

Having thus explained this Doctrine of the forgiveness of sins, let us now consider what improvement we should make of it.

1. Let us admire the infinite goodness of God, that there is a possibility of pardon for the children of men, who are naturally under wrath. There is none for the Angels that fell.

2. Let us often meditate upon, and admire the way of it. 1. No pardon to be obtained for man without a Mediator. And where could fallen man have found a Mediator, that would have un­dertaken his cause? 2. No ordinary Mediator would suffice. If all the holy Angels had joyned together, it would have not been suffi­cient. Only the eternal Son of God could effect it. 3. Let us consider, that Christ obtained our peace not by a bare mediation, but by paying a price for us, and making full satisfaction to the Will and Justice of God by his obedience and sufferings.

3. Let us often admire the benefits of it. 1. It is not only a great mercy in it self, but the foundation of all other mercies. 'Tis the Queen of mercies, that hath a glorious train of other mercies attending it. Psal. 32.1. Blessed is the man whose sins are forgiven, whose iniquities are covered, to whom the Lord imputeth not transgression. None of the antient Philosophers ever gave such a definition of happiness. 2. The sense of this mercy makes all afflictions more easie to be born. What can hurt us if God be reconciled to us? 3. Pardoning mercy brings healing with it unto the Soul. Christ Sanctifies those by his Spirit, whose pardon he pro­cures by his Merits. 4. It affords great comfort against death, which is otherwise terrible of terribles.

4. If pardoning mercy be so great a mercy, let us often consider how vile and wretched those persons are who slight this mercy. But who are they? 1. All careless ones who neglect this great salvation, and prefer the things of the World before it. [Page 192] 2. All wicked and prophane ones, who go on daily increasing their guilt, not minding to make peace with God. 3. All that rest on any thing besides Christs righteousness and intercession, for the procuring their pardon with God.

5. Let us all examine our selves whether we have obtained this blessedness or no. Many content themselves with weak grounds, on which they build their hopes of pardon. 1. They are not so bad as others. They think they are sinners; yet guilty but of few sins in comparison of what others are guilty of. I answer, Possibly they may not be so bad as others, yet they may be in a very bad condition for all that; out of which, if they do not get, they will be everlastingly miserable. 2. Others think well of them. Be it so. But we shall not stand or fall by mans Judgment. 3. They live civilly, so they may do, and yet be unconverted; and without true conversion and regeneration, no salvation is to be expected.

6. Seeing God is ready to forgive, let us all endeavor to secure this blessedness to our selves. 1. Let us seek it as earnestly as ever we sought any thing in the World. 2. those that must shortly be arraigned. If a guilty Malefactor knew that the Assizes drew nigh, at which he could not expect but to be con­demned, surely above all things in the world he would endeavor to get his pardon. 3. Let us seek it as those who are not con­tent to be put off with any thing else besides it. And to encou­rage us hereunto, let us consider. 1. God is ready to pardon. He hath sworn that he delights not in the death of a sinner. 2. Christ died for this very purpose to redeem us, and when he was on the earth, he complained that people would not come to him, and believe in him, that by him they might have life. 3. All means of grace afforded to us are intimations that God intends us mer­cy, if we be not wanting to our selves. 4. All good motions and stirrings of the Spirit of God in our hearts are significations of his good will towards us. 5. And lastly, As vile or viler sin­ners then we are have obtained pardon, and why then should not we encourage our selves to seek after pardon while it may be obtained.

SECT. V. Of the Resurrection of the Body.The Re­surrecti­on of the Body.

THis is one of the Principles of the Doctrine of Christ, Heb. 6.2. 'Tis set before the Eternal Judgment which will ad­judge men to their eternal state, because 'tis previous to it.

The Scripture speaks of a two-fold Resurrection.

1. A Metaphorical Resurrection, viz. that of the Soul out of the state of Sin and Spiritual Death. Of this the Apostle speaks, Ephes. 2.1. Ye that were sometimes dead in Sins and Trespasses, and Col. 2.13. You that were dead in your sins hath he quickned. Grace, Righ­teousness and Holiness is the Spiritual life of the Soul, and where these are wanting, there must needs be a spiritual death in sin. Rom. 8.6. to be carnally minded is death: but the Spirit is life because of Righteousness, verse 10. that is, the Soul is alive Spiritually when it is partaker of righteousness and grace. Our Souls there­fore must first rise from their state of death in sin to the new life of grace, if we desire to have a part in the glorious Resurrection of the body to eternal life, of of which I am to speak afterward, and as the Apostle sayes, Rom. 6.4. As Christ was raised from the dead so must we be raised from the death of sin, that we may walk in newness of life.

2. The Scripture speaks of a real Resurrection, viz. of our bo­dies; namely, of the same body that died, which shall be raised again and re-united to the same soul that at death departed from it.

This resurrection of the body is that which we profess to be­lieve in this Article. And to confirm our faith therein, let us con­sider these two things,

  • 1. God can do it. He can raise our bodies when dead to life again.
  • 2. He has declared he will do it.

1. God can do it; For he is Omnipotent. Therefore, saith [Page 204] our Saviour to the Sadducees who denied the Resurrection,Acts 26.8. Luke 18 27. Eph. 1.1 [...].13. Ye do erre, not knowing the Scriptures nor the power of God, Mat. 22.29. And the Apostle, Acts 26.8. reasons thus. Why should it be thought a thing impossible that God should raise the dead? He that could make this World out of nothing at first, undoubted­ly can raise up mans body again, which though it have suffered many changes and transmutations; yet is not turned into nothing. Though the parts of mans body be dissolved; yet they perish not. The first dust out of which man was made, was as far from being flesh as any ashes or dust now can be. And God who is Omniscient knows how to distinguish the dust of one mans body from anothers. And being Omnipotent can give to eve­ry body what belongs to it, to make it the same numeri­cal Body again. This he can do according to the mighty working That Parable Ezekiel 37. Where by reviving dead bones is shewed, that God would certainly rest [...]re the p [...]ople of Israel out of captivi­ty, that Parable, I say, supposes the Resurrection of the Dead as a thing well known and certainly be­lieved by that people. whereby he is able to subdue all things to himself, Phil. 3.21. Abraham thought it possible, Heb. 11.18, 19. When he really intended to Sacrifice his Son Isaac, accounting that God was able to raise him up even from the Dead. Job not only thought it possible but firmly be­lieved it, and spake of it with assurance, Job. 19. verse 25. For I know that my Redeemer liveth and that he shall stand at the lat­ter day upon the earth, verse 26. And though after my skin worms destroy this body; yet in my flesh shall I see God, verse 27. Whom I shall see for my self, and mine eyes shall behold and not another, though my reins be consumed within me. Martha doubted not of it, John 11.24. For (speaking of her brother Lazarus then dead) She said I know that he shall rise again in the Resurrecti­on at the last day. And indeed there are many things in nature that seem to carry a resemblance of it. When we go to sleep (solemnly commending our selves to Gods pardoning mercy in Christ and to his gracious protection) we do as it were lye down in our graves; our sleep is a great resemblance of death, and our rising in the morning, of the Resurrection. The Sun sets every night and disappears; yet rises joyfully in the morning. The Seed that we sow first dies before it be quickned, 1 Cor. 15.56. The earth receiveth the bare seed, and by corrupting it, restoreth it in a better fashion than she took it in. The Seed s [...]wn is so [Page 205] far from perishing, that it rises up far more beautiful. Whereas it was sown dry and hard, it springs up fresh and green. So why should it seem incredible, that our bodies shall rise from corruption with far more excellent qualities than they had before. God can raise them, that is our first Argument.

2. God hath declared that he will do it; and that is abundant­ly sufficient to induce us to believe it. Observe these Scriptures for the proof of it. Dan. 12.2. And many That is, all shall arise and they will be many not a few. For many is not opposed to all here, but to few. Romans 5.19. By the dis­obedience of one man many, i. e. not a few, were made sinners. For all were made sinners. of them that slept in the dust of the earth shall awake; some to everlasting life and some to shame, and everlasting contempt, John 5.28, 29. Marvel not at this, for the hour is coming in which all that are in the Graves shall hear his voice, and shall come forth; they that have done good, unto the Resurrection of life, and they that have done evil, unto the Resurrection of damnation. Acts 24.15. And I have hope towards God, which they themselves also allow, that there shall be a Resurrection of the dead, both of the just and unjust, Luke 14.14. Thou shalt be recompenced at the Resurrection of the just, John 6.39. And this is the Fathers will which hath sent me, that of all which he hath given me I should lose nothing, but should raise it up again at the last day, verse 40. And this is the will of him that sent me, that every one which seeth the Son and believeth on him may have everlasting life, and I will raise him up at the last day. 1 Thes. 4.14. For if we believe that Jesus di­ed, and rose again, even so them also which sleep in Jesus, will God bring with Him. Verse 15. For this we say unto you by the word of the Lord, that we which are alive and remain unto the coming of the Lord shall not prevent them which are asleep, verse 16. For the Lord himself shall descend from Heaven with a shout, with the voice of the Arch-Angel and with the trump of God, and the dead in Christ sholl rise first.

Let us now consider what improvement we should make of this doctrine.

1. Let us take heed of erring about this doctrine. Let us take heed of the leven of the Sadducees, who said there was no re­surrection Acts 23.8. There are two sorts of persons that ex­ceedingly erre about this doctrine.

1. Those that affirm that there is no other Resurrection but that [Page 196] which is Spiritual, viz. that of the soul from the death of sin. This was the error of Hymenaeus and Philetus, 2 Tim. 2.17, 18. They acknowledged no other Resurrection but the renovation of the mind which passes upon a man in this life. Now this Spiri­tual Resurrection is limited only to true Believers; but the Corpo­ral belongs to all that are in the Graves, of whom our Saviour says, John 5.29. They shall all come forth, some to life and some to damnation, which cannot possibly be meant of the Spiri­tual Resurrection, and therefore there is another besides that.

2. Those that say the same numerical body that died shall not rise again; but some new airy body, not flesh and blood, bones and sinews as ours are made up of. But this is a great error. For,

1. If the same bodies do not arise, then 'tis not a Resurrection but a new Creation. I acknowledge 'tis not necessary they should arise with every parcel and particle of flesh they ever had, or had when they dyed; but they shall rise with so much of their bodies as shall make them the same numerical bodies that died. As a man in the Wars if he lose an arm or a leg, yet we say (and say truly) he is the same man still that he was before. So the dead shall rise with so much of their bodies, as shall (when re­united to their souls) make them the same persons they were be­fore.

2. Our Saviour sayes all that are in the Graves shall come forth, that is, surely the same bodies that lay there, and not other bodies for them, Rev. 20.13. 'Tis said, the Sea shall render up its dead; surely not new bodies but the old bodies that were buried there.

3. The Bodies of true Believers as well as their Souls are uni­ted to Christ, and thereby made the Temples of the Holy Ghost, as the Apostle assures us, 1 Cor. 6.19. And can you think Christ will lose any one of his members? he assures us to the contrary, John 6.39, r 40.

4. The Apostle tells us, this corruptible, this mortal shall put on incorruption and immortality, 1 Cor. 15.53. Therefore the same bodies that are now mortal and must die, shall be raised. And indeed the Apostle plainly shews all along in that excellent discourse of the Resurrection, that he intends that the same body that dyed should rise again.

5. It seems most agreeable to the Justice of God, that it should be so; viz. that the same numerical body that was the souls in­strument either in good or evil actions, either in works of Righteous­ness or Sin, should partake with the Soul also in its rewards or punishments, shall they that beat down their bodies and bring them into subjection, or suffer Martyrdom in their bodies for the cause of Christ be rewarded in other bodies than those that thus suffer­ed? Or shall that body and flesh of a wicked man, which was so great an instrument of his soul in sinning against God, and disho­nouring of him, and hurting others, be dissolved into dust, and shall another body be framed for that miserable soul, to suffer with it those exquisite torments that the damned must suffer for ever? Surely this cannot be. Therefore it seems most agreeable to the Justice and Providence of God, that every one should receive either reward or punishment in his own body, which he had here in this life.

6. Christ hims [...]lf did rise with his own body, viz. with that body, that had been crucified. And others that had slept in their Graves did come forth thence at our Saviours Resurrection, and surely they came forth with those very bodies that slept there, and not with new bo­dies, Matth. 27.52, 53.We have here the first fruits of the re­surrection to confi [...]m our faith. And so much of the first use.

2. Let us labour to strengthen our Faith in the belief of this Article. And in order hereunto let us consider. (1.) This Arti­cle was that which many faithful Christians were ready to suffer Martyrdom for, and to seal with their own blood, 1 Cor. 15.29. else what shall they do (or what shall become of them) that are baptized, (that is, that suffer Martyrdom)For so the word to be Baptized sig­nifies sometimes, as Mark 38. and the praepos. [...] signifies for, Acts 9.16. See Apost. hist. page 182. for the dead, namely for professing to be­lieve the Resurrection of the dead. And why stand we in jeopardy every hour, viz. of the like Baptism for the same profession, either from per­s [...]cuting Sadducees, who allow no Resurrection, or from the fu­rious Jews, who deny Christ to be risen? (2.) This Article is a great foundation of a Christians hope, 1 Pet. 1.3. Blessed be the God and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, who according to his abundant mercy hath begotten us again unto a lively hope, by the Resurrection of Jesus Christ from the dead. For if in this life only we had hope, we were of all men most miserable, 1 Cor. 15.19. (3.) This Doctrine tends much to the illustrating the [Page 208] infinite wisdom, power, justice and mercy of God. (4.) It teach­es us how much we owe to our Lord and Saviour who hath re­deemed our bodies as well as our souls, and will save our bodies as well as our souls.

3. If there will be a Resurrection, let us not bewail the death of our pious friends with too much sorrow or concernment. Their bodies are but laid up for a glorious Resurrection.

4. The consideration and belief of the Resurrection should strengthen us against the fear of our own death. As God said to Jacob, Gen. 46.3, 4. Fear not to go down into Egypt; for I will go with thee, and bring thee up again. So a dying Saint may say to his body, fear not to go down into the grave, into the dark and dismal vault, my dear Redeemer will bring thee up again. Death to the Righteous is but like the pulling down of an old ruinous house to build it again in a more excellent and glori­ous manner.

5. If God can and will raise the dead, it should strengthen our Faith in Gods power that he can raise us up out of any afflicti­on into which we are at any time fallen, and that he can raise up his own interest in the World, or in any Nation, though it be ne­ver so low. See Rom. 4.17, 21. What cannot that God do, who quickneth the dead?

6. It should teach us not to set too high a price or value upon our own lives when we are called to expose them for the cause of Christ or for our Countreys good. Every faithful servant of Christ that so loses his bodily life, takes the best course to have it resto­red to him with advantage. And in this sense our Saviour sayes, he that loseth his life shall save it, that is, shall not only recover it again at the Resurrection, but shall over and above also be re­warded with eternal life in glory, John 12.25. He that loveth his life shall lose it, and he that hateth his life in this World shall keep it unto life eternal. If God therefore call thee to expose thy body to death for him, fear not to do it: He will raise it up again in a more glorious manner. 'Tis said of those Worthies, Heb. 11.35. that were wracked and tormented for professing the truth, that they refused to be delivered (viz. to the prejudice of their Conscien­ces) expecting a better Resurrection than that now offered them, viz. to be delivered or raised up from their present pains and sufferings. [Page 209] They expected a Resurrection of their bodies to eternal glory.

7. This should deterr us from sinning with our bodies, which must be raised again, and if we die in our sins, must suffer with our souls everlasting punishment. Let us take heed of imploying our bodies as instruments of sin. Remember (O sinner) that wretched body of thine which thou hast so often debauched by drunkenness, and polluted and defiled by uncleanness, it must rise again to damnation except thou repent; that tongue of thine with which thou hast so often lyed, cheated, scoffed at serious piety, and dishonoured God by swearing, cursing, ribbaldry, backbiting, &c. shall be tormented in that same flame that Dives was tormented in. Luke 16. As Christ said of Judas, it had been better for him he had never been born; so we may say of some men, It were better for them they might not rise again. But as the Soul and Body sin­ned together, so they must suffer together. And as they inticed one another to sin, so they must be together for ever misera­ble.

8. And lastly. Let us labour to be united unto Christ by a lively faith, that he may raise us up as our Head. He will raise the wicked as their Judge. He is Lord both of dead and living, and so hath right by that dominion to raise the dead, Rom. 14.9. and will accor­dingly do it. And some he will raise to suffer everlasting pu­nishment and others to a glorious everlasting life. And of such as these the Apostle speaks, John 11.25. Whoso believeth on him shall never die, that is, eternally, so as to suffer everlasting punish­ment.

It now only remains that I should answer three questions, and then I shall shut up this discourse. 1. Seeing men return to the earth at several ages, the Infant at one age and the man at another, it may be questioned, whether they shall arise in the same age and disproportions of age and stature which they had whilst they lived? Answer. Augustine Restat ergo ut quisque su [...]m habe­at mensuram vel quam habuit in juventute vel quam haiturus esset, si vixisset. August. de civ. lib, 22. c. 13. resolves it negatively, and determines it thus. That we shall all of us be raised in that proportion of strength which men attain to commonly, at their best estate. And this resolution of the case the Apostle doth seem to favour, when he saith, that though the body be sown in weakness, (in the weak­ness [Page 200] of old age or infancy) yet it shall be raised in power. All imperfections and deformities shall be taken away. For neither is it likely that Infancy, (being imperfection,) and old age, (be­ing corruption) can stand with the estate of a glorified body.

Quest. 2. How can there be a Resurrection, seeing the Apo­stle tells us that flesh and blood shall not enter into the Kingdom of God. 1 Cor. 15.50.

Answ. Our Bodies shall be fitted for that glorious state by the mutation of their qualities. See Apost. Hist. pag. 183, and 184. Our bodies shall not enter into Heaven vile The Apostle tells us, the body shall be raised a Spiritual body, that is, a body endued with Spiritual quali­ties, free from carnal desires, and wholly subject to the Spirit. as now they are, but shall be chan­ged. As mens hearts are changed here by regeneration, so their bodies shall be changed in the Resurrection; changed in qualities, not in substance. As a corn of grain that is sown is raised in substance and kind the same, but divers in quali­ties, rising up with blade and ear and corn in it. It doth not rise in just the same figure in which it was sown, but with advantage. So it will be in the Resurrection.

Quest. 3. What shall become of them that shall be found alive at Christs coming?

Answ. They shall not dye, but shall be changed suddenly from a mortal into an immortal state. See 1 Cor. 15.51, 52. 1 Thes. 4.15, 17.

SECT. VI. Of Life everlasting.And the life ever­lasting,

IN treating of this Article, (which the Nicene Creed calls the life of the World to come) I shall first shew, that both the old and new Testament bear witness to it, and give us sufficient ground to believe it, Dan. 12.2. Many of them that sleep in in the dust of the earth shall awake, some to everlasting life and some to shame and everlasting contempt. God plainly shewed to those who lived under the old Testament that there is an everlasting life in the world to come, by the examples of some, whom he took and trans­lated [Page 201] out of this world into the other, without death intervening. Enoch, who lived before the giving of the Law, and Elijah who lived after, are both instances of this, Gen. 5.24. Enoch walk­ed with God, and he was not: for God took him, Heb. 11.5. By Faith Enoch was translated that he should not see death, and was not found, because God had translated him, And so Elijah was carried up in a fiery Chariot, and by a whirlwind into Heaven, 2 Kings 2.11. After Abraham Isaac and Jacob were dead, God stiled himself their God, Exod. 3.6. Moreover he said I am the God of thy Father, the God of Abraham, the God of Isaac and the God of Jacob. Now Christ told the Sadducees, that God is not the God of the dead, but of the living, Matth. 22.32. God so stiling himself their God, sheweth that their souls did still live (though separated from their bodies) and also that their bodies should be raised again, and both souls and bodies being re-united should live for ever.Deus est Deus Abra­hae s [...]il. to­tius. God is the God of the whole man and not a part only. And thus much for the proof of this Article out of the old Testament. But the new Testament doth more clearly as­sert this Doctrine, life and immortality being (in a more evident manner) brought to light by the Gospel, as the Apostle tells us, 2 Tim. 1.10. To give some few places of many that might be brought for the proof hereof. Matth. 25.46. And these shall go away into everlasting punishment, but the Righteous into life eternal, John 3.16, 36. God so loved the world that he gave his only begotten Son, that whosoever believeth in him should not perish but have everlasting life. Mark 10.30. But he shall receive an hundred fold now in this time, and in the world to come eternal life, John 12.25. He that loveth his life shall lose it, and he that hateth his life in this world shall keep it unto life eter­nal, 1 Thes. 4.17. Then we which are alive and remain, shall be caught up together with them in the Clouds to meet the Lord in the Air, and so shall we ever be with the Lord, 2 Cor. 5.1. For we know that if our earthly house of this Tabernacle were dissolved we have a building of God, an house not made with hands, eternal in the heavens, John 17.27. Father, I will that they also whom thou hast given me, be with me where I am, that they may behold my glory which thou hast given me. Having thus shewed, that everlasting life is plainly asserted both in the old and new Testa­ment, I come now to shew, that there are three degrees of this everlasting life held forth to us in the Scriptures.

1. There is a life eternal Initial, which is the life of grace, John 3.36. He that believeth on the Son hath everlasting life, that is, hath it begun in him, hath the earnest of it in his Soul.

2. There is a Partial life eternal, which is the life which be­longeth to the Soul when it is separated from the body; 'Tis the happiness which the souls of the Righteous enjoy between the time of death and the day of Judgment. The Scripture is abun­dant in asserting this kind of life eternal, which the separated soul injoys in the other world, Eccles. 12.7. Then shall the dust return to the earth as it was, and the Spirit shall return unto God who gave it, Matth 10.28. Fear not them which kill the body, but are not able to kill the Soul, but rather fear him which is able to de­stroy both soul and body in Hell, Luke 12.4. Be not afraid of them that kill the body and after that have no more that they can do. But I will forewarn you whom you shall fear. Fear him who after he hath killed, hath power to cast into Hell, yea I say fear him, Heb. 12.23. To the general assembly and Church of the first-born, which are written in Heaven, and to God the Judge of all, and to the Spi­rits of just men, made perfect, Luke 23.43. Our Saviour said to the penitent Thief, To day thou shalt be with me in Paradise, Luke 23.46. And when Jesus had cried with a loud voice, he said, Father into thy hands I commit my Spirit; and having said thus, he gave up the Ghost. Acts 7.59. And they stoned Stephen, cal­ling upon God, and saying, Lord Jesus receive my Spirit, Phil. 1.23. For I am in a strait betwixt two, having a desire to depart, and to he with Christ, which is far better, 1 Pet. 3.19. By which also he went and preached to the Spirits (now) in Prison, Rev. 6.9, 10. And when he had opened the fifth Seal, I saw under the Altar the Souls of them that were slain for the word of God, and for the Te­stimony which they held. And they cried with a loud voice saying, How long O Lord holy and true dost thou not judge and revenge our blood on them that dwell on the earth.

3. There is a life eternal Perfectional, which shall be conferred on the Saints after the re-union of their Souls and Bodies, Matth. 25.34, 46. Then shall the King say unto them on his right hand, come ye blessed of my Father, inherit the Kingdom prepared for you from the foundation of the World. Then shall the Righteous go in­to life eternal. Now this perfectional life everlasting (which will [Page 203] be the portion of the Saints at the last day) is such a life as shall be free from all evil, and full of all good.

1. Free from the evil of sin. The Souls of the Just shall then be made perfect.

2. The evil of temptation. There was a Tempter in Paradise, there will be none in Heaven.

3. The evil of affliction. All tears shall be wiped from your eyes. Rev. 7.17.

2. This life shall be full of all good.

1. Their Ʋnderstandings shall have a clear knowledge, sight and vision of God.

2. Their Wills shall be perfected and adorned with an ab­solute and indefective holiness.

3. Their Affections shall be set right with an unalterable re­gularity.

4. They shall injoy an uninterrupted communion with God.

5. They shall be blessed in their company.

6. And lastly, They shall have this blessedness secured to them without fear of ever losing it or being deprived of it; But though the Saints shall enjoy such an eternal life in bliss, as we have before described, yet it shall not be so with the wicked. Eternal life in misery will be their portion. They shall be tormented, 1. With the pain of loss, 2. With the pain of sense, 3. With the worm of Conscience, a tormenting reflection on their former folly. 4. With despair of ever coming out of that woful misery which is the very Hell of Hell. But of these things I have spoken more largely in the former Treatise pag. 130.

It remaines therefore now that I shew what improvement we are to make of this Article, and then I shall shut up this di­scourse.

1. We may from hence learn, how inexcusable they are who hazard and expose their souls and bodies to eternal torments for a short satisfaction of their bruitish lusts.

2. We should consider that there is no concern we have in the World, that should lie so near our hearts as the making our peace with God upon sure and safe grounds.

3. From hence we may learn how highly we ought to prize the blood of Christ and his undertaking, by which alone we can escape the wrath that is to come.

4. It may shew us how we ought to pity those who are run­ning on in a full carreer to Hell. How should we endeavour by our earnest intreaties to keep them from falling into that dismal place of torment?

5. We should consider with what extreme folly they are pos­sessed, who mind only this present life; that live as if there were no other life besides this, or none else worth looking after.

6. We should above all things endeavour to secure to our selves eternal life in Bliss and Happiness. Every man and womans portion must be one of these two, either everlasting life in Bliss, or everlasting damnation. And if we must be either eternally happy or eternally miserable, methinks it should make us pass the time of our sojourning here in fear, 1 Pet. 1.17. and to give dili­gence to make our calling and election sure, 2 Pet. 1.10. And to quicken our diligence hereunto, leet us consider these things.

1. By nature we have no title to everlasting Bliss. By nature we are children of Wrath, Eph. 2.3.

2. We must be united to Christ, if ever we intend to obtain it. God hath given eternal life, and this life is in his Son. He that hath the Son hath life, he that hath not the Son hath not life, 1 Joh. 5.11, 12.

3. Holiness of heart and life here is necessary for the obtaining of eternal life in bliss and happiness hereafter.

4. As Parents have been instrumental (under God) of con­veying a temporal life to their Children. So they should labour (as much as possibly they can) that they may be so religiously instructed and educated, that they may at last obtain an eternal life in bliss and happiness.

Of Baptism.

A Sacrament Vox Sacramentum non occurit in Scriptura quia est Latina. Apud veterem Latinum interpretem est pro Graeco nomine [...]. Vox au­tem Graeca generaliter pro omni se­creto, minus generaliter pro secre­to divino, specialiori significatione pro secreto divino symbolis, signis, fi­gurisque externis proposito ac repre­sentato. In hac significatione respon­det ei vox Latina Sacramentum, quae deducta est a verbo Sacrare, & a scriptoribus Ecclesiasticis Latinis a Militia desumpta fuit, in qua jura­mentum quo milites Duci obstringe­bantur vocabatur Sacramentum. Vi­de Riveti Cathol. Orthodox. Sacra­mentum proprie & stricte accipitur pro signo, sigillo quo res coelestis de­claratur, obsignatur, & communicatur. is an outward and visible rite instituted by Christ to signifie the benefits of his death and passion, and to seal and confirm the promises of Salvation to those who perform the conditions required of them.

There are two Sacraments of the new Co­nant or or new Testament, viz.

  • 1. Baptism.
  • 2. The Supper of the Lord.

Being to speak here of Baptism, I shall first distinguish of the several kinds of Bap­tism.

1. There is Baptismus fluminis sive aquae the Baptism of water, John 1.33. He that sent me to baptize with water, the same said unto me, upon whom thou shalt see the Spi­rit descending and remaining on him, the same is he that baptizeth with the Holy Ghost.

2. Flaminis sive Spiritus. The Baptism of the Holy Ghost, Mat. 3.11. I baptize you with water (saies John Baptist) but he that cometh after me shall baptize you with the Holy Ghost.

3. Sanguinis sive Martyrii. The Baptism of Sufferings, Mat. 20.22. Are ye able (sayes our Saviour to the sons of Zebedee) to drink of the Cup that I shall drink of, and to be Baptized with the Baptism that I am to be Baptized with, that is, are ye able to partake with me in those sufferings and afflictions which I am shortly to undergo.

I am to speak of the first of these, viz. The Baptism of water Concerning which, that I may proceed Methodically, I shall speak.

1. Of the Institution of it.

2. Of the Nature of it.

3. Of the excellent uses and ends of it

4. I shall inquire who are the persons that ought to be Baptized.

5. Whether Baptism be of absolute necessity to Salvation.

6. What improvement those who were baptized in their infancy ought to make of their Baptism, when they are grown up and come to years of understanding.

7. What are the particular duties of Christian Parents towards their infant Seed and Children.

1. I begin with the first. The institution. 'Tis God only who hath authority to appoint Sacraments in the Church. 'Tis his divine institution which makes a Sacrament. The whole Church cannot do it, And John 1.33. We read that John Baptist had com­mission to Baptize with water. He that sent me to Baptize with water, the same said unto me, &c.

2. Christ gave Commission to his Apostles in the first year of his publick Ministry to baptize, else 'tis not imaginable they would have done it, John 3.22. After these things came Jesus and his Disciples into the land of Judea, and there he tarried with them and baptized (that is by the hands of his Apostles) for Je­sus himself baptized not, but his Disciples, John 4.12.

3. After his Resurrection he enlarged the Commission, of his A­postles, Matth. 28.19. Go ye therefore and teach all Nations, baptizing them in the name of the Father and of the Son and of the Holy Ghost. Here he prescribes the form they should use in the administration of Baptism, injoyning them to baptize in the name of the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost. And the words in Mark 16.16. He that believes and is baptized shall be saved, but he that believeth not shall be damned, seem to be an addition to those in Matth. 28. and are not any express direction as to the admitting Infants, or not admitting them, but a direction how they should go and disciple the Heathen Nations by preaching the Gospel to them, and when they had converted any to Christianity, they should baptize them, and so bring them into Covenant with God; and when the Pa­rents were in Covenant, their Children could not fail to be so also, as (God willing) we shall shew hereafter.

2. We come to consider the Nature of Baptism.

Baptism in its general notion, is an outward visible sign and representation of inward and spiritual blessings and benefits con­veyed and made over by Christ unto the persons baptized, they performing the conditions required of them.

In Baptism there are two parts

  • 1. The Outward.
  • 2. The Inward.

In the outward part there are three things considerable.

1. The outward Element, Water,

2. The Action of applying the water by sprinkling or dip­ping.

3. The form of administring or applying the water, viz. in the name of the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost. The quantity of water which is to be used, is not limited by the ho­ly Scriptures. Sprinkling Imm [...]rsio non est de necessitate baptismi, quum non in ea posita sit mysterii hujus vis & efficacia, Cau­sab. in Mat. C. 3. Ablutio est de necessitate baptismi Dom. Soto. is as significant (as to the main ends of Baptism) as dipping. Therefore the blood of Christ (which is signified by Baptism) is called the blood of Sprinkling, Heb. 12.24. 1 Pet. 1.2. And sprinkling comes nearer the baptism men­tioned in the old Testament, than dipping doth. For the Children of Israels passing under the Cloud and through the red-Sea, 1 Cor. 10.2. is called a baptizing. And surely they were not dipped in the Cloud, but only sprinkled with it, that is, with some drops that fell from it; nor dipped in the red-Sea (as the Aegyp­tians were, who were drowed therein) but only touched it with their feet, or else possibly some drops from the waves of it might be blown upon them by the wind. But against this some object that place, Rom. 6.4. Buried with him in Baptism.

Answ. Our Baptism shews our communion with Christ in his death, it being a sign and representation of Christs blood shed, and consequently of his death and burial; and should mind us that in conformity to him we should die unto sin. But we must not press Metaphors too far, else as Christ lay three dayes and three nights in the Grave, so we must lie under water, which if it were practised would quickly end this controversie. Besides, our pou­ring water on the person baptized resembling in a sort the pouring dust or earth on a dead body, may be a representation of Burial also. But we must not (as I said) strain resemblances too far. Be­sides, we do not find that our Saviour and the Apostles continu­ed every circumstance that was in use in the first institution of the Sacrament of the Passover. As particularly, they were at first [Page 208] injoyned to sprinkle their door-posts with the blood of the lamb, and to eat it with their loins girt, and staves in their hands, as people in haste, ready to march out of Egypt. But this and other circumstances we do not find observed by our Saviour or his Apostles in their eating the Passover. Therefore some circum­stances may be varied according to Christian prudence, provided we keep close to the main of the institution, and the ends of it. To conclude this particular, baptizing is any kind of religious washing, or sprinkling in the name of the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, duly performed by a person rightly qualified for it. And what Mr. Perkins sayes in this matter is considerable, viz. that if we were to baptize a converted Pagan or Turk of ripe years, in a hot Countrey (mark that) we might baptize him by dipping. And so much of the outward part. The inward part of Baptism or the spiritual mysteries hereby signified are these two.

1. The blood of Christ sprinkled upon the Soul for the washing away the guilt of sin, and procuring remission and justification to the person baptized.

2. The grace of Christ poured into the Soul, purging out the power and dominion of sin by regeneration and sanctificati­on.

3. We come now to consider the excellent ends and uses of Bap­tism.

1. Baptism, as it has reference to God is a sign or solemn rite signifying the washing away of the guilt of our sins in Christs blood, and the Sanctifying our natures by his holy Spirit. And is a Seal to confirm it to us, as circumcision was to the Jews, Rom. 4.11. Into whose place it succeeds, as we shall shew anon.

2. Baptism, as it has reference to us, is a solemn dedicating and and consecrating us to the sincere worship and service of God the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost. 1. 'Tis a dedicating and consecra­ting us to God the Father as our Creator, that we should obey him as our rightful Lord, love him and depend on him as the fountain of our happiness, preferring his favour before any thing else in the world. 2. 'Tis a dedicating us to Christ, that we should believe in him, and accept him as our Saviour and Redeemer, expecting to be saved only by his merits, righteousness and intercession. 3. 'Tis a dedicating us to the Holy Ghost, that we should accept him as our guide, sanctifier, and comforter, that by him we [Page 209] may be freed from the dominion of sin, have the image of God repaired in us, be led into all saving truths, and guided in the wayes of godliness, and comforted with a sence of Gods love in Christ, and hope of eternal glory.

3. 'Tis a solemn ingaging us to renounce the Devil, the World and the Flesh as the three great enemies of God and our Souls. They are all expressed in Ephes. 2. v. 28. and 3. in times past ye walked according to the course of this World, according to the Prince of the power of the air, the Spirit that now worketh in the Children of disobedience. Among whom we also had our conversation in times past, in the lusts of our flesh, fulfilling the desires of the flesh and of the mind, and were by nature the children of wrath, even as others.

4. 'Tis an enrolling us into Christs family the visible Church, to walk in union and holy communion with the members there­of, 1 Cor. 12.13. By one Spirit are we all baptized into one body, whether we be Jews or Gentiles, whether we be bond or free.

5. 'Tis an obligation or bond of obedience engaging us to per­form the precepts of the Gospel. We are thereby engaged to re­pent of our sins, to believe in Christ, to endeavour to be holy in all manner of conversation, and to take up our cross when our Saviour calls us to it. As the Apostle speaks to the Galathians, Gal. 5.3. I testify to every one that is circumcised, that he is debtor to the whole Law. So say I to every one that is baptized, he is a debtor to the whole Gospel, and bound to observe the pre­cepts of it. And so much of the excellent ends and uses of Bap­tism.

I come now to the fourth particular, to consider who are the per­sons who ought to be baptized? Those are to be Baptized who are converted to the Faith of Christ, whether Jews or Gentiles, and the Children of one or both Christian Parents. The former part of this po- is granted by all. But there are some who doubt of the latter. sition That I may therefore more clearly prove the right of infants of Christian Parents to baptism, I shall first lay down some rules, which it will be requisite for us to observe in this matter.

1. There are many great truths couched and comprehended in the Scriptures which are not plainly and in so many words expres­sed; and whatsoever may be rightly deduced by necessary and un­avoidable consequence from Scripture is Scripture, and binding [Page 210] to us. Our Saviour, Mat. 22.31. proved the Resurrection of the dead against the Sadducees, not by express Scripture but by consequence and deduction from Scripture. See Sect. 6. concer­ning life everlasting.

2. Those truths which are more plainly revealed in the Old Testament, are more sparingly mentioned in the New, and those that are more darkly mentioned in the Old, are more clearly revealed in the New. There is much said of the priviledges of children in the Old Testament, and particularly of their right to the Seal of the Covenant, and therefore the less is spoken of it in the New.

3. Those truths which were not controverted in the Apostles dayes, they were not so zealous in pressing, or defending, there being not any apparent reason or occasion for it. And of that nature the Baptism of Infants seems to be.

4. Those Scriptures which speak of the priviledges of Chil­dren or Infants, are the fittest Judges of this controversie, and not those which speak only of the priviledges of grown or adult per­sons. As if the question be, whether any Infants may be saved? you must not determine it by Mark 16.16. He that believeth, and is baptized shall be saved, but he that believeth not shall be damned, (For this concerns only grown persons) but by such scriptures as these, Gen. 17. v. 7. and v. 10.11, 12. Where God promises to be a God to Abraham, and to his Seed, and requires that his male children at eight dayes old should be circumcised as a token or seal of the Covenant between him and them. So if there should be a question started, whether Parents ought to maintain their Children in their Infancy? you must not determine this question by 2 Thes. 3.10. Where the Apostles sayes, this we commanded you, that if any will not work, neither should he eat, but by 1 Tim. 5.8. He that provides not for his family is worse than an Infidel. And according to this rule we must proceed in this matter. This controversie must be determined by those places of Scripture which do either express or imply the priviledges of Infants. Ha­ving laid down these rules, I come now to give some arguments or reasons for Infant Baptism.

1. The Covenant of Grace stands now in force for the benefit of the Children of believing Parents, and if they be within the [Page 211] Covenant of God, the Seal Esse foederatum sufficit ad ac­cipiendum signum foederis. Dave nant. Haec est fundamentalis ratio pae­do-baptizmi. Daneus. of the Cove­nant belongs to them. Be baptized every one of you (sayes the Apostle to the con­verted Jews, Acts 2.39.) For the pro­mise is to you and to your Children. The same Greek word that is here used for chil­dren, is used for Infants and Children at nurse, as may appear, if you consult 1 Cor. 7.14. 1 Thes. 2.7. If it were not so, the converted Jews should have suffered loss, by believing in Christ, namely, if their children should be excluded now from the promise or Covenant of grace, who were included in it for 2000 years before, under the old Administration. For, as we said before, God established a Covenant with Abraham and his seed. And Isaac was within this Covenant when he was but eight dayes old, and re­ceived the Seal of it. Now concerning this Covenant made with Abraham, observe these particulars. 1. It was an evangelical Covenant, and the Seal of it, viz. Circumcision was the Seal of the righteousness which is by Faith, Rom. 4.11. 2. It be­longed not to Abraham only but to his Children. 3. This bles­sing bestowed on believing Abraham was to descend on the be­lieving Gentiles, Gal. 3.14. For he was to be the Father of all them that believe, though they were not circumcised, as the Apostle tells us in the place fore-quoted, Rom. 4.11. Now could the believing Gentiles be heirs of this Covenant (according to promise as it is, Gal. 3.29.) if their children be excluded from it? For the Childrens right to the Covenant and promise is part of the Fathers inheritance, the promise being, I will be a God to thee and thy seed. 4. Consider, the Covenant of Grace hath alwayes been one and the same for substance, though not as to manner of Administration. And under the Old Testament it took in Chil­dren, and can we think it leaves them out now under the Gospel? Surely the grace of God is not straiter under the Gospel than it was under the Law: For Christ is the Mediator of a better Cove­nant as the Apostle tellls us, Heb. 8.6. that is, of a bet­ter administration of the Covenant of Grace. And how could this be, if infants who were within the Covenant under the Law, should now be out of it under the Gospel? But to clear this mat­ter yet further, the Apostle tells us that Children of believers are foederally holy, 1 Cor. 7.14. Else were your Children unclean, [Page 212] but now are they holy. As if he should have said, if both Parents were Heathens, then were their Children unclean, that is, out of Covenant; but now one of them being a Christian, it pleases God that the Child shall have benefit and priviledge by that Pa­rent; now are they holy, that is, in Covenant with God. And in this sense; If the root be holy, so also are the branches, Rom. 11.16. If the Parents be holy, so also are the Children. The Apo­stle speaks not of an inward holiness inhering in the nature of the Child, but of an outward holiness or right to Church Priviledges and Ordinances. And according to this sense, those words of Ezra are to be understood, Ezra 9.2. Ye have mingled the holy seed, that is, that are in Covenant, with the Nations, that is, with those who are out of Covenant. I know, the Anabaptists inter­pret those words of the Apostle [now are your Children holy] to import no more but this, they are legitimate and no bastards. But that cannot be the meaning of them: For the Children then of many Pagans would be as holy as they: For multitudes of them are born in lawful Wedlock, and so no bastards.

All visible members of the Jewish Church had a foederal right to the Sacraments, 1 Cor. 10.2, 3, 4. They were all baptized into Moses, all eat the same spiritual meat, and yet with many of them God was not well pleased. This foederal right did not stamp on them a character of saving grace, but was only a right to the means of Salvation, and how far God would make them effectu­al, no man could tell. Some that had a right to them, made no right use of them. For an infant therefore to be born of Christi­an Parents professing to believe in Christ, and willing solemnly to dedicate him to God, is all that God requires of an infant to give him Title to his Covenant.Hypocrites may have a right to out­ward Church priviledges though the Spiritual benefit do not belong to them, they not making a right use of them. No outward Ordinance is intended for the elect only. Christ a [...]d [...]is Apostles admitted some to Church priviledges that shall never be s [...]ved. We must bap­tize all whom the Parents bring with such a profession for themselves, and their children. And their Infants are in Covenant, because reputatively their Parents wills are theirs, to dispose of them for their good. And the Children are supposed to consent by their Parents who consent for them. And the Parents will is reckoned for the Childs, till he come to age, to have a will of his own. His Parents faith and consent to dedicate him to God, is his Title. Now Parents [Page 213] dedicate their Children. 1. Virtually, when they dedicate them­selves to God. 2. Actually when their hearts actually and parti­cularly consent to dedicate this Child to God. 3. Sacramentally, when they bring him to baptism and solemnly there dedicate him to God. And this is the title of Children to baptism, and not their meer natural relation to their Parents.

As for Sponsors, God-fathers or witnesses, probably the use of them in ancient time was this. They were such as came to the Church, and professed they believed the Parents were true belie­vers, and in case they did Apostatize or die, did promise to see to the Christian education of the Child themselves. But sure­ly as the Parents faith and consent to dedicate their Child to God (and that either of one or both) conveys the right of baptism to the Child, so the Parents themselves ought to be the principal dedicators of their Child to God in baptism. If God-fathers or Sponsors be chosen by them as their deputies to do it for them, it may possibly be admitted, but as this is generally used 'tis a matter more of ceremony and civility than of Christianity. And as a learned manFuller in his Infants Advocate page 156. sayes, God-fathers are generally like brass andirons standing more for sight than service, more for orna­ment than use.

2. If Children were circumcised under the Law, they may be baptized under the Gospel. For baptism succeeds to all the essen­tials of circumcision. Circumcision was not a meer badge of di­stinction, to distinguish the Jews from other nations, but a Seal of their consecration to God. It had more in it of what was Sacramental than of what was Ceremonial. And the chief my­stery signified by circumcision was, that natural corruption must be cut off and done away. Now Christians are said by baptism to be spiritually circumcised. Ye are circumcised with the circumcision made without hands, sayes the Apostle, Col. 2.11, 12. He urges it as an argument to them to throw off the Jewish circumcision, for they were circumcised with the circumcision of Christ, viz. with that which he had appointed in his Gospel, and that was bap­tism. So that baptism is now come in the room of circumcision. And as Solomon sayes, Eccles. 1.4. One generation passes away, and another comes, but the earth remains for ever; So may I say, one Sacrament of initiation, (viz. Circumcision) passeth away, and another, (viz. Baptism) cometh in its stead, but yet the [Page 214] same Covenant of Grace that was then, remaineth still. So that what circumcision was to them, our baptism is to us, as particu­larly.

1. Circumcision was to be a sign or token of the Covenant to them, Gen. 17.11. So is baptism to us, Acts 2.38, 39. Then Peter said unto them, repent and be baptized every one of you, in the name of Jesus Christ, for the remission of sins, &c. For the promise is unto you, and to your children, and to all that are afar off, even as many as the Lord our God shall call.

2. Circumcision was a Seal of the Righteousness of Faith to them, Rom. 4.11. And so is baptism to us, Acts 22.16. Arise and be baptized and wash away thy sins, calling on the name of the Lord.

3. Circumcision signified the necessity of sanctification to them, and therefore they were required to be circumcised also in heart, Rom. 2.29. So baptism to us, Rom. 6.4. Therefore we are bu­ried with him by baptism into death, that like as Christ was raised up from the dead by the glory of the Father, even so we also should walk in newness of life.

All the difference between circumcision and baptism is for our advantage. For 1. Baptism is not so painful as Circumcision was. None of our blood is required here to be shed. 2. Baptism is not confined to the eighth day, but may be done before or after. 3. Women, and female children may be baptized, who could not be circumcised. Acts 16.5. We read that Lydia was baptized. And Acts 18.1. 'tis said they were baptised both men and women. But we come to a third argument for infant Baptism, and that is this.

3. Whole Families were baptised under the new Testament, as Lydia and her houshold, Acts 16.15. Stephanus and his houshold, 1 Cor. 1.16. And the Jaylor and his houshold, Acts 16.31, 32. Can we imagine so many families without any Children in them?

4. Children are capable of receiving benefit by baptism, why should they therefore be kept from it? The benefits of Baptism are. 1. Remission of sin by the blood of Christ; and children need that remission, by reason of original sin. 2. Sanctification by the Spirit of Christ; and they need the Sanctifying of the Spirit to renew their natures. And Christ may in the due administraion [Page 215] of this Ordinance graciously work on the Soul of an Infant, and change its disposition, and infuse the seeds of grace into it be­fore it comes to the use of reason, why then should not children be brought to Christ, and dedicated to him by baptism? Surely they that keep them from him, dangerously expose them to the grand enemy of their Souls.

5. The fifth and last argument I shall bring for Infant Baptism, shall be the practice of the Church in ancient times, and near to the Apostolical. And for proofs of this nature, I shall take my rise from the time of Austin, without looking lower, and so ascend toward the days of the Apostles.

First then for Austin, Augustinus Anno. Chr. 410. who flourished about the year of Christ 410. he is positive, and express for it, Epist. 3. ad Volusiam, con­suetudo matris ecclesiae in baptizandis parvulis nequaquam spernen­da est, neque omnino superflua deputanda, nec omnino credenda, nisi apostolica esset traditio. Idem libro primo de pec. mer. & remiss. cap. 26. Parvulos Baptizandos esse Pelagiani concedunt. Qui contra authoritatem Ʋniversae Ecclesiae proculdubio per Dominum & Apostolos traditam venire non possunt. Et Serm. 10. de ver­bis Apostoli de Poedobaptismo loquens, Nemo, inquit, vobis susurret doctrinas alienas. Hoc ecclesia semper habuit, semper tenuit. Hoc a ma­jorum si de accepit, hoc usque in fidem perseveranter custodit.

Somewhat before Austin lived St. Hierom, Hierony­mus. 4 [...]0. (viz. Anno. 400) who is clear for Infant Baptism Epist. ad Laetam. Qui parvulus est Parentis in Baptismo vinculo solvitur, &c. Children sayes he are freed in Baptism from the sin of Adam, in the guilt whereof they were involved, but men of riper years from their own, and his. Hieron. advers. Pelag. libr. 3. in fine. And in conclusion he resolves Infantes etiam in peccatorum remissionem baptizandos esse, that Infants are to be baptized for the remission of sins.

Before him lived St. Ambrose, viz. about the year 370.Ambrosius. 370. who speaking of the Pelagian Heresies, who published among other things, that the hurt which Adam did to his Posterity was exem­plo non transitu, rather by giving them such a bad example of diso­bedience, than by deriving on them any natural sinfulness, doth thereupon infer, that if this were true, it would prove evacuatio [Page 216] baptismatis parvulorum; a very nulling the Baptism of Infants. Ambros. lib. 10. Epist. 84. Et lib. 2. cap. 11. Nec senex pro­selitus, nec infans Vernaculus excipitur, quia omnis aetas peccato ob­noxia, & ideo omnis aetas sacramento idonea.

About the same time or something before flourished Gregory Nazianzen, Greg. Na­zianzenus. 3 [...]0. who in his fortieth Orat. de bapismo sayes, [...], &c. quid autem de iis dicis, qui adhuc tenera aetate sunt? an eos quoque baptizabimus? ita prorsus, si quod peri­culum urgeat. Praestat enim absque sensu sanctificari, quam sine sigillo, & initione abscedere. Atque hujus rei ratio nobis est circumcisio die octavo peragi solita, quae baptismi figuram quodammodo gerebat, atque iis, qui rationis adhuc expertes erant, offerebatur.

Cyprianus 250.Ascend we now to Cyprian Bishop of Carthage, who lived in the third century about the year 250, who was as great a stick­ler for Infant Baptism in his time as any who succeeded him. In Epist. ad Fidum lib. 3. Epist. 8. Porro si etiam gravissimis de­lictoribus, &c. If, saith he, remission of sins be given to the great­est offenders, none of which, if they afterwards believe, are ex­cluded from the grace of Baptism, quanto magis prohiberi non de­bet infans, qui recens natus, nihil peccavit, &c. How much ra­ther should Infants be admitted to it, who being new born have not sinned at all, save that they have contracted from Adam that original guilt which followeth every man by nature, &c. Nor was this Cyprians opinion only, but the unanimous consent of sixty six African Bishops convened in Council, by whom it was declared (as he there relates) that Baptism was to be administred as well to infants as men of riper years.

Origen. 120.Before him lived Origen about the year 220. who plainly tells us in Rom. cap. 6. Ecclesiam ab Apostolis traditionem accepisse eti­am parvulis baptismum dare. And further shews, that it was administred to them in reference to original sin, which if it were not in Infants, gratia baptismi superflua videretur, the grace of baptism might be thought superfluous. Idem in Levit. Hom. 8.

Irenaeus. 1 [...]4.Before his time in the second Century flourished Irenaeus, he seems c ear for Infant baptism. Christus venit omnes per seipsum salvare, I omnes inquam, qui per seipsum renascuntur, in Deum, In­fantes, [Page 217] & parvulos, & pueros. Irenaeus advers. haereses. Lib. 2. 39. Upon which words the Glosser makes this observation. Nomine renascentiae, Dominica, & Apostolica phrasi, baptismus in­telligitur.

And thus far we can go, to shew the antient practice of the Church concerning Infant-Baptism.

5. We come now to the fifth thing we propounded to inquire into, and that is, whether baptism be of absolute necessity to Salvation?

Baptism is not of such absolute necessity, that they that partake not of it, must certainly and unavoidably perish. The penitent Thief on the Cross (who was then converted) surely never was baptized. And Baptism of it self does not confer grace, For Acts 8.13, 23. Simon Magus was baptized, yet remained in the gall of bitterness. God can confer grace as he pleases, and when he pleases. He ties us, but not himself to the use of means. Baptism is generally and ordinarily necessary to salvation, both necessitate praecepti and medii; surely Christ would not command a needless thing to all nations in the name of the blessed Trini­ty. We cannot ordinarily expect grace, but in the use of the means of grace, which he hath appointed. 'Tis not therefore the simple privation, but the neglect or contempt of baptism, that is dangerous. And so I come now to the sixth thing I propounded to inquire into, viz.

6. What improvement should they make of their baptism who were baptized in their Infancy?

1. They should reflect upon their Original corruption, and how defiled they were from the Womb, so that as soon as they were born they stood in need of a Saviour.

2. It should mind them, that long ago they were solemnly dedi­cated to Christ, entred into his family, listed under his banner, engaged (as far as could be done by their Parents) to the sincere service and worship of God the Father, Son and Holy Ghost, and to forsake the Devil, the World and the Flesh. But now they are come to years of understanding, they must renew their Covenant with Christ by their own actual consent. And surely if things were regularly carried in the Church (as they ought to be) the passing out of the Infant state of Church-member-ship into the state of adult members should be very Solemn, and by a serious, [Page 218] understanding, personal owning of their Baptismal Covenant; and then they should be confirmed in the state of adult members, and then, and not before be admitted to the Sacrament of the Lords Supper. The infant baptismal Covenant will save none that live to years of discretion, that do not heartily own it in their own persons.

3. It should stir up Godly sorrow in them, that being so long ago ingaged unto Christ, and dedicated to him by their Parents, they have walked no more answerably thereunto.

4. It should stir up in them a vigorous exercise of Faith in Christs blood. Did they need Christs merits and intercession when young, and when they were under the guilt only of original sin; how much more now do they need it, when they have committed so many actual sins?

5. The remembrance of his baptism should be a mighty argu­ment to turn a sinner from the error of his way. Say to thy Soul (O Sinner) I was dedicated to Christ in my Infancy, and now shall I go on in sin serving the Devil? I was listed under the banner of Christ; and shall I now fight against him? Ah wretch! how can I do these things?

6. It should be a great antidote against temptation: whenever thou art tempted to sin, say to thy self, I am baptized, I am so­lemnly ingaged unto Christ, how can I do this great wickedness and sin against him?

7. I come now to the seventh and last thing I propounded to consider, namely, What are the duties of Christian Parents in re­ference to their Children. Their duties are these,

1. To be sensible of their own sinful condition by nature, and how they have been instruments of propagating a corrupt nature to their poor Children.

2. To bless God for Christ, who is the the only Physician, who can cure them and their children.

3. Seasonably to present their Children to this ordinance of bap­tism, and professing their Faith in Christ, and their consent to take him for their Lord and Saviour, solemnly to dedicate them unto him: And when they dedicate their children unto Christ, they should address themselves unto it as one of the solem­nest works in the world. They should do it with due prepara­tion, [Page 219] reverence, and seriousness as beseemeth those that are trans­acting a business, of such unspeakable importance.

4. They should ingage to bring up their children in the prin­ciples of the Christian Faith. They should imagine God said to them as the daughter of Pharoah said to Moses's Mother, Exod. 2.19. Bring up this Child for me. Bring up this Child in my fear, and for my service.

5. They should be very earnest in prayer to God for their children. O that Ismael might live in thy sight, sayes holy Abra­ham, Gen. 17.18. So should pious Parents pray for their chil­dren, O that this child of mine may be a real member of Christ. O that he may have the Image of God stamped upon his Soul. O that he may honour God here, and be for ever happy with him in his Kingdom hereafter.

6. They should be early instilling good and wholsome principles and documents into them; precept upon precept, line upon line, here a little and there a little, as they are able to bear it, Isa. 28.10. And the Mother as well as the Father should make consci­ence to do this. We read that Bathsheba the mother of Solomon did so, Prov. 31. which chapter contains her wise instructions to him.And if it be the duty of Parents thus carefully to instruct their Chil­dren, then surely 'tis the duty of Children carefully to observe and lay to heart, and practice the in­structions of their Parents.

7. They should check the first appear­ings and buddings forth of sin in them, endeavouring to make them sensible of the great evil and danger of it.

8. They should labour to make them in love with the beauty and excellency of Holiness and Vertue.

9. They should bring them to the ordinances of God, expect­ing the spirit of God will move upon those waters.

10. They must be sure to set them a good example. Chil­dren are more led by example than pre­cept.Exemplum concionatoris concioni­bus validius. Et exempl [...]m Pa­rentis praeceptis validiu [...].

11. They must encourage all good begin­nings of vertue or ingenuity they see in them.

12. And lastly they must labour to give them a good education and put them into a good way of living in the World, and make such provisions for them as God in his Providence shall inable them. And those Parents that do these things, whatever the success be, will have comfort in so doing.

Of the Lords Supper.

I Come now to treat of the Sacrament of the Lords Supper. In the handling of which I shall,

1. Indeavor rightly to inform your Judgments concerning the true nature, use, intent, and benefit of this holy ordinance.

2. Direct your practice, that you may know how to receive it in a right manner, and to your spiritual benefit.

That you may therefore be rightly informed concerning the nature of this Sacrament, you must know, that the Jews had two ordinary standing Sacraments. viz.

  • 1. Circumcision. to which Our Baptism. do answer.
  • 2. The Passover. to which The Lords Supper. do answer.

Theirs were bloody Sacraments; for the blood of Christ was to be shed. Ours unbloody; for the blood of Christ is shed. Now that I may speak more distinctly and plainly concening the Sacra­ment of the Lords Supper, it will be requisite that I speak some­thing 1. concerning the Jewish Passover, which we shall consider either as it was first instituted or as it was afterwards celebrated, wherein divers rites of the first Aegyptian Passover were not ex­actly observed.

The first institution of the Passover we find, Exod. 12. When Israel after long servitude and bondage was to go out of Egypt, God commanded them in their several families to kill a Lamb; to roast it whole; to eat it within doors that night; to sprinkle the side and upper door-posts with the blood thereof; and so doing, they should be safe from the destroying Angel, that rode circuit that night to destroy all Egypts first born, but he was to pass by all the houses of Israel sprinkled with blood. And hence the name Passover, Exod. 12.27. This was to be greatly observed on the fourteenth day of the first moneth, at Even.

In the treating therefore of this Passover we shall first consider the things that were proper to the Jewish Passover in Egypt, and then shew how they prefigured Christ our Passover.

1. They were commanded to take a Lamb. A Lamb the emblem of innocency. So our Saviour was stiled, John 1.19. The [Page 221] Lamb of God, being of a Lamb-like humility and meekness. John his beloved Disciple often stiles him so, as being exceeding­ly delighted with this similitude.

2. A Lamb without blemish. So was our Saviour, 1 Pet. 1.19.

3. One of their own flocks and folds. Christ was of the Jewish Na­tion, Rom. 9.4, 5. Like in all things to his brethren, sin only excepted.

4. It must be slain. So Christ was put to death on the Cross.

5. Not a bone of it must be broken, which was verified in Christ, John 19.33, 36.

6. It must be roasted. So our Saviour suffered the scorching heat of his Fathers wrath; sweating drops of blood for our sakes, Luke 22.44. O Sinner how little art thou sensible of what thy Saviour hath suffered to redeem thee!

7. The blood of the Lamb must be sprinkled on the side and upper door-posts of their houses, if they intended to be preserved from the destroying Angel. So must the blood of Christ be sprinkled by Faith on our hearts, if we intend to be delivered from the wrath to come.See 1 Pet. 1.2. and Heb. 12.24 There is no escaping the wrath of God, but by the sprinkling of Christs blood on our consciences.

8. They were to eat this Paschal Lamb with sower herbs and unlevened bread. 1. With sower herbs, to mind them of what affliction and bondage they were in in Egypt. We must have contrition and remorse wrought in us for our sins, and be in bit­terness of soul for them, ere we can reasonably expect relief by Christ. 2. With unlevened bread. The succeeding Jews, that they might shew their exactness in observing this precept, did at this Passover-time use great diligence to rid their houses of all leven; yea they were so strict about it, that they searched with candles to see if there were any remaining in any corner or hole. And lest after all their diligence any should remain with them yet un­found out, they passed a solemn execration upon it in these or the like words. All the leven that is within my possession, which I have seen, or which I have not seen, which I have cast out or not cast out, be it accursed, be it as the dust of the earth. The Apostle shews us that by leven is meant, malice and wickedness, by un­levened bread, sincerity and truth. He intimates what manner of persons they must be that intend to feed upon Christ by Faith. They must not think to eat of this Lamb, except they rid them­selves of their Leven. Leven, it swells the mass, and sours it. [Page 222] Pride makes the heart swell, and malice soures it; search therefore, O Sinner, to find out thy leven when thou thinkest of approach­ing to this holy Table. Search every corner of thy heart as with a candle; and when thou hast found out thy sins, manifest thy ha­tred and loathing of them; Never think to be pardoned except thou part with thy sins; Never think to be saved except thou be sanctified.

9. They were to eat it with their loins girt, and staves in their hands, and shooes on their feet, shewing themselves thereby to be in a posture of readiness to be gone out of Egypt, and to seek the pro­mised Land. Which may intimate to us, that we must receive this blessed Sacrament with intention to leave the dominions of Pharaoh, the Kingdom, Service, and bondage of sin and Satan, and to march on towards our heavenly Canaan. People would fain escape damnation, yet are loath to leave their pleasing and pro­fitable sins. No coming to Canaan except you leave Egypt.

10. When they had eaten of the roasted Lamb, if any thing thereof remained, it was to be burnt with fire and not left till the morning. This may shew us that Sacramental elements are not Sacramental Nihil habet rati­one Sacra­menti ex­tra usum legitimum & Sacra­mentalem. but in their use only and while they are used. As Bread and Wine in this Sacrament, and Water in Baptism, after the Sacramental use, are no longer Sacramental. A stone is boundary in its use and place: Remove it, 'tis a meer stone, no boundary.

11. Two sorts of persons were barred from eating the Passover. 1. The uncircumcised, the stranger and foreigner, Exod. 12.43, 48. Such as are not initiated into Christs Family the Church by the first Sacrament of Baptism, cannot regularly be admitted to the Lords Table. 2. unclean persons (though circumcised) or such as were in a journey, were to be put off to the Passover of the second moneth, being not cleansed for the present, according to the purification of the Sanctuary, 2 Chron. 30.18, 19. Numb. 9.10.11. This shews us that some persons who are within the com­munion of the Church may be unfit at some particular times to come to the Lords Table, yea though believers, may at such times eat and drink unworthily.

12. After the Paschal Lamb was eaten, on the next day viz. on the fifteetnh day of the first moneth, began the Feast of the Passover, or feast of unlevened bread. It continued seven dayes, and no levened bread was to be eaten during that time; and of those [Page 223] seven dayes the first and last only were holy Convocations or Sab­baths, wherein they might do no servile work, Exod. 12.15, 16. Levit. 23.5, 6, 7. Numb. 28.16, 17, 18. The Apostle alludes here­unto, 1 Cor. 5.7. Christ our Passover is Sacrificed, therefore let us keep the feast. As if he should have said, those for whom Christ our Passover is Sacrificed, on wh [...]s [...] consciences his blood is sprinkled, ought to be a holy people not levened with sin and wickedness, and to walk before God in sincerity and truth, living all their dayes in a holy rejoycing and thanksgiving.

Thus much of the first Passover as instituted and observed in Egypt; some of the Ceremonies whereof were proper to that Passover, and not intended for any other following. And accor­dingly in after times they were not observed. As particularly,

1. The Paschal Lamb was afterwards to be slain and eaten only at Je [...]usalem, Deut. 16.5, 6. The place which God had chosen for his publick worship.

2. They did not observe the taking up of the Lamb four dayes before.

3. Nor the sprinkling the door posts with blood.

4. Nor staying within and not going out of the house that night; For our Saviour and his Disciples did go out after Sup­per.

5. Nor eating it in a travelling posture. For we find our Sa­viour and his disciples eating it in a posture of discubiture, or leaning on beds.

From whence we may take notice, that we are not bound to observe all occasional or local circumstances or customs belonging to a Sacrament, nor to follow our Saviour and his Apostles in those particular circumstances of eating the Lords Supper late at night, or in a leaning posture, or in an upper Chamber, no woman being present, &c. Let us look to the substance, end, and intent of the Sacrament, and chiefly mind that.

Having spoken thus much of the Passover, I think it will not be amiss for the clearer understanding of the original institution of this Sacrament of the Lords Supper, to insert a short descrip­tion of the method and order of the Paschal Supper with the prin­cipal rites thereunto belonging (which were then either all or most of them, as it seems, in use among the Jews) as they are deli­vered to us by their own writers, much after this manner, con­sisting [Page 224] in several Cups, or drinkings of Wine, and two breakings of bread. Some of which rites, we shall shew, that our Saviour took and ordained them to a new Evangelical use and mystical signification.

1. When all things appertaining to the Feast were prepared, and all persons belonging to that Company that were to eat together, were ready, the chief man of the company (who was as it were the Priest among them) takes a cup of Wine and blesses it in some such words as these. Blessed be thou Lord, who hast created the fruit of the vine, and blessed be thou for this good day, and this holy convocation, &c. Compare with this custome our Savi­ours words, Luke 22.17. He took the Cup and gave thanks and said, take this and divide it among you.

2. Then the Table was furnished with provisions of several sorts, viz. bitter herbs, the unlevened bread, the body of the Pas­chal Lamb roasted whole, and so brought up.

3. The chief man of the company takes the sower herbs and blesses them in some such words as these, Blessed art thou O Lord, who createst the fruits of the earth, &c. and then eats of them the quantity of an Olive at least, and distributes to the rest, uttering some such sentence as this, These bitter herbs we eat in token that the Egyptians made the lives of our Fathers bitter in Egypt.

4. Then he takes the dish or Charger which held the unlea­vened bread or Cakes, and (laying by a piece thereof to be eaten afterwards with the Paschal Lamb at the close of the Supper) he blessed the bread in some such words as these, blessed art thou O Lord, who bringest forth bread out of the earth, &c. Then he breaks it, and eats of it.

5. When this is finished, he begins the second Cup of Wine, and the rest follow him. Then their Children brought in, were made to ask what is the reason that this night differs so much from other nights, instancing in many particulars of the festival solem­nities? Then the master of the feast begins a a narrative, how their Fathers were all servants in Egypt, and as that night God delivered them, &c. And tells particularly of the wonders done in Egypt and the manner of their deliverance, saying to this purpose, This is the Passover which we celebrate, because the Lord passed over the houses of our Fathers in Egypt; therefore we are bound to give thanks, to praise, to laud and glorify him, and sing Hallelujahs to [Page 225] him, &c. This kind of declaration or shewing forth the occasi­on of the Passover, they called Haggadah. Hence the Apostle may be supposed to have borrowed his phrase. As oft as ye eat this bread and drink this Cup, ye declare or set forth the Lords death, 1 Cor. 11.26. This annunciation or shewing forth to their Children the Lords wonderful goodness and mercy to them, we find commanded Exod. 12.26, 27. And it shall come to pass, when your children shall say unto you, what mean you by this ser­vice? That ye shall say, it is the Sacrifice of the Lords Passover, who passed over the houses of the children of Israel in Egypt, when he smote the Egyptians, and delivered our houses.

6. Then he takes that part of the unlevened cake that was be­fore reserved, and blessing it, and giving thanks for it as before, he distributes to every one a piece of it to eat with the Paschal Lamb, of which each person present was bound to eat as much as the quantity of an Olive at least.

The breaking of bread therefore, at which our Saviour did insti­tute the commemoration of his body, seems to be this second breaking of bread, viz. in time of Supper, after which nothing more was to be eaten that night. For 'tis said, [...] as they were eating, or towards the end of the Supper, Jesus took bread and blessed it and brake it and gave it to his Disciples saying, take eat this is my body, Mat. 26.26.

7. All this done, they drink up the third Cup, called the Cup of blessing, or thanksgiving after meat, Paul calls it by this very name, 1 Cor. 10.16. The Cup of blessing which we bless, is it not the Communion of the blood of Christ, &c. And this third Cup which was after supper (that is, after they had done eating, and was the conclusion of the Supper) was the Cup which our Saviour applied to a new spiritual signification. And having instituted it into an Eucharistical Cup, bad them drink all of it. So that now he ordaines bread to be a representation of his body hencefor­ward, in the same manner as the Paschal Lamb had been the repre­sentation of his body before; and the cup to be the New Testament in his blood now, as the blood of bullocks had been the Old Testament in his blood before, Exod. 24.8. And Moses took the blood and sprinkled it on the people, and said, behold the blood of the Covenant which the Lord hath made with you, &c. After this they sang the Hallelujah, or Hymn, or Psalm of Praise, according [Page 226] to Custom. And accordingly our Saviour and his Apostles did sing a hymn after the Paschal Supper before they departed. So that supposing these Rites to be then in use among the Jews (as their own writers tell us) it will from thence appear, that the bread and wine which our Saviour distributed at his last Passover, and appointed to signifie and represent his body and blood, were rites within the compass of it, and belonging to it, only appli­ed by him now to a new evangelical use and signification. And he dealt no otherwise in this Sacrament, than he did before in that other of Baptism, which he seems to have founded upon the old rite in use among the Jews, of purification by water. So that our Saviour in instituting both Sacaments of the new Testament seems to have taken the old rites of the Jews, and to have or­dained and advanced them to a new evangelical use, and mystical signification, and so to have put (as one sayes) a new super­scription upon the old metal. There is one thing more that it will not be amiss here to take notice of, viz. That from the Jewish custom of having a feast at the end of their Sacrifices, the Christians of the Primitive Church instituted their Agapae or love feasts. And they of the Church of Corinth did much imitate the Jewish Paschal rites in receiving of the Lords Supper. For they had a Supper before (in which they were not always very tempe­rate as appears 1. Cor. 11.) And at the conclusion of this Supper they had the bread and wine of the Lords Supper admini­stred, as the Jews at the end of their Paschal Supper had the un­levened bread, and the Cup of blessing.

Having spoken thus much of the Passover and the rites belon­ging to it; I now come to speak of the Lords Supper which suc­ceeds it. And here I shall treat,

  • 1. Of the Author of it.
  • 2. Of the time when it was instituted.
  • 3. Of the Nature of it.
  • 4. Of the ends for which it was instituted.

1. Christ himself is the Author of it. We have before shewn how Christ eating the Paschal Supper with his Disciples (who were Jews) took some of the Paschal cheer and provisions, and made them the materials of this blessed Sacrament. 'Tis Christ who was the Author of it. 'Tis he who is the King and Soveraign of his Church. 'Tis he who appoints therein his Officers, [Page 227] Laws, and Ordinances. He is the Mediator of the new Cove­nant, and therefore appoints the tokens and seals of it. Divine institution only makes a Sacrament; the whole Church cannot do it.

2. Let us consider the time in which it was instituted, viz. in the same night in which he was betrayed by Judas, 1 Cor. 11.23. Observe Christs great love to his Church. He saw his death approaching; yet he bestows now a great favour on mankind, when he sees he shall receive the hardest measure from them. O that the same mind were in us that was in Christ Jesus! Judas had resolved beforehand to betray him, and accordingly had agreed with the Chief-Priests and Council of the Jews, yet with this wicked resolution he comes to eat the Passover with him. Sins of purpose and resolution are most dangerous. We should look not only on Judas's sin in betraying his Master, but on his fixed intention and resolution to do it. 'Tis a dangerous thing to come to this Sacrament with an intent to go on in any known sin.

3. Let us consider the nature of this Sacrament; wherein three things are to be spoken to.

  • 1. The outward Ordinance, or outward signs.
  • 2. The inward and Spiritual mysteries thereby signified.
  • 3. The Command for the observing this Ordinance.

1. The outward Ordinance, or Sacrament properly so called con­sists,

1. Of certain Elements, or materials, viz. Bread and Wine.

2. Of sundry Rites and Sacramental actions appertaining thereunto.

1. Our Saviour took bread and gave thanks, and so also the Cup. He blessed the Bread and the Wine severally (as the Jews manner was) by thanksgiving and pra [...]er to God. Hence this Sacrament is called the Eucharist. And this blessing and praying over the Bread and Wine is called the consecration of the Elements, or setting them apart from a common to a holy use. Yet this must be observed by the way, that this Consecration changes not the [Page 228] Elements as to their substance, In caena Domini nu [...]la est transmuta­tio signorum in res sig­natas, aut existentia rerum signatarum in signis, sed signa vocantur res signatae Metaphoricè, non propriè. Pontificij panem tra [...]smutari in co [...]pus, Lutherani cu [...]pus ess [...] in pane statuunt, ut qui non exp [...]ndunt locu [...]ionem esse Sacramentalem, qualem etiam habem [...]s Gen. 17. u [...]i circumcisio vocatur foedus. In his verbis [hoc est corpus meum] tropus est in copu­la [est] quemadmodum in istis Septem vaccae sunt septem anni; Item Semen est verbum Dei. I [...]i enim copula est accipitur pro significare. Consecration makes the Elements only representatively the body and blood of Christ. but as to their use, office and sig­nification only. This is my body are not the words of consecrati­on. For Christ bad them take and eat, before he pronounced these words. And the words of Consecration should in reason be spoken to God, and not to the Disciples, as these were.

2. He brake the bread. The pa­pists break not the bread but give it whole in wafer cakes. And they take away the Cup from the Laity; wh [...]reas our Saviour instituted it to be received in both kinds; and to receive it otherwise is a palpable violation of his order. Hence this Sacrament is called the breaking of Bread, Acts 2.42. And they continued stedfastly in the Apostles Doctrine and fellowship, and in breaking bread, and in prayers.

3. He gave it to his Disciples, saying take, eat; and so the Cup, take and drink ye all of it.

So that the duty of a Minister who shall according to Christs institution administer this Ordinance, is,

1. To praise God for the elements of bread and wine; and setting them apart; (according to Christs institution) from a common to this religious use, to pray to God that they may be ef­fectual representations, signs and seals of the spiritual blessings they are appointed to signifie, to all those who shall receive them in a right manner. And then to distribute the bread and wine so consecrated to the Communicants. And the duty of the com­municants is to take and eat of this bread and drink this wine in a right manner. Of which more afterwards.

2. We come now to consider the inward mysteries and spiritu­al blessings signified by these outward elements. Here Christ is represented to us as Sacrificed for us, and delivering himself to us with the fruits and benefits of his death, for our eternal good. I say [Page 229] (sayes our Saviour.) This is my body which was broken Though a bone of him was not broken; yet the A­postle speaks of his body as broken, in regard of those cruel wounds he received. for you.

The body of Christ that was nailed to the Cross, and his blood that was shed, was a Sacrifice, as offered up to God. But it is meat and drink, as offered to us. He was given for us in the Sacrifice, and is given to us in the Sacrament, with the blessed fruits and be­nefits that flow from his death, John 55. Christ sayes my flesh is meat indeed, and my blood is drink indeed. And verse 56. He that eateth my flesh and drinketh my blood dwelleth in me and I in him, that is, He dwelleth in me by Faith, and I dwell in him by the constant influence and quickning vertue of my holy Spirit. Christ must be received by us and united to us by faith [...], as meat is received by our mouth and tasted by our Palate, and so turned into our substance. Being so received, he will strengthen and refresh our Souls as meat doth a hungry man. There is an absolute necessity of closing with Christ as crucified and of being highly pleased with him on that account, as the Palate is with wholsom agreeable food, that our Souls being united to him may of his fulness receive grace for grace. Not that we must be like the gross Capernaites (John 6.) who had a gross appehension of eating corporally the very flesh and drinking the very blood of Christ There is indeed a spiritual eating of Christs flesh, and drink­ing of his blood by Faith, which may be exercised when this Sacra­ment is not administred. And of such an eating our Saviour speaks to the Jews, John 6.53. Verily verily I say unto you, except ye eat the flesh of the Son of Man and drink his blood, ye have no life in you. Now that he does not mean Sacramental eating there, is plain and evident; for that Sacrament was not instituted till a good while after this, as will appear to any one who understands the history of our Saviour; nay this kind of eating of his flesh by Faith he shews to be of so great necessity, that without it he tells them they had no life in them, v. 53. which cannot be said of all that never received the Sacrament of the Lords Supper. When there­fore we approach to this holy Table, let us not be like the Carnal Israelites that did eat Manna and drink of the rock in the wilderness, but neither saw nor tasted Christ in them.

3. We come now to consider the command for the observing of this ordinance. Do this in remembrance of me. This com­mand is not to be extended to circumstances, and accessaries but to [Page 230] the substance and main of the institution. This Sacrament is cal­led the Lords Supper from the time of the first institution, not that we are bound to receive it only at that time. Occasio­nal circumstances the prudence of the Church may alter, let us look to the substance, end and intent of this Sacrament, and chiefly mind that. The dying charge of a Friend does usually make great impression on the by-standers. And so should this solemn charge of our dying Saviour make upon us. Do this in re­membrance of me and observe it in all ages till I come. So long it must be continued in the world.

4. Let us consider now the ends for which this Sacrament was ordained. And here I shall speak.

1. Of the true and proper ends for which it was instituted.

2. Of the mistaken ends for which it was not appointed.

The true and proper ends for which it was instituted are these.

1. To be a solemn commemoration of the death and passion of our Lord and Saviour, to keep it in remembrance, and in the eye of the Church till he come to Judgment, 1 Cor. 11.24, 25.

2. To be a Seal of the new Covenant or new Testament, with all the promises and priviledges of it, and of the ratification of it by the blood of Christ, Luke 22.20. This Cup is the New Testament in my blood, that is, a Sign and Seal of the new Testa­ment or Covenant which is to be ratified and confirmed by my blood.Heb. 9.15.16. Matth. 26.28. This is my blood of the New Testa­ment, which is now to be shed for many, for the remission of sins: that is, this wine in the Cup is a sign or representation of my blood, and a seal whereby the new Covenant is confirmed with all the promises of it. For without shedding of blood there is no remission, Heb. 9.22. Gods Justice being no other way to be satisfied.

Now the Sacraments may be said to be Seals in two respects, 1. They are absolute seals to the veracity and truth of Gods pro­mises and Covenant. 2. Conditional Seals in reference to us. They Seal the remission of sins to all that perform the conditions re­quired and to none else: As the tree of life did not seal or con­firm to Adam, that he should have life, except upon condition of his perfect obedience. To them therefore that perform the conditions required they exhibit, confer and passover the blessings promised in the Covenant of Grace.

3. To be an objective means to stir up, excite and increase Re­pentance, [Page 231] Faith, Love, Hope, Joy, Thankfulness in believers, by a lively representation of the evil of sin, the infinite love of God in Christ, the firmness of the Covenant of grace, the greatness and sureness of the mercies promised.

4. To be a badge and cognizance of the Church before the world; and a token that we solemnly profess that we own a crucified Jesus for our Saviour, and that 'tis Christ and his death that we depend upon and abide by, for the remission of all our sins and reconcilia­tion with God.

5. To be a means of our renewing our Covenant with God. Covenants in the Scripture were wont to be made by eating and drinking together. Isaac and Abimelech, Jacob and Laban con­cluded their Covenants with a Feast.Gen. 6.30. and Gen. 31.44, 46. Hereby we have an ad­vantage of entring into a stricter engagement to God, and renew­ing the Covenant we made with him in Baptism.

6. To be a means of procuring and advancing unity and love among the Saints. A feast carries in it the notion of love and good will. But this is more a feast of love than any ordinary feast can be, because 'tis a remembrance of the greatest love that that ever was manifested, viz. of that love which the Lord shew­ed in dying for us. 'Tis a Feast upon Christs Sacrifice. And it should be a means not only of uniting believers more firmly to Christ their Head, but of uniting and endearing them more one to another.

The ancient Christians did notably express this. 1. By their Agapae or love-feast, Jude verse 14. 2 Pet. 2.13. 2. By their kiss of Charity, Rom. 16.16. 1 Cor. 16.30. 3. By their col­lections for the poor made at these times, 1 Cor. 16.1.

Having thus spoken of the true and proper ends for which this Sacrament was instituted; I come now to consider the mista­ken ends for which it was not appointed.

1. It was not appointed to turn bread and wine into the true, and real body and blood of Christ. For if sense be not to be be­lieved concerning its own object, and which tells all men that 'tis still bread and wine, how can we believe that Christ or any of his Apostles were ever in the World, seeing they that saw them and conversed with them, may on this ground for all that be deceived; which were very irrational to imagine. And the Apostle expresly calls it bread three times in three verses together, and that after the Consecration. 1 Cor. 11.26, 27, 28. For as often as ye eat this [Page 232] bread and drink this Cup, ye do shew the Lords death till he come. Wherefore whosoever shall eat this Bread and drink this Cup of the Lord unworthily shall be guilty of the body and blood of the Lord. But let a man examine himself, and so let him eat of this Bread, and drink of that Cup. And he tells us, that the use of this Sacra­ment is not to make the Lards Body corporally present, but to shew the Lords death till he come; that is, to be a visible repre­sentation and commemoration of his death till he come to judg­ment. Indeed Christ is really present in this Sacrament, but not in the elements, but to the Faith of the worthy receiver. When they eat of this Bread and drink of this Cup in a due manner, exercising a lively Faith in him for the remission of all their sins, Christ is then present to their Faith, neither is he any otherwise present in this Sacrament.

2. This Sacrament was not appointed to Sacrifice Christ really again to the Father, to propitiate him for the quick and dead, or to ease Souls in Purgatory, to deliver them out of it. For Christ having died once, dieth no more, but by once offering up himself hath for ever perfected them that are sanctified, Heb. 10.14. that is, he hath made a perfect satisfaction to the justice of God, and done all things needful to bring them to eternal life, who are sanctified by his grace, and brought to believe in him with a lively Faith.

3. 'Tis not appointed as a means to conveigh grace meerly by the work done, or by the outward receiving of it only, (as charms are supposed to work;) neither are we to suppose that God will pardon or save any for their meer coming to this Ordi­nance, though they strive not with their hearts to bring them to repentance, faith in Christ, sincere love to God and men, and new obedience.

4. 'Tis not appointed as a means to wipe off the old score of sin that men may more freely and boldly encourage themselves to sin again (as some ignorant people are apt to think) but as a blessed means to mortifie sin in us and to engage us unto holiness. And thus much concerning the first head I propounded to speak unto, viz. The right informing the judgment; and that concerning these four particulars. 1. The author of this Sacrament. 2. The time of its Institution. 3. The nature of it. 4. The ends for which it was appointed.

I come now to the second, viz. to direct your practice and to [Page 233] shew you how you should receive it in a right manner. In order to which you must know,

  • 1. There are some duties to be performed before you come to re­ceive this holy Sacrament.
  • 2. Some duties in the time of receiving it.
  • 3. Some duties after.

There are two kinds of preparation necessary to a worthy re­ceiver.

1. The General which is that we look to it, that we be in a state of grace; for there are several graces that must be exercised in receiving this Sacrament, and they that are not in a state of grace are utterly unfit (for the present) to approach this holy Table.

2. The Particular which consists in a present actual fulness. In order to the obtaining of this let me advise thee (Reader) to the practice of these things.

1. Betake thy self to some retired privacy, and sequestring thy self from worldly cares and business, labour to bring thy mind into a good calm sedate frame and fitness for this great work.

2. Earnestly beg of God to give thee the assistance of his holy spirit to inable thee to fit thy self for this solemn Ordinance.

3. Seriously consider the danger of receiving this Sacrament unworthily, that is, without such a disposition of mind and such a preparation of heart, and such reverence and devotion as is agreeable unto so holy an Ordinance. Such persons as are not so fitted, and yet approach to this holy Table, are guilty of pro­faning this Sacrament (which is the commemoration of Christs death) and of vilifying the signs and pledges of his body and blood, and so incur the danger of temporal Judgment and chastisement here, and without repentance, of eternal hereaf­ter.

4. Seriously consider what is required to a worthy receiving. And here a twofold caution is to be observed. 1. That the pitch of worthiness is not to be set too high, so as none shall be thought sit to partake of this Table but such as have a high and eminent degree of grace. For this [...]dinance was appointed for the ben [...]fit of the lowest Believers, and s [...] such as are weak in the Faith. 2. That it be not set too low, so [...]hat a [...] person, though very ignorant of [Page 234] the true nature and end of this ordinance, if he be free from gross, open, and scandalous sins, may be thought fit to come and be admit­ted to it.

That we may therefore avoid both these, I shall set down.

  • 1. What qualifications are requisite to a worthy Receiver?
  • 2. What are insufficient?

The qualifications requisite are these.

1. Knowledge. The fundamental principles and grounds of Christianity, and the nature, signification, end and use of this Sa­crament must be known by every one that would be a worthy re­ceiver. Ignorant persons therefore are totally unfit (for the pre­sent) and must first be instructed before they be admitted to this holy Ordinance. But by the knowledge required we do not mean the profound knowledge of a Scholar (who knows how to dispute upon any of these points, and knows all the distinctions about them) but the savoury knowledge of a Christian, which hath these properties. 1. 'Tis not a meer speculative floating or swimming in the brain, but a knowledge that affects the heart and works up­on the affections. 'Tis such a knowledge of God, as causes the heart to fear him, such a knowledge of sin as works in the heart a hatred and loathing of it. 2. 'Tis an humbling knowledge. Knowledge not sanctified puffeth up, 1 Cor. 8.1. But the more any Soul is savingly inlightned, the more it sees, and is sen­sible of its own folly and corruption and great depravedness. 3. 'Tis a knowledge that is operative for the drawing the Soul to Christ, and for the mending of the heart and reforming of the life. Never let any man tell me that he has knowledge enough, he knows as much as the Minister can teach him, he knows the way to Heaven and Salvation as well as any body can shew him, when I see him going on in paths leading down to Hell. Shall any man perswade me that he has a sufficient skill in Physick, and yet when he is dangerously sick, he is neither sensible of it, nor applies any fit remedy for himself? Certainly that knowledge of the things of God is not right, which does not affect the heart, nor reform the life.

2. Repentance. They that are truly penitent have wrought in them by the Spirit of God. 1. A Conviction of the evil and danger of their sins. 2. True contrition and godly sorrow for them. 3. A hatred and loathing of them. 4. They are brought [Page 235] humbly to confess them with sorrow and shame unto God. And 5. To turn from them unto God by sincere amendment of their lives.

3. Faith in Christ. This is a main qualification requisite to a worthy Communicant. The main acts of Faith are these two. 1. A serious owning and acknowledging Christ for the only Saviour of the World. 2. A sincere giving up of the soul to him to be par­doned in his blood and sanctified by his Spirit, and a solemn trusting and depending on him for all the benefits purchased by his death and passion. And such a faith as this is operative for the purifying of the heart and reforming the life.

4. Love. Of this grace there are several acts required. 1. We ought to excite a great love in our Souls to God our Creator and constant benefactor, who sent his Son to redeem us. 2. We ought to excite and stir up in our souls a great love to Christ Jesus, who humbled himself to the death for us. In contemplation of which transcendent love of Christ the Apostle cries out, If any man love not the Lord Jesus let him be Anathema Maranatha, 1 Cor. 16.22.

Q. But you will say, how may we know whether there be in us a sincere love to Christ or no? 1. Have we been deeply wound­ed with a sence of our sins, and have we betaken our selves to him as our only Physician to be cured, and have we found him cu­ring our accusing condemning consciences? Hath our love to Christ any such foundation as this? 2. Do we own Christ and love him as considered in all his Offices? Do we love Christ not only as a Priest that has made atonement for us, but as a Prophet and a King? Do we love the guidance of his holy Spirit and the guidance of his word? Do we love his Soveraignty as well as his Saviour-ship? 3. Do we love him for his deep humiliation and bitter sufferings, which he so readily underwent for us, and for the great redemption and salvation he hath wrought for us? 4. Are we willing to obey Christ? If you love me (sayes our Sa­viour) keep my commandments? 5. Is the interest of Christ dear to us? Are we concerned in his honour and dishonour? Are we suitably affected when his interest prospers or is trampled upon, when it goes well or ill with his Church? 6. Do we love him for those eminent graces which were so conspicuous in his life? 7. Are we willing to be serviceable to him and to suffer for him when he calls us to it? 8. Do we love him for his constant inter­cession [Page 236] for us at Gods right hand? Let us try our love to Christ by these marks.

3. We ought to have in our hearts a true love and charity to all Christians. We should excite in our Souls a true love to all those that are real members of Christ. We should love their persons, graces, and fellowship. These we should love with a complacential love. But besides these, we should love our very enemies with a love of benevolence, wishing well unfeignedly to them and praying for them. The proper offices and effects of this Charity are 1. Forgiving injuries. 2. Doing good against evil. 3. Speaking good of others (if we can honestly) or else abstaining from speaking evil. Let us consider what the Apo­stle sayes, 1 John 2.9. He that saith he is in the light, and ha­teth his brother, is in darkness, even until now. He that loveth his brother abideth in the light, and there is none occasion of stumbling in him. He that hateth his brother is a Murderer. So that it seems there is a kind of heart-murder and tongue-murder, (which we ought to take heed of) as well as the murder of the hand.

5. The fifth thing requisite to a worthy Receiver is an hungring and thirsting after a greater sence of Gods pardoning mercy in Christ, and of more communications of Grace from him, by which we may be in­abled to live more unto God. Having thus shewed what are the due qualifications requisite to a worthy Receiver; I come now to shew what qualifications are insufficient.

1. He that is meerly civil is not sufficiently qualified to partake of this Ordinance. By meerly civil I mean a person whose life as (as to men) is outwardly fair and civil; yet he hath never had any ef­fectual conviction of the evil of s [...]n, nor of the danger of his origi­nal and actual transgressions made upon his conscience, nor of the absolute nec [...]ssity that lies upon him to go out of himself to Christ for pardon: but usually rests in his own righteousness and in the performance of the duties of the second Table, and is either very negligent about, or slight and perfunctory in the performance of the duties of the first, namely the duties that relate to God im­mediately. He would be righteous towards men, but his heart is very far from being truly religious toward God. His chief care is usually about the outward fairness of his conversation, but takes little or no care of purging of his heart of secret sins, or mortifying his inward lusts. And neither is the glory of God his aim, nor [Page 237] the word of God his rule, but his own credit and estimation in the world is chiefly regarded by him. And many times there is some sin or other (though not gross and notorious) continued in with allowance. And not seldom there is a professed hatred against the practical power of Godliness, thinking it more ado than needs. He that has only such a civility as this, is not sufficiently qualified for this holy Table.

2. He that is meerly restrained and withholden either by the sence of his credit or fear of shame or punishment from the com­mission of sin, but in his heart hankers after it and inclines to it, is not fitly qualified. There are many persons that have some re­straints upon them (as the respect they bear to their Parents or Governors or the like) that keep them (for the present) from the commission of those sins which in their hearts they love and would give themselves over unto if they durst. And commonly when those restraints are removed, their corruptions break out with more violence. I press this no farther, I leave every one herein to deal faithfully and impartially with his own Soul.

3. He that has only an outward formal religiousness is not fitly qualified for this holy Table. I mean such as rest in the bare per­formance of outward religious duties, and trust to them for their acceptance with God, not minding nor aiming that their Souls should be bettered towards God by their duties. 'Tis a good and useful distinction (which we have before had occasion to mention) that of Religion the end and Religion the means. They that rest in the means, and in outward religious performances, such as pray­ing, hearing, receiving the Lords Supper, or the like, without aiming at, or designing that their hearts may be really mended and their lives reformed thereby, (which is the end these means are appointed for) are far from being truly Religious. Yet many times such persons are highly conceited of their own righteousness, as the Pharisee was, Luke 18.9. Who trusted in himself that he was righteous, and despised others.

4. Such as have only a slight sorrow for their sins past, and no serious resolution to amend their lives, nor to forsake what they know to be sinful and amiss in themselves, are by no means fitly qualified for this holy Table.

Let every one therefore seriously examine himself, whether he be fitly qualified for this holy ordinance. And there being but only [Page 238] two estates of soul toward God that man can be in, (viz.) either that of nature or that of grace, (so that every man must of ne­cessity be in the one or the other,) It concerns us to be well acquainted with the distinguishing Characters or marks both of the one and of the other, and to examine our selves seriously, that we may know in which of them we are; and to stick so long upon this work, till we bring it to some issue, and be able to make a judgment upon our selves, to which of them we do indeed belong. In order to the helping us in this great work of self examination. I shall give the characters. 1. Of such as (for the present) are ap­parently unconverted, and 2. Of such as are converted. The un­converted are such as these.

1. Such as are grosly ignorant of the main principles of Christi­anity.

2. Such as are insensible of the evil and danger of their sins, nor have ever had any considerable remorse wrought in their souls for them.

3. Such in whose hearts sin rules and reigns, so that they de­light in it.

4. Such whose lives and conversations are wicked and pro­phane.

5. Such as were never brought to see their need of Christ in good earnest nor solemnly to accept him for their Lord and Savi­our.

6. Such as disrelish holiness, and hate the life and power of godliness, and malign such as are truly and seriously religi­ous.

7. Such as delight in wicked company, and chuse such for their companions rather than others.

8. Such as are gross neglecters of the means of grace which God hath appointed for the bettering of our souls.

9. Such as have long enjoyed the powerful means of grace, but are nothing changed, bettered or reformed thereby.

10. Such as have the main bent of their hearts set upon the pleasures, profits, and delights of the world; And these are the things they chiefly mind, though with the ruining neglect of their Souls. Such persons for the present are apparently uncon­converted.

2. Let us consider the marks and characters of such as are con­verted. The converted are such as these.

1. They are such who by the grace of God have been spiritu­ally enlightned to see the depravation of their natures and the sin­fulness of their hearts and lives.

2. They are such as have had their hearts touched and affected with Godly sorrow, and true remorse for their sins.

3. They are such as have been brought to see their absolute need of Christ, and deliberately and solemnly to give up themselves to him, to be pardoned through the merit of his active and passive obedience, and to be sanctified by his spirit.

4. They are such who by the assistance of grace do labour to mortifie their inward lusts, and to purifie their hearts from secret sins.

5. They are such in whose hearts the interest of God prevailes above the interest of the World or of the Flesh.

6. They are such who labour to be holy in all manner of conver­sation. 1. To be religious towards God. 2. Righteous towards men. 3. Sober and temperate in the government of themselves. 4. Diligent and faithful in the discharge of their relative du­ties.

7. They are such as truly love all the people of God, and such as are true members of Christs holy Catholick Church.

8. They are such as labour to be sincere in all that they do.

9. They are such as labour to be watchful over themselves, viz. over their thoughts, over their affections, over their words, over their actions, and over their aims and ends.

10. They are such as in their Judgments do approve the wayes of God as most eligible and most safe.

11. They do consent to, and own the Covenant they were en­tred into in their Baptism. And these are the characters or marks of such as are Converted.

Now if any one on serious examination of himself do find that there is any seed or principle of true grace in him, and that it is the sincere purpose of his heart to walk with God, then he ought to en­courage himself to come to this Ordinance, which was instituted to strengthen the weak Christian. And so much of the duties which are to be performed before you come to this holy Ordi­nance.

I come now to shew what are the duties required of you in the time of receiving. Which are these.

1. Carefully avoid distractions, as much as possibly you can, through the whole administration, and gird up the loyns of y [...]ur mind, and be intent upon the work you are about.

2. Labour to quicken and excite, and awaken in your souls these following graces.

1. Awaken repentance and a bleeding sorrow in thy heart for all thy sins past, and especially for those that sit heaviest upon thy conscience. Say to thy soul in some such soliloquies as these; O my soul, that ever I should have been such a vile wretch! that I should have so grievously offended my merciful and bountifull Creator! O what a mercy is it that I am out of Hell! God might have cut me down in my sins, and cast me down into the Lake of fire and brimstone. And has he hitherto spared me, and does he now offer me a pardon sealed with the blood of his dear Son? O the unsearch­able riches of his free grace and mercy! O my soul how should this melt thee into penitent tears! How should this consideration make thee loath and hate every sin that thou hast ever been guilty of, and make thee willing to renounce and forsake them all; and to turn to God in sincere obedience?

2. Awaken and excite a spiritual appetite in thy self. Say to thy soul Happy, yea thrice happy (O my soul) are they whose sins are forgiven, and whose iniquities are covered, blessed are they to wh [...]m God will not impute their transgressions, but will pardon them in and through his Son. Yea happy are they whose justification is testified to their consciences by their Sanctification, and by their sincere desire and endeavor to walk before God in all holy obedi­ence. O my soul that this may be my portion, whatever God denies me else in this world! Oh that this may be a day wherein I may have a clear manifestation of Gods pardoning mercy made to my Soul! Oh that I may receive a plentiful effusion of the graces of the Spirit into my heart! O that my lusts and corruptions may be mortified and subdued! O that I may be enabled to do all my duties better than ever I have done! O that I may be more watchful over mine heart and tongue, and all my wayes than ever I have been! O that my soul may depart much bettered, much revived, comforted, and strengthned, from this holy Ordinance.

3. Awaken Faith. Say to thy self, O my Soul, it is not a con­fident [Page 241] and groundless perswasion, that Christ will save thee, that is the faith now required of thee. But thou must humbly cast thy self at Christs feet, and seriously and deliberately own and acknowledge him for the only Saviour of mankind, and humbly cast thy self on the free mercy of God, and his merits, and inter­cession, for the obtaining the pardon of all thy sins, and must con­sent to take him for thy Lord as well as thy Saviour, and be wil­ling he should rule in thee by his holy Spirit, and govern thee by his Laws. O my Soul, willingly, freely, deliberately, surrender thy self to him to be pardo ed in his blood, to be sanctified by his spirit; go to him, trust in him for grace as well as pardon. And though thou hast before given up thy self to him, and by acts of Faith united thy self to him, yet labour now to excite and put forth stronger acts of faith and affiance in him, that thou maist be more firmly united unto him. Say, Lord I come to thee; sweet Saviour I give my Soul here anew to thee; Take it, wash it in thy precious blood from the g [...]ilt of all my sins, and sanctifie it by thy holy spirit. Thou hast said whoever comes unto thee, thou wilt in no wise cast out, O receive me though an unworthy wretch; O absolve me from the guilt of all my sins, of every sort and kind. O keep my poor Soul that I now commit unto thee unto eternal life. There in no other name given under Heaven whereby I can be saved. Therefore I do profess and declare, that thy merits, obe­dience, and sufferings I do alone depend on and abide by for my reconciliation and peace with God, and do now renew my Co­venant that I was entred into in my Baptism, resolving by thy grace to be for ever thine.

4. Awaken excite and stir up thy heart in love to God and to Jesus Christ. Say to thy self, O my Soul, how great is the love of God in sending his only Son to dye to save poor lost Sinners? He did not thus for the Angels that fell; O how great is the love of Christ who would stoop so low! That the eternal Son of God should take our nature and be born of a poor Virgin; that he should dye and suffer and endure so much for poor worms, for enemies; that he should sweat drops of blood in the Garden in his agony; that he should have his precious body thus broken, and his blood shed to redeem us! Was there ever love like this? O my Soul, what hath been done by thee in return for all this love? O my sweet Jesus, thou art worthy of all love [Page 242] and service from me, though mine heart is base and disingenuous, and is not sufficiently affected with thy love. Thou art infinite­ly lovely, though my heart loves thee not as it ought to do. Thou wast exceeding lovely and amiable even in thine humiliation in this World; but O how glorious art thou now triumphing in heaven? O how beneficial are thy merits? how desirable are thy graces? O let that fulness of grace that is poured forth without measure on thee, flow down to us thy poor members. O my Soul imagine now thou sawest thy sweetest Saviour nailed on the Cross, his body torn with the nails, and his side pierced with a Spear. Canst thou chuse but love him, who endured so much to redeem thee from eternal misery? The Apostle Paul ravished with the love of Christ cryes out, If any man love not the Lord Jesus, let him be anathema maranatha. The penitent woman in the Gospel to whom much was forgiven, loved much, Luke 7.47. And shall it not be so with thee? Now consider O my Soul: Christ sayes if ye love me keep my commandments; If thou love him, love him in sincerity, and delight to please him. Love his person; highly value his merits, love his ordinances, love his gra­ces, love his commands. O my Soul, canst thou upon all these considerations say with Peter, Lord thou knowest all things, thou knowest that I love thee.

5. Excite in thy self love to all Christians, to all the mem­bers of Christ. Pray earnestly, that the Lord would protect them and defend them, that he would be pleased to perfect holiness more and more in their hearts, and unite them more and more one to another in his truth and in the bond of love, and make them more exemplary in a holy conversation, and supply them with all needful outward mercies, and conduct them safe to his hea­venly Kingdom.

6. Excite love in thy Soul to thy very enemies, say to thy self, O my Soul, thou must forgive if thou expectest to be forgiven. Thy dear Saviour requires this of thee, Matth. 6.14. If ye for­give men their trespasses, your heavenly Father will also forgive you, Verse 15. But if ye forgive not men their trespasses, neither will your Father forgive your trespasses. If thou expectest to be forgiven so many thousand Talents, thou must not take thy bro­ther by the throat for an hundred pence, Matth. 18.28. Thou must labour to be merciful as thine heavenly Father is merciful. [Page 243] Readiness to forgive injuries and wrongs, is a great sign of a gra­cious state, but malice and revenge is a black mark and character. Therefore O my Soul, pray for thy very enemies this day; Lord convince them of their sins, give them hearts to repent of them, turn their hearts from them, draw them to thy Son, that by him they may have pardon and life; give them such a frame of spi­rit, that thou maist bless them. O that I may meet their souls in Heaven, where we shall always love, and agree together, and never fall out more.

7. Awake and excite in thy self spiritual joy and thankfulness. Say with holy David, bless the Lord O my Soul, and forget not all his benefits. Hath Christ redeemed thee from the curse of the Law, being made a curse for thee? Hath he redeemed thee, and that not with silver and gold, but with his own precious blood? Hath he made thy peace with God through the blood of his Cross? Hath he vanquished death and Satan for thee? Through his blood shalt thou have an entrance into heaven and eternal glory? Oh transcendent mercy! Oh how great is this Salvation which Christ hath purchased for us! On the heighth and depth and length and breadth of the love of God in Christ Jesus! Be astonished Oh my Soul at this love, and never be forgetful of it; call upon the holy Angels to joyn with thee this day in blessing God for these great and glorious benefits, and never be unmindful of so tran­scendent mercies. And thus much of the graces we must espe­cially labour to excite and exercise in the time of Receiving. There are some other directions also that it will be needful thou shouldst observe at this time.

1. Employ thine outward senses so, as to stir up in thine heart Spiritual graces. For the work of the Communicant lyes not so much between the body and the elements as the Soul and Christ.

2. When thou seest the bread broken, think of these four things. 1. The great pain and anguish our Lord endured when his Body was broken on the Cross. Canst thou see Christs body broken for thee, and thy heart not break with deep contri­tion for thy sins? 2. Consider the great love of our Lord in submitting to such grievous pains, and such disgrace for our sake. Think thou hearest him say, behold my friends, how my flesh is torn and wounded for your sakes. Was there ever grief, [Page 244] was there ever love like mine? 3. Consider the vile and odious nature of sin which brought our Lord to such miseries and re­quired such blood to expiate it. 4. Consider what the redemp­tion of every Soul (that shall be saved) did cost. It cost more than all the men and Angels in the World could ever have paid for it.

3. When thou takest the bread into thine hands and eatest of it, then say, Lord thou art the bread of life, thou art the only redeem­er of lost Souls. I freely take thee for my Lord and Saviour, I freely consent to the Covenant I was entred into in my Baptism. Lord save me and sanctify me, O interpose thy merits this day for my pardon, and strengthen me by thy grace, that I may be faithful to thee to the end, and so may at last receive a crown of life. Lord behold the Sacrifice of thy Son. For the sake of his obe­dience and sufferings be pleased to be reconciled to me; to par­don all my transgressions, and by thy grace so to sanctify mine heart, that no sin may have dominion over me. Fill me with joy and peace in believing. If I have found favour in thine eyes, give me more and more of the graces of thy holy Spirit, and cause me to grow in grace daily, and make me fruitful in good works.

4. When thou takest the cup into thy hand, think again of the wonderful love of Christ, that he should purchase us to himself with his own blood. Oh the infinite value, O the infinite worth of this blood! This was the blood that only could make expiation and give God ful satisfaction for our offences. One drop of this blood is worth a World. This is the blood of the everlasting Covenant, Heb. 13.20. that is, whereby our Saviour ratified and confirmed the covenant which God made with fallen man; which covenant shall never be altered. O blessed Saviour wash my Soul in this thy precious blood from the guilt of all my sins, and cleanse me from all mine iniquities, and be to me all that which thou didst intend to be to those who shall be saved by thee. By such prayers, soliloquies and holy meditations thou should'st labour to Sanctifie thy heart, when thou art about receiving this holy Sacra­ment.

5. Joyn with all the rest of the Communicants in a hearty praysing God for all these glorious favours and benefits. Let thy Soul rejoyce in God and call upon all within thee to praise his ho­ly name.

6. Pray earnestly that Christs Kingdom may be propagated, and that many others may come to understand and partake of this great salvation, purchased by our Lord and Saviour. Pray that he may be more known, believed on and faithfully obeyed all the world over.

And so much of the duties to be performed in time of receiving. I come now to those required of thee after thou hast received. For it is not enough that thou duly prepare thy self for this ordinance, and carry thy self reverently at it, but thou must labour to walk suitably unto it afterwards. To that end observe these di­rections.

1. When the Ordinance is done withdraw thy self to some se­cret place, and there on thy knees bless the Lord for Jesus Christ, and for the Covenant of Grace made in him, and for adding the Sacraments as Seals of the Covenant to confirm thy faith. And further, for giving thee to be born in a land, where the glorious light of the Gospel has shone so clearly for so many years, and where thou hast such great helps and advantages for the eternal good of thy Soul.

2. Labour to keep thy heart in the fervent love of God and Jesus Christ; and with an holy delight and joy meditate often how much thou owest to God for sending his Son to be thy redeem­er, and how much thou owest to Christ for so willingly conde­scending to undertake this great work. The Apostle tells us, 1 Pet. 2.7. that to them that believe in him he is precious, yea very precious in many respects.

1. His name is precious. 'Tis as an ointment poured forth, Matth. 1.21. His name shall be called Jesus, for he shall save his people from their sins. And 1 Thes. 1. last. 'Tis Jesus who de­livereth us from the wrath to come.

2. His person is precious, being God and Man in the same person. What an high honour is it to be related to him?

3. His Offices are precious. He is Prophet, Priest and King; and he took on him all these offices for our benefit.

4. His performances are precious, both his active and passive obedience.

5. His Life is precious, which was so holy, so humble, so ex­emplary.

6. His Death is precious, being a propitiatory Sacrifice for our sins.

7. His Resurrection is precious. For God releasing him from the prison of the grave, thereby declared, he had received full satisfaction for the debt of our sins, which he as our Surety un­dertook to discharge.

8. His Ascension is precious. For he ascended into Heaven as our fore-runner, to prepare a place for us.

9. His Intercession is precious. For he ever liveth to make in­tercession for us.

10. His authority and power is precious, whereby he governs his Church, and which he will farther exercise in raising our bodies from the Grave, and in Judging the World at the last day and making our bodies (if we be his members) like his own glo­rious body.

11. His Doctrince is precious.

12. His Ordinances are precious.

13. His [...]nterest is precious to all that truly believe in him.

3. Meditate on the priviledges, promises, and comforts of the Covenant of Grace sealed by the blood of thy dear Savior. The priviledges are Justification, Sanctification, Adoption, Glorification. O how great are these priviledges! The promises are such as these, Psal. 84.11. The Lord is a Sun and shield, the Lord will give grace and glory; no good thing will he withold from them that walk uprightly. And Rom. 8.28. All things shall work together for good to them that love God. The comforts are the consolations of the Spirit here, and eternal comfort hereafter.

4. Earnestly beg and humbly expect grace from Christ to en­able thee to crucifie thy inward lusts and corruptions, especially those thou findest thy heart most pestered with. Having enter­tained Christ into thy Soul, do not unhallow it again, by suffering any evil lust to reign and rule therein.

5. Labour to walk more watchfully. Remember, the Devil will now be very busie to tempt thee to sin after this ordinance, as he did our Saviour presently after his Baptism. He will, if he can, by some worldly diversion damp and cool those heavenly af­fections that were excited in thee in time of receiving. 'Tis a dangerous thing after an heat and warmth of heavenly affections to catch cold.

6. Labour to strengthen thy purposes and resolutions of living more unto God.

Remember thou hast stronger obligations now upon thee to all Christian duties than before.

7. Often meditate on the joys of Heaven and the eternal Sup­per of the Lamb, and the blessed life which the Saints do live above, Luke 14.15. Blessed is he that shall eat bread in the Kingdom of God.

8. Labour to live in charity with thy brethren, to which thou art in an especial manner engaged by this Sacrament. Do not cover the coals of contention under the ashes for a night or two, and then blow them up again. But consider, if Christ hath so lo­ved thee, and forgiven thee so much, thou oughtest to love thine enemies and heartily forgive them. Remember what the Apostle saith, Beloved if Christ so loved us, we ought to love one another. 1 John 4.11.

Lastly. When thou art tempted to sin, remember thou hast been at a Sacrament, and there hast renewed thy Covenant with Christ; and thou must not be so base, nor so false as willingly and deliberately to sin against him again. And thus much of the duties to be performed before we come to receive, and in the time of receiving, and after we have received.

A Brief Exposition OF THE Lords Prayer.

OUR Saviour, Matth. 6.9. &c. taught his Disciples after what manner to Pray, and gave them a breviary or pattern of Prayer, which they might use in form (as seems to be intimated, Luke 11.2.) or according to which they might order and regulate their other Prayers.

In this Plat-form there are three parts.

1. The Preface, Describing God, to whom we are to pray. (1.) By his dear Relation to us; [Our Father,] therefore most ready to succour us and others, with whom or for whom we pray. (2.) By his greatness and Majesty, [which art in Heaven;] that is, who doth manifest hims [...]lf (though he be every where pre­sent) in Glory and Majesty, in, and from the highest Heavens; and therefore most able to hear and help all his children, and most justly to be reverenced, loved and trusted in by them.

2. The substance of the Prayer containing six Petitions. The three first whereof have respect to Gods Glory; the three latter to our selves and our particular good.

1. [Hallowed be thy Name;] wherein we Pray and Petition that Gods glorious Nature and Attributes, viz. his infinite Pow­er, [Page] Wisdom, Goodness, Justice, Truth, Mercy. &c. (which are discovered in his word and works and whereby he is made known as men are by their names) may be displayed and more manifest­ed to the world, that all men may acknowledge and own him for the only true God, and may glorify him accordingly.

2. [Thy Kingdom come;] that is, that his Kingly Power may be more and more manifested in the curbing and subduing of Satan and all his enemies, that his Kingdom of Grace may be advanced and promoted by his word and Spirit; that his Kingdom of Glory may be hastned, Rev. 22.20. that the happiness of his people may be full, and that Christ may resign up the Kingdom which he administers as Mediator to his Father, and God may be all in all.

3. [Thy will be done on Earth as it is in Heaven;] that is, that we and all his people on Earth may sincerely, chearfully and constantly do and submit to his holy will, as Angels and glorified Saints do in Heaven.

4. [Give us this day our daily-bread;] wherein we acknow­ledge God the Author and Giver of all our Mercies, and that we receive all from his free bounty: That we ought dayly to depend on his Fatherly care and Providence, and not to be over anxious and solicitous for to morrow, neither inordinately to desire super­fluities, but to crave and pray for such necessary and convenient things as are daily needful and requisite for the sustentation and comfort of our bodily life, and that what the Lord is pleased to give us may be by him blessed to us.

5. [And forgive us our debts, as we forgive our debtors;] where­in we acknowledg that our sins are debts, binding us over to pu­nishment, and that our selves cannot satisfie for them. We pray that in Christ these debts may be freely and fully forgiven and pardoned. We profess we ought and do (through his grace assisting us) forgive our debtors (that is, such as have done wrong to us, and thereby not only made themselves debtors to God but unto us;) that we do fully and freely forgive their wrongs and injuries done unto us, (though we are not alwayes [Page] bound to forgive the damage, See Exod. 22.1, 14.) and from thence we gather an argument to confirm our hope and perswade our selves that God will forgive us.

6. [And lead us not into temptation, but deliver us from evil;] wherein we acknowledge our proneness to evil, and weakness to withstand temptation; that God hath power over all corruptions tempters and temptations. We pray to be preserved from temptati­ons to sin or from being overcome by them, and at last to be wholly delivered from them all.

3. The Conclusion, [For thine is the Kingdom the Power and Glory for ever, Amen.] Wherein we have (1.) The Doxology, acknowledging and ascribing to God, the perpetuity of his Kingdom, Power and Glory, and encouraging our selves from thence to expect from him what we have prayed for. (2.) The sealing up the Prayer with Amen. Wherein we summarily testi­fy our fervent desire of obtaining these our Petitions and our Faith in God for the granting of them.

THE Second Part, Containing a serious Disswasive from the reigning and customary Sins of these Times, viz. • Swearing. , • Lying. , • Pride. , • Gluttony. , • Drunkenness. , • Ʋncleanness. , • Discontent. , • Covetousness. , • Malice. , and • Idleness. 

CHAP. I. Of Swearing.

THat I may proceed methodically and clearly in treating of this argument, I shall confine my discourse to these seven heads.

1. I shall shew what an Oath is.

2. Shall shew the lawfulness of taking an Oath, when duly called thereunto.

3. Shall answer the objections usually framed from Matth. 5. [Page 250] 33. &c. and Jam. 5.12. against the lawfulness of any swear­ing at all.

4. Shall shew in what manner an Oath is to be taken.

5. Shew the great sinfulness of rash, customary, and unnecessa­ry swearing.

6. Shall answer the vain pretences and excuses that customary Swearers use to make for themselves.

7. Shall give some directions and means for the avoiding of this Sin.

1. I shall shew what an Oath is.

Perkins in his Cases of Conscience, Lib. 2. Chap. 13. sayes; an Oath is a Religious and necessary confirmation of a thing doubtful, by calling God to be a witness of the truth and a revenger of falshood.

Doctor Saunderson in his first Lecture of the obligation of a Oath, §. 2. sayes, an Oath is a Religious act, in which, to confirm a thing doubtful, God is called upon as a witness.

Others from Numb. 30.2. define it to be a sacred bond by which a man binds his Soul to the speaking of that which is in it self true, or to the doing of that which is in it self lawful; unto which the living and true God is Jura­mentum est contesta­tio Dei in re gravi, tanquam veritatis testis, & mendacij vindicis. called upon as a witness or arbitrator, Judge and Avenger in case of falshood.

2. Having shewed what an Oath is, I come in the next place to prove the lawfulness of taking an Oath when duly called thereunto. And this I shall indeavor to do by these four Ar­guments.

1. That which is morall, and injoyned in one of the precepts of the Decalogue or ten commandments, binds all persons whatso­ever, and is a duty to be continued and practised (as there is oc­casion) as long as the world endures, for the glory of God and the good of our Neighbour. But to Swear by God when duly called thereunto, is a moral duy, and injoyned in the third Command­ment, therefore it is lawful to take an oath when duly called there­unto. The minor will easily be proved by that commonly received Rule of interpreting the Commandments, viz. that where in any Commandment vice is forbidden, there the contrary vertue is en­joyned and commanded. So that the taking Gods name in vain being forbidden in the third Commandment, the holy and reverent use thereof is plainly enjoyned, and such is an appeal to God as the [Page 251] Searcher of hearts, and calling upon him to be a witness of our truth and sincerity, and an avenger upon us in case of falshood.

2. What God injoyns and connects with other duties that will ever be in force, ought to be practised by all Christians; but swearing by his name is such; Ergò. For the proof of the minor See Deut. 6.13. Thou shalt fear the Lord thy God, and serve him and swear by his name. See also Deut. 10.20. where the same thing is injoyned. That which hath been the practice of the Godly without reproof, before the Law, under the Law and under the Gospel, is lawful; But swearing by the name of God, upon serious and weighty occasions, hath been the practice of all the Godly in all those times; Ergò.

1. Before the Law. See instances hereof in Abraham, Gen. 14.22, 23. And Abraham said to the King of Sodom, I have lift up mine hand unto the Lord the most high God the possessor of heaven and earth, that I will not take any thing that is thine even from a thred to a shoo-latchet. In Isaac, Gen. 26.31. And they rose up betimes in the morning and sware one to another, and Isaac sent them away, and they departed from him in peace.

In Jacob, Gen. 31.53. The God of Abraham and the God of Nahor, the God of their Father judge betwixt us. And Jacob sware by the fear of his father Isaac.

2. Ʋnder the Law. See instances hereof in the people of Israel, Joshua 9.19. But all the Princes said unto all the Congregation, we have sworn unto them by the Lord God of Israel, &c. In David, Psal. 119. verse 106. I have sworn, and I will perform it, that I will keep thy righteous judgments, 1 Sam. 24.21, 22. Swear now unto me by the Lord that thou wilt not cut off my Seed after me, and that thou wilt not destroy my name out of my Fathers house. And David sware unto Saul, and Saul went home, &c. 1 Kings 1. ver. 13, 28, 29. 30. Go and get thee in unto David, and say unto him didst not thou, my Lord, O King, swear unto thine handmaid, saying, assuredly, Solomon thy Son shall reign after me, and he shall sit upon my throne? &c. In Elijah, 1 Kings 17. verse 1 And Eli­jah the Tishbite said unto Ahab, as the Lord God of Israel liveth, before whom I stand, there shall not be rain, &c. In Micaiah, 1 Kings 22.14. And Micaiah said as the Lord liveth, what the Lord said unto me, that will I speak.

3. Under the Gospel. See instances hereof in the Apostle Paul, 2 Cor. 1.18. But as God is true, our word towards you was not yea and nay. verse 23. I call God for a record upon my Soul, &c. 2 Cor. 12.19. We speak before God in Christ, &c. Gal. 1.20. Now these things which I write unto you, behold, before God I lye not. In the Angel, Rev. 10.5.6. And the Angel which I saw stand upon the Sea, and upon the earth, lifted up his hand to Heaven, and sware by him that liveth for ever and ever, &c.

4. That which is the most effectual way to end controversies be­tween man and man in doubtful cases, and is of so great use and benefit to humane society is not to be laid aside. But such is an Oath; Ergò. The minor the Apostle confirmeth, Heb. 6.16. For men verily swear by the greater, and an Oath for confirmation is to them an end of all strife. 'Tis true there is great d f­ference in the Oaths of men. As is the person that swea­re [...]h so is the Oath, more or less cre­dible. The better and the more conscienti­ous the man the more credible is his Oath. There is no other way to end some controversies but by an appeal to God as a Judge and Avenger. In the Old Testament, in any doubtful case which could not other­wise be determined, they were to accept the Oath of the Lord, Ex­odus 22. verse 11, 12.

Seeing therefore by a lawful Oath God is glorified, being ap­pealed unto as the Supreme Judg of Heaven and Earth, the Pa­tron of truth, and avenger of falshood; seeing his Omniscience, omnipresence, truth, justice, and power is thereby acknowledged; seeing it is the ordinance of God, and a part of his worship by him­self commanded; and lastly, seeing it is the most effectual way to end Controversies between man and man; they that would have appealing to God in serious matters laid aside, are injurious both to the honour of God and the good of man.

3. I come now to answer the objections usually framed from Matth. 5.33. &c. and James 5.12. against the lawfulness of any swearing at all.

The words of those two Texts are these.

Matth. 5. verse 33. Again ye have heard that it hath been said by them of old time, thou shalt not forswear thy self, but shalt per­form unto the Lord thine Oaths. verse 34. but I say unto you, swear not all, neither by Heaven, for it is Gods throne, verse 35. nor by the Earth, for it is his footstool; neither by Jerusalem, for it is the City of the great King. verse 36. neither shalt thou swear by thy head, because thou canst not make one hair white or black, [Page 253] verse. 37. but let your communication be yea yea, nay nay, for whatsoever is more than these cometh of evil.

James 5.12. But above all things, my brethren, swear not, neither by Heaven, neither by the earth, neither by any other oath; but let your yea be yea, and your nay nay, lest ye fall into condemna­tion.

Now for the clearer understanding of these two Scriptures these two things must be premised.

1. We must take notice of that rule, which is to be observed in the sound interpretation of any Text that is difficult, viz. that no one Scripture ought to have any other sense put upon it than what will fairly agree with other Scriptures, and firmly stand with the A­nalogy of faith.

2. We must have a special regard to the condition and manners of the Jews at this time, when these precepts were given. The Nation of the Jews (as it seems) were now commonly guilty of these three things.

  • 1. Of frequent, familiar and customary swearing in their or­dinary communication, which they made light of, provided they did not swear falsly, or forswear themselves.
  • 2. They used much to swear by the creatures.
  • 3. They made a great difference of Oaths made by the crea­tures, esteeming some of them to be binding and others not.

Now the words of our Saviour and the Apostle James must be supposed to be directed against these enormities.

Which things being premised. I come to consider the words themselves.

Matth. 5. verse 33. Ye have heard that it hath been said by them of old time, thou shalt not forswear thy self, but shalt per­form unto the Lord thine Oaths.

Our Saviour having before shewed the corrupt glosses and inter­pretations which the Pharisees made on the sixth and seventh Com­mandments, he comes here to shew how they did the like on the third also. The Pharisees (it seems) taught, that if men did not for­swear themselves, they did fulfill the third Commandment, though they did swear familiarly by God, in their ordinary communicati­cation, and sometimes by the Creatures. Both these our Saviour condemns. verse 34. But I say unto you swear not at all, that [Page 254] is, in your ordinary communication, (as is plain from verse 37.) no not by God, (which upon solemn occasions is lawful, as we have shewed before) much less by the Creatures, which is alwayes un­lawful. So that these words [ [...],Non juretis omninò scil. te­merè & l [...]v [...]er. Praeceptum enim de juramento sic intelligebant Phari­saei, quod perjurium duntaxat in eo prohibeatur, interim temeraria juramenta in vita communi permitte bant.) [...] Glassius. [...] Particula omninò cum restrictione est accipienda, nimirum de juramen­to temerario, quomodo, Exod. 20.10. dicitur nulla opera Sabbaro fa­cienda esse, i. e. profana. Freid. lib. 3. pag. 12. not at all] must be understood with some limitation and restriction. As when God forbids doing any work on the Sabbath day, it is to be understood only of the ser­vile works of our callings, and not of works of necessity or mercy. So the prohibition of Christ and the Apostle in the Texts before us, are not to be expounded to exclude ne­cessary Oaths upon urgent and weighty oc­casions, [made by God] but only such as are voluntarily and of our own accord, with­out any such cogent reason. And the Nation of the Jews being very prone to this customary and unnecessary swearing, the A­postle James uses a form of vehemency and earnestness to disswade them from it, (which is often used in the Apostolical Epistles) [ [...] above all things]See Ephes. 6.16. 1 Pet. 4.8. Quae valde caveri volumus ea dicere solemus cavenda ante omnia. Grotius in loc. as if he should have said, the wicked custome of swearing being grown so rife and common among you, I do in a more especi­al manner caution you against it. And so our Saviour himself would not have them swear at all by the Creatures; neither by Heaven, for it is Gods throne, &c. nor by the Earth for it is his footstool, nor by Jerusalem, nor by their head, &c. And further, it seems the Jews thought, when they swore by the creatures, there was no solemn obligation in those Oaths (except when they swore by the creatures immediately appertaining to Gods worship and service) as by the Gold given to the Corban of the Temple, or by an oblation on the Altar, (of which we shall speak more presently;) because in other Oaths by the creatures which had no immediate reference to God, they thought they did not prophane his name, or take it in vain, which they knew was forbidden, Levit. 19.12. Ye shall not swear by my name falsly, neither shalt thou defile the name of thy God. Our Saviour shews that these were but vain pretences and excuses. For all the creatures had reference to God, and though the name of God was [Page 255] not mentioned or interposed in the forms of swearing by the creatures; yet it was implied. For Heaven is his throne; the Earth his footstool; Jerusalem his City; Man his creature, and he makes the hair of his headCaput tuum non habes in potesta­te tua, ut poss [...]s de eo agere quod velis. Grot. non potes vel ca­nos inducere, vel amovere. Light­foot. Per caput hoc juro. Virg. Aeneid. white or black, as he pleases; no man is Lord of himself. Therefore an Oath by Heaven, &c. is interpretatively by God. This being so, swear not at all (saies our Saviour) neither by Heaven nor by Earth [nor by any other Oath saith James, chap. 5. verse. 12. that is, nor by any other Oath of that kind.] As if our Saviour should have said, swear not at all by the creatures. But if you do so swear, think it not a small sin to break those oaths so made;Hic ostendit Christus omnia i [...]la, quae illi vocabant minora juramen­ta maximis esse aequiparanda. Nemo enim tam stultus censeri debet, ut rem inanimem testem advocet suae cogi­tationis, & persidiae vindicem. Quare in istis juramentis censeri de­bet inesse [...], & per Templum intelligi is cuju [...] est Tem­plum. for God is concerned in those very oaths made by his creatures, though they be un­lawful in themselves. For in such Oaths the name of God is obliquely and indirectly taken in vain, there remaining in all the creatures some prints and characters of Gods power and majesty. Swearing there­fore being an act of worship, must be used on­ly in weighty cases, and only by the name of God, Deut. 6.13. Thou shalt fear the Lord thy God, and serve him, and shalt swear by his name. The creature cannot know thy heart, nor the truth of what thou sayest, nor punish thee for thy perjury, if thou swearest falsly. Therefore no creature can be invocated in an Oath without Idolatry, Jer. 5.7. Thy children have forsaken me, and sworn by them that are no Gods. And further we are to take notice that though the Pharisees made nothing of most Oaths made by crea­tures, and thought them not binding, and consequently that they might break them without perjury; yet they excepted the Oaths made by the Gold offered to the Corban, or Treasury of the Temple,Non aurum Templi hic intelligen­dum est illud, quo micabant undi­que parietis & liquearia, sed de auro in Corbanum oblato est Sermo. and the Sacrifi­ces and Oblations offered on the Altar. Such Oaths as these (though by the creatures) they would have to be binding. And this (it seems) they did the rather maintain, because it was for their profitRevera ad quaestum pertinebat dona illa haberi quam sanctissimaetiam su­pra templum & altare, quasi Deus, scil. illis praecipue gauderet. Grot. in loc. that the gifts on the Altar, and money brought into [Page 256] the Treasury should be counted most holy. For it would incou­rage the people to be more ready to contribute and to offer. This horrid hypocrisie Pharisaei quamvis contempsisse vi­dentur juramenta per creaturas tan­quam in qu [...]bus non interponeretur no­men Dei, ut diximus cap. [...]. versu 3 [...]. excipiebant tamen juramenta per a [...] ­rum Templi, ac Sacr [...]fi [...]ia, tanquam nihil ess [...]t illis, post Deum, majus aut Sanctius, utpo [...]e quae immedi [...]te referren [...]ur ad Deum propter quae Tem­p [...]m & altare fuissent condita. Ni­mi um ut ita populus intelligens sin­gularem oblationum Sanctitatem, promptior [...]i [...]et ad illa frequentan­da, quorum pars maxima in Sacer­dotum lucrum ceder [...]t. Ita avaritia caecitatis istiu [...], & stu titiae inde secutae causa fuit. Jansenius in loc. and avarice of theirs our Saviour sharply re­proves, Matth. 23. verse 16. Wo unto you, ye blind guides, which say, whosoever shall swear by the Temple, it is no­thing, but whosoever shall swear by the gold of the Temple, he is a debtor, verse 17. Ye fools and blind; for whether is greater, the gold, or the Temple that Sanctifieth the gold? verse 18. And whosoever shall swear by the Altar, it is nothing, but whosoever sweareth by the gift that is upon it, he is guil­ty. verse 19. Ye fools, and blind, whether is greater, the gift, or the Altar that sanctifieth the gift? verse 20. Whoso therefore shall swear by the Altar, swear­eth by it and by all things thereon. verse 21. And whoso shall swear by the Temple, sweareth by it, and by him that dwelleth therein. Verse 22. And he that shall swear by Heaven, sweareth by the Throne of God, and by him that sitteth thereon. In which words he shews that Oaths made by creatures had reference to God; and though swearing by them was unlawful in it self, yet they that broke their Oaths made by any of them were highly guilty; and therefore the Pharisees did but discover their hypocrisie and wick­edness in making so great a difference in such kind of Oaths as to their binding and obligation. From all that hath been said, we may infer that those words [Swear not at all] must not be referred to the Oath it self but to the manner of the Oath, that is, we must not swear at all falsely, rashly, or in ordinary communication, neither di­rectly by the name of God, nor by the creatures. And to prevent this, our Saviour adds. Verse 37. Let your communication be yea yea, nay nay, for whatsoever is more than these cometh of evil. As if he should have said, what you have to affirmQuod affirmatis, vere affir­mate, & quod nega­tis vere negate. Rabbini dicunt, Justorum etiam est etiam & non eorum est non. Ausonius ad Paulinum. —Cum multa loquaces Ambiguis sererent verbis, contra onmia, solum Est respondebat, vel Non. affirm [Page 257] it simply without an Oath, and what you have to deny, deny it simply, without an Oath,Christianos sui temporis repre [...]endit Tertullianus, qui aut ignorantia, aut consuetudinis vitio, dicerent meher­cule, medius fidius, quod & post eum fecit Hieronymus. for customary swearing (by whatsoever it is that men swear) cometh of Satan, and the corrup­tion of their own hearts. A true and plain affirmation and negation in daily speech is sufficient; and if you use any thing more you will be in dan­ger of sinning, and falling into the judg­ment [...], i. e. [...]. Heinsius verba Christi, Mat. 5. verse 34. ad quae Jacobus sine dubio respicit, conjuncta legit, [...], &c. Unde emergit sen­sus, non quidem omninò non esse jurandum cum opus est, sed nul­lum ex j [...]randi formulis tum usitatis usurpandum. Heathenish Oaths also are not to be allowed (except they will say they personate Heathens in the use of them) as aedipol, mehercule, per Jovem immortalem. Cursed be that elegancy that is joyned with Idolatry, sayes the learned Down­ham. and condemnation of God. Fur­ther, that our Saviour speaketh here only of private Oaths it is manifest, in that the Jews did not in their publick oaths before the Magistrate swear by the creatures, but by the name of God only. And this may also be gathered out of the Text it self. For he saith, let your communication or or­dinary speech one to another be yea, yea, nay, nay.

4. I come now to shew in what manner an Oath is to be taken. The Prophet Jere­my instructs us fully as to this, Chap. 4.2. Thou shalt swear (saith he) the Lord li­veth, in truth, in judgement, and in righte­ousness.

1. In truth. That is, truly, swearing nothing but the truth, and not abusing the dreadful name of God to attest a falshood. Zech. 5.4. God severely threatens him that sweareth falsly by his name.

2. In judgment, that is, considerately, well weighing what thou art to swear, and by whom.

3. In righteousness, binding thy self to nothing but what is in it self just and right, and having a full purpose to perform what thou by oath bindest thy self to, and being careful to make it good accordingly.

Concerning the rites and forms of swearing, I find these mentioned in the Scripture.

1. Lifting up the hand to the most high God. Thus Abraham swore, Gen. 14.22. And Abraham said to the King of Sodom, I have lift up mine hand unto the Lord, the most h gh God, &c. [Page 258] And thus the Angel swore, Rev. 10.5. And the Angel which I saw stand upon the Sea, and upon the Earth, lifted up his hand to Heaven, and sware by him that liveth for ever and ever.

2. Putting the hand under the thigh. Thus Abrahams servant swore, Gen. 24.2. And Abraham said unto his eldest servant of his house, that ruled over all that he had, Put, I pray thee, thy hand un­der my thigh. And I will make thee swear by the Lord God of Hea­ven, and the God of the earth, that thou shalt not take a wife for my Son of the daughters of the Canaanites. And thus Jacob caused Joseph to swear, Gen. 47.29, 30, 31. If now I have found grace in thy sight, put, I pray thee, thy hand under my thigh and swear unto me: And he sware unto him.

Our rite of swearing for the Commons of England is by put­ting the hand on the book of the Gospels, and kissing it, which is to be understood (as I suppose) only to signifie our believing in God, and expecting help from him through Christ, according to the Gospel, as we speak the truth. Dr. Ames, lib. 2. Med. c. 10. sayes, that solemnity which in some places is used, of touching and kissing the book, is plainly of the same kind and import with the elevation of the hand; that is, it signifies a mans con­sent to swear, and to the oath it self.In Solomons time when they took an Oath, they touched the Altar, which Ceremony was also used among the Gentiles. Whereby was signified that they called him to witness who was worshipped with Sacrifices offered upon those Al­tars.

But if any scruple this rite and form of swearing and had rather use that other of lifting up the hand to the most high, I see no reason (if it may stand with the laws of the Land) but that they may be indul­ged therein; this form of swearing being every way as binding as the other.

5. I come now in the next place to shew the great evil, and sin­fulness of rash, customary and unnecessary swearing. This is a sin very rise and common in our Nation, and one of those for which the Land mourns. I shall therefore present several arguments and con­siderations which may sufficiently demonstrate the heinousness of it.

1. Consider how Sacred and Venerable the name of our great God ought alwayes to be unto us. Every thought and mention of it should be accompanied with reverence. 'Tis a duty strictly injoyned, Deut. 28.58. Thou shalt fear the glorious and dread­ful [Page 259] name of the Lord thy God. How great a sin then is it to vili­fy, prophane, and make it common? How high a provocation must it needs be to the Almighty for poor mortals familiarly to toss his dreadful name in their mouths upon every slight occasion, and to make it the ordinary expletive or filling up of their speech and language. Surely some of the more civilized Heathens were of better minds, and used the names of their gods with more reve­rence. But O the impiety of our times! How prophanely and irreverently do some (who call themselves Christians) use the name of the great God whom the Angels in Heaven continually delight to laud and praise, crying, Holy, Holy, Holy, is the Lord of Heaven, the whole earth is full of his glory, Isa. 6.3.

2. Consider that the second and third Commandments of all the rest, have several threatnings annexed to them, to shew us how greatly God is provoked by Idolatry and taking his name in vain. He threatens he will not hold such guiltless; that is, he will be so far from absolving or acquitting such transgressors that he will grievously punish them, and they shall not escape his just Judge­ment.

3. Consider our tongues should be our Glory. The proper end for which God hath given us the use of speech is to glorify and honour him our Creator, and to profit one another. Our words therefore should be good, sound, and savoury; Let no cor­rupt communication (sayes the Apostle, Eph. 4.29.) Proceed out of your mouth, but that which is good to the use of edifying, that it may minister grace to the hearers. And our Saviour tells us, Mat. 12.36. that of every idle word (which is frivolous and fruitless) we shall give an account in the day of Judgment. And therefore a much more severe account surely men shall give of their wicked swearing, blaspheming, and cursing, which are no proper works for them to imploy their tongues in, but a horrible depraving, per­verting and defiling of so excellent a member.

4. Consider what a high pitch of wickedness it is for any to de­prave such an holy institution as an Oath is, (which should always be used reverently and only upon great and serious occasions) and to prostitute it to the venting of every base passion, and uttering of Pride and Presumption and fearlesness of God, and to make that which should be a tremendous Ordinance to us, a common, slight, and familiar thing.

5. Consider how dishonourable it is to our Christian profession that those that call themselves Christians should live in such a flat contradiction to the Laws of Christ, and should make nothing of familiar and customary swearing, which he so severely prohibits Matth. 5.33. James 5.12. Is not this one of the sins for which the name of our Lord Jesus is blasphemed among Turks, Jews, and Infidels.

6. Consider this is one of those sins for which God hath a con­troversie with a Nation, and which hastens down Judgment upon it, Hos. 4.1, 2. Hear the word of the Lord ye children of Israel; For the Lord hath a controversie with the inhabitants of the Land, because there is no truth, nor mercy, nor knowledge of God in the Land. By swearing, and lying, and killing, and stealing, and com­mitting Adultery, they break out, and blood toucheth blood. Jer. 23.10. Because of swearing the Land mourneth, see also Zech. 5 1, 2, 3, 4. Amos 8.14. Zeph. 1.4, 5.

7. Consider how highly this sin is aggravated and the guilt of it inhaunced in that there is so little temptation to it. Other sins have an external bait and motive, either pleasure, profit, or credit, but in swearing and cursing there is none of these. O the unrea­sonableness of this sin! What sence is gratified by it? or what is there to incite or move a man to it but meerly pride and audaci­ousness of spirit, presumtion and fearlesness of the Almighty? Now the less temptation there is to any sin, the greater is the contempt of God in the committing of it. This sin is there­fore much worse than Epicurism; Take not his name who made thy mouth in vain: It gets thee nothing, and hath no excuse. Lust and Wine plead a pleasure, avarice gain: But the cheap swearer through his open sluce Lets his Soul run for nought, as little fearing: Were I an Epicure, I could bate swearing. The cheapest sins most dearly punish'd are; Because to shun them also is so cheap, &c. Herberts Church-porch. for though that be more besti­al; yet this is more diabolical, and proceeding from an obstinate pride and wilfulness, more con­forms a man to the Devil than other sins do. O what a height of wickedness is it for men to sin meerly because they will sin, and to transgress the more audaciously because God forbids it. 'Tis a dreadful doom passed by the mouth of the holy Prophet on such persons, Psal. 25.3. Let them be confounded that transgress with­out cause. Blessed Lord! How infinite is thy patience to bear so long with those hellish Oaths and direful imprecations that the [Page 261] tongues of wretched mortals daily belch out against thee! To what a strange pitch of wickedness is the world come, that it should be counted a point of bravery and gallantry, to swear stoutly, and to interlace their language with broad and full mouth­ed oaths. Nay the daring fellows of our dayes (as if they were loath to go to Hell the ordinary way) have invented new wayes of sinning, and such dreadful forms of swearing as may make the heart of any serious Christian to tremble at [...]e very mention of them. These Sons of Belial if they be but crossed in their busi­ness or pleasure, many times curse and swear like Devils, and swear so madly that when they are reproved for it they will swear they did not swear. Who is there now that walks abroad (espe­cially in our great Towns and Cities) but shall here these hellish oaths God damn me or sink me belched out of the mouths of men whose tongues are set on fire of Hell. O should we rend our gar­ments every time we hear the name of God blasphemed, as the Jews did of old, how few sober, serious Christians would go in whole apparel? Ah besotted Wretches, that you should thus sell your selves to do wickedly, that you that are but crawling worms should dare thus to set your mouths against Heaven, and impu­dently affront (as much as lyes in you) the Majesty of the most High? Let me speak to you in the language of the Prophet, Isay. 57.4. Do ye know against whom ye make a wide mouth and draw out the tongue? What could your wit (wit said I, I mean your madness) find no cheaper way to undo your selves? Are you resolved to try the patience of God, and to see how long he can forbear you? Are you affraid you shall miss of hell, except you sin at a higher rate than ordinary, and therefore are resolved by your damning provocations to force your entrance into it and take it by violence? Do you fear the Devil will not torment you enough, except you do supererogate of him by being more wick­ed than you had any temptation to be, that so you may have a double portion in Hell? Could you find out no other way of Dam­ning your selves but by sinning directly against that precious blood and wounds of the Son of God, by which others are saved? Do you thus perform your Baptismal Covenant, whereby you stand ingaged to renounce the Devil and all his works, and to fight faithfully under Christs Banner all your dayes? What aileth you, ye blind wretches? Are you in such hast to be with your ever­lasting [Page 262] companions, the Devils and the Damned, that you will needs hasten your Judgment, and bring on your Damnation with a swifter pace? Are you now inuring your selves to the language of Hell, and the infernal Tophet, that you may not have it to learn when you come thither? Poor Wretches, what will become of you? how soon to your sorrow will your imprecations fall on your heads? The Devil whom you have so often wished might fetch you, stands eagerly waiting for his commission to do it, and then you shall know to your cost, whether Gods threatnings denoun­ced in his word against swearers were meer scar-crows, and whe­ther Ministers made more ado than needs in their faithful and compassionate warnings of you, and whether all they were fools and cowards that feared God, and durst not sin against him at the same dreadful rate that you did. I know very well, that who­ever shall now go about to stop you in your carreer of sinning, and (though with never so much tenderness) shall labour to shew you the evil and danger of your course, shall presently (in all likelihood) have the Fanatick or hypocrite thrown in his face. But say what you will, there are none so truly mad, as those that are wicked and ungodly; nor any in the world grosser Hypocrites than they that under a Christian name live a Heathenish and Paga­nish life. And tell me (I pray you) whether you would not think that Dog to be mad that you saw flye in his Masters face that kept him? and are you then any thing short of mad men that dare thus impudently, and daringly defie your Creator? 'Tis the ob­servation of Livy the Roman Historian that when the destruction of a Person or Nation is destined, then the wholsom warnings both of God and Man are set at naught. You may go on, if you please, and despise your reprovers, but when you have done laughing at them, read these Scriptures and laugh if you can, Prov. 29.1. He that being often reproved, hardneth his neck, shall sud­denly be destroyed, and that without remedy, 1 Sam. 2.25. 'Tis said of Eli's Sons they hearkned not unto the voice of their Father, because the Lord would slay them. But O the blindness of those whom the God of this world hath blinded! These wretched sinners, as if swearing were not sufficient to sink them deep enough into Hell, and cursing also to it, which whoever frequently use, have a peculiar brand in the Scripture set upon them to be desperately wicked, Psal. 10.4, 7. The wicked through the pride of his coun­tenance [Page 263] will not seek after God: His mouth is full of cursing, &c. How ready are these desperate wretches, if they be but crossed by a servant, or a beast, in their business, or recreations, to fall a blaspheming, and cursing, wishing the plague of God, or some other dreadful evil may fall on such or such. As if every time they are angry or any thing displeaseth them, the great God of Heaven and Earth must instantly be at their beck, and in all hast come down to avenge their quarrel, and serve their malice. But the wickedness of these men is so transcendent that I shall say no more to them now but leave them to consider, when they are best at leisure, that dreadful place, Psal. 109.17, 18, 19. As he lo­ved cursing so let it come unto him: as he delighted not in blessing so let it be far from him. As he cloathed himself with cursing like as with a garment, so let it come into his bowels like water, and like oyl into his bones.

6. Having now done with the Arguments and Reasons which sufficiently demonstrate the heinousness of this sin, I come in the next place to answer these vain pretences and excuses which customary swearers use to make for themselves.

1. They are apt to plead that they have been long used to it, and have got a habit and custom of it, which now they cannot easi­ly leave. To which I answer that this is a very irrational plea. For he that is an habitual sinner is far more abominable in the sight of God than he that sins only upon a particular temptation or provocation. Would any man think this a good plea for a Thief to make at the Bar; My Lord, I have been so long used to thieving and stealing even from my youth, and am now so ac­customed to it, that I cannot leave it. Is not this a strong reason why he should not be spared, but the more speedily sent to the Gallows? And moreover the truth is, this is a very vain pretence. For those that have been long accustomed to swearing can and do ordinarily forbear it, when they are in the presence of grave and serious persons, whom they do reverence and respect. Con­fident I am, were it made High Treason against the King, as it is against the King of Heaven, profanely and customarily to swear and curse, it would be left and forborn. For the will hath a de­spotick and commanding power over the tongue as well as other mem­bers of the body, and can restrain it if it please; and therefore it is a very vain excuse for any to say they cannot leave it.

2. Some will say, they had not sworn if they had not been provoked to it. For answer to that, let such persons consider, that the provocations they speak of would be ineffectual and not prevail upon them, if their hearts were not very corrupt; For how many good and gracious persons meet with great, and perhaps greater provocations than these men meet with, who yet are never provoked to swear or curse or do any thing like unto it. If therefore there were not a naughty heart within, accustomed to sin, the outward temptation would not so prevail.

3. Some will plead, they shall not be believed except they swear. To which I answer, no wise man will believe a man the more, but rather the less for his swearing. For he that makes not con­science of one sin, in all likelihood will not of another, when he sees it is for his outward advantage to commit it. There is no rea­son to think that man will stick to lye who sticks not to swear: And if such persons who do usually swear, do indeed believe in God, why do they not obey him, who forbids them to swear. if they do not, why should we believe them, when they swear by God.

4. Some swearers will say, they mean no harm by it. For answer to that, let them consider whether any Prince in the World will allow a Subject of his to use his tongue as he pleases, to his disho­nour, and put it up, because the man sayes he means no harm by it. Much less will the King of Heaven bear with their audaci­ous profaning of his name upon pretence that thou intendest no harm. Such as a mans tongue is, such is the man. For as our Saviour saith. Matth. 12.34, 35. An evil man out of the evil treasure of his heart bringeth forth evil things, and a good man out of the good treasure of his heart bringeth forth good things: for out of the abundance of the heart the mouth speak­eth.

5. Some will say they swear but small oaths, viz. By the Vir­gin Mary or (as we usually abbreviate it) yes Marry; or by their head, or by the ligh, &c. To which I answer, that we are not to think any sin small which we willingly commit, seeing the wages of the least sin is death. And further, we are to consider that swearing (when duly called to it) is an act of worship which we ow to God, and we ought to swear by his name only; and that only in weighty cases as we have shewed before, from Deut. [Page 265] 6.13. And therefore the Prophet sharply reproves those who swear by the sin (meaning the Idol) of Samaria, Amos 8.14. And that is a terrible place, Jer. 5.7. where God sayes. How shall I pardon them for this? their Children have forsaken me, and sworn by them that are no gods. Remember therefore, that when you swear by the creatures, you are guilty of Idolatry, in com­municating that to a creature which belongs to God only, viz. omniscience, omnipresence, &c. And if you swear by the name of God ordinarily, by making it common you pollute and profane it, contrary to Gods express command, Levit. 22.32. You shall not pollute my holy name, but I will be hallowed among the Children of Israel. And so much by way of answer to the vain excuses of customary swearers.

7. I come now in the last place to give some directions and means for the avoiding of this sin.

1. Take heed of inordinate anger, and impatience which usually hurries people into a regardlesness of the duty they owe to God, and transports them into a kind of rage and phrensie, that they scarce know what they say.

2. Take heed of pride, and a vain and foolish affectation to be approved and applauded by wicked men. There are some who take a pride in swearing, and think it a piece of bravery and gallantry to rap out damnable oaths. But there is no man of rea­son or religion, that will not think them fools for so doing.

3. Take heed of greedy covetousness. For many men ou [...] of an inordinate desire of lucre and gain in their ordinary dealing, to countenance a profitable Lye, will add an oath to it. They will excessively commend the goods and commodities they are to sell, and if they find people difficult to believe them, they will not stick to swear to it, when many times they know, and possibly af­terwards will bragg how they cheated their neighbour. 'Tis true, there are some who will not swear, yet will lye; but there are but few of those who usually swear, that make any conscience of lying.

4. Take heed of earnest asseverations, and protestations such as these, as I hope to be saved; As I live, which some hold to be a formal Oath, and the Oath that God himself swears by, As I am a Christian; I protest before God; (which if seriously uttered, I make no question but is an Oath) I vow to God, &c. Remem­ber [Page 266] what our Saviour sayes, let your commuication be yea, yea, nay, nay, for what is more then this cometh of the evil one. Take heed also of such forms of words as many use, as Faith and troth, which are I suppose the abbreviations of by my faith, and by my truth. For an upright and sincere Christian should abstain from those things that are male-colorata (as one sayes) which have a great shew and appearance of evil in them, as such words as these (so used) have, and which minister occasion of scandal and of­fence to very serious and pious persons.

5. Shun the company as much as possibly you can, of customary swearers, because our corrupt nature is easily infected. As civil men living among barbarous people, quickly lose the purity of their own language, and have their speech corrupted with the barbarisms that are daily sounding in their ears; so they that live among constant swearers, are very apt (if they be not very watchful) to be infected with this vice.

6. Meditate often on the dreadful judgments which God hath threatned against such sinners, Zech. 5.3. Every one that swear­eth shall be cut off, &c. And Deut. 28.58, 59. God threatens that those that do not fear his glorious and dreadful name, he will make their plagues wonderful. Customary swearing brands the swearer with the black mark of a profane person, and exposes him to the wrath and curse of God.

7. When thou art called to take an Oath whether assertory or promissory, go about it with that deliberation, seriousness and reve­rence which is suitable to the Divine Majesty, whom thou callest to witness. Upon an Oath credit is given, because a man can go no higher than to appeal unto God; and 'tis supposed, that no man that understands himself, would knowingly and willingly draw down the wrath and displeasure of God upon himself. And there­fore some of the more civilized Heathens abhorred the sin of per­jury. One of them being importuned by his friends to take a false Oath for his advantage, told him, he would be his friend us­que ad aras and no further; meaning that no friendship should make him swear a false Oath upon the Altar for him. And if Heathens have been so conscious, how much more should those that call themselves Christians take heed of offending in this kind? And therefore in assertory Oaths they should affirm nothing but either as they know, or as they believe, and that plainly without [Page 267] equivocation or mental reservation, which frustrate the very end of an Oath, which is to give satisfaction in a doubtful matter; And who would rest satisfied with anothers Oath, if he knew it were not to be understood according to the usual signification of the words, but according to the secret meaning of the swearer, which is to him unknown? So likewise in promissory Oaths, they should be careful not to oblige themselves to any thing but what is just and fit to be done, and within their power to perform; and they should consider likewise what is the true and main intent and meaning of that they engage themselves to, and accordingly endeavour faith­fully to perform it. For ratio legis est anima legis & ratio statute est statutum, as the learned speak.

8. Pray to God earnestly to plant his fear in thy heart, and then thou wilt fear offending against him in this or any other kind. And keep a constant watch over thy tongue, and take heed of offend­ing with that member, which in many careless Christians is the in­strument of much sin and evil. A Righteous man feareth an Oath. Eccles. 9.2.

CHAP. II. Of Lying.

IN speaking of this subject, I shall proceed in this method.

1. I shall shew what a lye is, and wherein the formal nature of it consists.

2. I shall shew the several sorts, or kinds of lyes.

3. The great evil, and malignity of this sin.

4. Give some remedies, and directions against it.

For the First. A lye is a voluntary uttering of that which is against a mans knowledge and conscience, with an intent to deceive. Mendacium est voluntaria falsi enunciatio fallendi causa. Mentiri est contra mentem ire. In parabo­licis locutionibus sensus literalis est non qui per verba, sed qui per res, & facta designatur. G [...]son. Non adhibentur metaphorae, parabolae, apologi, aut aliae tropicae lo [...]uuti­ones intentione fallendi, sed docen­di majore cum venustate, & volupta­te. Damnanda est Jesuitica aequivo­catio & mentalis reservatio; & hoc ipso mendatii convincuntur, qui­bus haec in usu sunt, nimirum, quia cum veram propositionem animo concipiant, falsum tamen enuntient. Davenant. in Colos. Therefore he that speaks what he thinks does not tell a lye, though he may speak an untruth, or that which is in it self false. And in such a case what he sayes, is falsiloquium, but not men­dacium, a falshood, but not a lye. He of­fends not against moral truth or veracity, because he speaks as he thinks, and so he does not lye, but is himself mistaken. 'Tis formale mendacium a formal and direct lye, when we express or affirm a thing otherwise than we conceive, or think, with an intent to deceive.

2. I come to consider the several sorts or kinds of lyes. And so a lye is usually distinguished into

  • Jocosum.
  • Officiosum.
  • Perniciosum.

1. Jocosum, when a man uttereth a lye in sport to make others merry. To this we may apply that of the Prophet Hosea, Chap. 7. Verse 3. They make the King glad with their wickedness, and the Princes with their lyes. They that tell lyes meerly to make others laugh, are guilty of this kind of lying.

2. Officiosum, when a man tells a lye to help another out of some present danger, or inconvenience. God himself will not be served with a lye, Job 13.7. Will ye speak wickedly for God? Will ye talk deceitfully for him? We may not lye for Gods cause, or glory; much less may we do it for any mans benefit.Plato was no good casuist for Christians, who allowed a lye either to save a Citizen, or de­ceive an enemy. And the piae frau­des allowed among the Papists are also much of this nature.

3. Perniciosum, when a man tells a lye, which tends apparently to the hurt, or da­mage of another either in his life, goods, or good name.

3. I come now to shew the great evil and malignity of this sin.

1. 'Tis a sin, that makes men most unlike unto God. God is a God of truth, and cannot lye. He is stiled the Lord God of truth; Psal. 31.5. Deut. 32.4. and Isay. 65.16. That which makes men so unlike the true and holy God must needs be an odious sin. One of the Antients said well, that two things make us like unto God, [...] to speak truth and to do good. And surely this consideration, that lying is against the holy nature of God, should work in us an extreme detestation of it.

2. 'Tis a sin, that God hath declared in his word a great abhor­rence of, as may appear if you consider these following Scriptures.

Prov. 6.16, 17, 18, 19. These six things doth the Lord hate, yea, seven are an abomination to him: A proud look, a lying tongue, &c. A false witness that speaketh lyes, and him that soweth dis­cord among Brethren.

Levit. 19.11. Ye shall not lye one to another.

Prov. 13.5. A Righteous man hateth lying, &c.

Rev. 21.8. The fearful and unbelieving, and the abominable, and whore-mongers, and sorcerers, and Idolaters, and all lyars shall have their part in the Lake, which burneth with fire and brimstone.

Rev. 22.15. Without are dogs, and sorceres, &c. and whosoever loveth and maketh a lye.

Psal. 101.7. — He that telleth lyes shall not tarry in my sight.

Hose 4.1, 2. Hear the word of the Lord, ye children of Israel: for the Lord hath a controversie with the inhabitants of the Land, because there is no truth, nor mercy, nor knowledge of God in the Land: By swearing and lying, &c. they break out, and blood toucheth blood.

Zech. 8.16, 17. These are the things that ye shall do: Speak ye every man the truth to his neighbour, execute the judgement of truth and peace in your gates, &c. And let none of you imagine evil in his heart against his neighbour, and love no false Oath. For these are the things I hate, saith the Lord.

Ephes. 4.25. Wherefore putting away lying, speak every man truth to his neighbour.

Col. 3.9. Lye not one to another, seeing that ye have put off the old man with his deeds.

3. 'Tis a great perverting of that noble faculty of speech which God hath given unto man. God hath given unto man a tongue to express his mind, and to reveal and declare what he appre­hends in his heart; so that his tongue is to be the index and dis­coverer of his mind. Now you know, if the index or hand of a Clock should point to eight, and the Clock presently strike ten, we should say it was a lying Index, and greatly out of order. The case is so here, when the tongue utters one thing, and the mind thinks another.

4. Lying is a work of the Devil, and makes people resemble the Devil in a manner. John 1.44. Ye are of your Father, the Devil, and the lusts of your Father ye will do, he was a Murderer from the beginning, and abode not in the truth, because there is no truth in him. When he speaketh a lye, he speaketh of his own: for he is a lyer and the Father of it. Pride, Malice, and Lying are the Devils sins after a more especial manner. And who would be willing to be like the Devil?

5. Lying is destructive to humane society. 'Tis injurious to all converse between man and man. How shall a man know what to look for, or what to expect, or what to trust to, if he cannot believe the persons he deals with; but finds that in what they affirm to him or assure him of, or promise to him, they notoriously lye unto him, and palpably deceive him?

6. 'Tis a sin condemned by the light of natural conscience. The more ingenuous among the Heathens abhorred it. The Apostle [Page 271] quoteth a verse out of Epimenides a Heathen Poet, wherein he condemns Cretians for their frequent lying. Tit. 1.12. The Cretians are are alwayes lyars, evil beasts, slow-bellies. [...].

7. 'Tis a reproachful, a shameful sin. The maddest fellows, and most Ruffianly and debauched, who make so little conscience of other sins, yet cannot induce to be charged with a lye, because 'tis looked upon as a cowardly and shameful sin. Whoever gives them the lye provokes them beyond all patience. 'Tis the cause of many duels, and many times murders. Hear what that excel­lent person Mr. Herbert saith in his Poems.

Lye not, but let thy heart be true to God,
Thy mouth to it, thy actions to them both.
Cowards tell lyes, and those that fear the rod.
The stormy-working soul spits lyese and froth.
Dare to be true. Nothing can need a lye,
A fault, that needs it most, grows two thereby.

8. Lying easily disposeth to perjury. He that useth frequently to lye, 'tis to be feared he will not much stick at forswearing himself upon occasion. For when the heart is once hardened in one sin, it is mighty proclive to another of the like kind and nature.

9. It makes a man useless in the world. When a man is once looked upon as a person that cannot be believed, no body cares to have any thing to do with him. For he that is not true in his words, will not be thought honest in his dealings. So that having lost his good name he is incapacitated to do good, or benefit, others.

10. 'Tis a sin, that being frequently committed wonderfully hardens the heart, and fears the conscience. Therefore custo­mary lying is called the way of lying, Psal. 119.29. And they that are in that way, usually have sinned down all tenderness of conscience.

11. We should remember how it is made the note or character of a righteous man to speak the truth from his heart; and the wise man tells us, Prov. 12.22. That they that deal truly are Gods de­light, but lying lips are an abomination to the Lord.

12. Destruction is the lyars reward, Psal. 5.6. Thou shalt de­stroy them that speak leasing, &c. Rev. 21.8. Lyars shall [Page 272] have their part in the Lake which burneth with fire and brim­stone.

Prov. 19.5. He that speaketh lyes shall not escape. And so much of the third particular, the great evil and danger of this sin.

4. I come now to give some remedies, and directions against it.

1. Seeing people are so prone to this vice (through natural corruption,) let all humble themselves before God for every sin of this nature that ever they have been guilty of, in any part of their lives. Sins that we truly repent of, we are careful to keep our selves from, for the future.

2. Let us labour to keep our selves innocent. Saepe delinquenti­bus promptissimum est mentiri. Faultiness commonly causeth faultring, and sin usually putteth men upon shifts to save them­selves from blame. Take heed therefore of committing faults, and then thou wilt not need to tell a lye to help thy self. The best way to avoid lying is, to endeavour alwayes (as much as possibly we can) to be faultless, and blameless. 'Tis too too usual for Children and Servants, when they have done amiss, and are blame-worthy, to seek to hide their faults with a lye; and when they have told one lye, that that may not be discovered or found out, to back it with four or five more, and so they heinously in­crease their guilt. But they that labour to walk innocently and blamelesly need no such miserable and wretched shifts as these are.

3. Let us fear the displeasure of God more than the wrath of men. If we be affraid of mans anger for our faults, (which is but short, and transient) how should we fear the insupportable wrath and vengeance of God, which is everlasting. The one is but like a drop of scalding water falling on our flesh; the other like being thrown into a furnace of boyling metal. No mans displea­sure (how hot soever) is to be named the same day with the an­ger of the Almighty. Your Parents or Masters may be angry with you, and threaten to correct you, but God threatens to damn you; and which of these two are you most to consider?

4. Think it a less evil to take shame to thy self by confessing thy fault, than to hide it with a lye. 'Tis Pride that makes peo­ple so impatient of the hard opinion of others. And shame is [Page 273] to some persons so intolerable a suffering, that they will rather venture to displease God than man, and chose rather to tell a lye and expose themselves thereby to the wrath of God, than indure a little shame or disgrace from men. Whereas if they had a right un­derstanding, and discerning of the difference between good and evil, they would think it far the better course to take shame to themselves by confessing their faults than to hide it with a lye.

5. Labour to foresee in what particulars, and upon what occa­sions you may (in all likelihood) be most in danger of faultring, or telling a lye, and there set a stricter watch and guard upon your self, fortifying your self with the greter care and caution against this vice.

6. Labour to keep your consciences tender, that it may smite you when you are apt to warp, or start aside from your duty. And re­verence your conscience, when it checks you, and listen to it.

7. Live as in the sight and hearing of God, and walk as one that is passing on to judgment.

8. Labour to get a keen hatred and detestation of this vice. Represent it to your thoughts as a sin of an odious and shameful nature. And if you be affraid of shame, be affraid of lying which is in it self so shameful.

9. Earnestly implore the grace of God to keep you from this sin. Earnestly beg of God that you may never be left to your self at any time, or upon any occasion whatever.

10. Set a watch over the doors of your lips. Take heed of speaking hastily, or rashly, or too much. For in the multitude of words this sin is seldom wanting.

11. Take heed of a greedy, and an immoderate desire of gain. How many trading people for a small and inconsiderable advan­tage, for a two-penny or three-penny matter will not stick to tell a lye, and deceive. Hear what the Prophet Micah preached in his days. Chap. 6. v. 9, 10, 11, 12. The Lords voice cryeth unto the Ci­ty, &c. Are there yet the treasures of wickedness in the house of the wicked, and the scant measure, that is abominable? shall I count them pure with the wicked ballances, and with the bag of deceitful weights? For the rich men thereof are full of violence, and the in­habitants thereof have spoken lyes, and their tongue is deceitful in their mouth. Therefore will I make thee sick in smiting thee, in making thee desolate because of thy sins. We read in the fourth of [Page 274] Matthew, 8.9. v. that the Devil took our Saviour up into an ex­ceeding high Mountain, and shewed him all the Kingdoms of the World, and the glory of them; that is (as I suppose) pointed to him where they lay, and told him, that all these would he give him, if he would fall down, and worship him. But alass! the Devil need not bid so high for the souls of men now a-days. If he take them but into a fair, or market, or into a shop, for a small gain they will lye and serve him.

12. Take heed of envy, and malice, which often put people upon lying. When men owe such and such persons ill will, they care not what they say of them.

How sad, and corrupt were the times wherein the Prophet Je­remiah lived, who in his ninth Chapter, verse 4.5. speaks to the Jews after this manner, Take ye heed every one of his neighbour, and trust ye not in any brother; for every brother will utterly sup­plant, and every neighbour will walk with slanders, and they will deceive every one his neighbour, and will not speak the truth. They have taught their tongue to speak lyes, and weary themselves to com­mit iniquity. So the Prophet David complained in his time, Psal. 12.1, 2. Help Lord, for the Godly man ceaseth; for the faithful fail from among the children of men. They speak vanity every one with his neighbour, with flattering lips, and with a double heart do they speak.

14. Labour for a plain spirit without guile, and represent to your thoughts the amiableness thereof. Remember what is the note or character of a Godly man, Prov. 13.5. A righteous man hateth lying, but a wicked man is loathsome, and cometh to shame. Think with your self how ill you should like it, that those, whom you deal with should lye to you, or deceive you, and why should you then do so to them?

15. Learn to trust in God at all times. A man that does hum­bly repose himself on Gods Fatherly care and protection over him in the greatest dangers and straits, and is resolved that he had better stand to Gods determination and choice in all things, than to his own, what need can he apprehend he hath of a lye, or any sinful shift, even at the greatest pinch? Distrust of Gods fatherly care was Isaacks weakness at Gerar, Gen. 26.7. And the men of the place asked him of his wife; and he said she is my sister: for he feared to say she is my wife; lest the men of [Page 275] the place should kill him for Rebeckahs sake, because she was fair to look upon.

16. Think much of Gods omniscience, and that his eye is al­wayes upon you. 'Tis a weighty saying of my Lord Verulam, He that tells a lye shrinks from man, and braves it towards God. He fears the wrath of man, and so tells a lye to prevent it; but he brasens it out in the face of the Alseeing God. Gehazi feared his masters anger, and so lyed to prevent it, thinking he could not find it out; But he feared not lying in the sight of God, for which he was punished with the Leprosie, 2 Kings 5.27.

17. Remember, that those things that are got by a lye, are usual­ly imbittered with a great deal of smart and sorrow. A remark­able instance hereof we have in Jacob, who indeed got the blessing by a lye. But observe what followed hereupon. 1. His Brother Esau vowed to killGen. 27.41, [...]2, &c. him for it. 2. He was thereupon sent away from his Fathers house to his uncle Laban, who dwelt at Haran in Mesopotamia, a great way of? 3. As he had dealt deceitfully with his Father, so his uncle Laban dealt deceitfully with him, changing his wages ten times, (Gen. 31.41.) and gave him at last Leah instead of Rachel, beside all the other hardships he en­dured there for twenty years together. 4. His Mother Rebeckah, that put him upon that course of beguiling his Father, never saw her beloved Jacob more, (as far as we can discern by the story) she dying as 'tis probable, before his return. Thus we see, that they that get any thing by lying and indirect dealing, have reason to expect that they shall smart for it in the end.

18. Avoid those two great Jesuitical tricks, viz. equivocation and mental reservation. Equivocation is, when an answer is ex­pressed in such words as are ambiguous, and carry double, and con­tain more senses and significations than one, and that on purpose to deceive. Mental reservation is, when the sense is but half ex­pressed; as if a Magistrate should ask a Romish Priest, Art thou a Priest, and he should answer, I am no Priest, reserving in his mind, I am no Priest of Baal. This trick is plainly eversive of all truth in speaking. For the reply in such cases being deceitful doth not answer the question as it ought to do. But here one thing is to be interposed, viz. that Hyperboles and such figurative speeches are not lyes, but are used to express a thing more signifi­cantly; As the Land of Canaan is called in the Scripture a Land [Page 276] flowing with milk and honey, Exod. 33.3 whereby is meant on­ly that it was a very fruitful Land, abounding with all necessaries. Neither are Parables or Apologues to be accounted lyes, when by things feigned an unfeigned truth is more lively represented, as in Jothams parable. Judges 9.8. The trees went forth on a time to anoint a King over them, &c. See also 2 Kings 14.9. and 2 Sam. 12.1. Neither is it a lye, when in shew of words some false thing is uttered, but by the gesture or pronunciation of the speaker it owe may appear, that something else is intended. See 1 Kings 18.27. And it came to pass, that at noon Elijah mocked them (concerning their god Baal,) and said, cry aloud; for he is a god, either he is talking, or pursuing, or he is in a journey, or peradventure he sleepeth and must be awaked, &c.

19. Let Parents, Masters, and Superiors be careful not too ha­stily or suddenly to charge faults on their children, servants, or inferiours. For such sudden surprises put them by all due consideration, and so disorder their understandings, that many times they speak what otherwise they would not. There­fore let them give them time to consider, and let them advise them to speak the truth, though against themselves, declaring to them that if they be in a fault, an humble confession of it is the only way to obtain pardon both from God and man. Whereas a lye will double their fault, and greatly increase their guilt.

20. Lastly, let such as profess religion, and pretend to piety take heed they be not at any time found tardy as to this vice. For thereby they will bring a scandal upon their profession, and open the mouths of wicked and prophane scoffers, who are ready enough to watch for the haltings of good men, and to charge them (though unjustly) that they will lye though they will not swear. Let them therefore be very careful to be honest and true in their words, cautious in their promises, and faithful in their performances, that the name of God, and the Christian profession may not be blasphemed through them. And though they that commonly swear make no conscience of a lye; yet let it ap­pear, that theyIsay. 63.8. Surety they are my people, children that will not lye, so he was their Saviour. that fear to swear, fear to tell a lye also.

CHAP. III. Of Pride.

IN treating of this Argument I shall shew

  • 1. What is not to be accounted Pride, though it may (by some) be so esteemed.
  • 2. What Pride is, wherein the nature of it consists, and what are the signs and evidences of it.
  • 3. The great evil and malignity of it.
  • 4. Give some remedyes and directions against it.

For the First. There are some things that look like Pride (and make men censured for proud) which are not so, such as these.

1. When a man in authority, whether Magistrate or Minister, having a Spirit suitable to his place and work, and casting off all pusillanimity and irregular fear of men, and by Faith eyeing God, and designing to please him, does his duty couragiously, leaving is­sues and events to him. This is not Pride, but Christian courage and resolution, and a gracious gift of God.

2. When Magistrates, Parents, or Masters do maintain the ho­nour and decorum of their place and degree, and do keep that distance from their inferiours, which is needful for their good, and that the inferiours may pay them that reverence and respect, which is required of them. This is not to be accounted Pride, but the behaving a mans self worthily in his place.

3. When a man does prefer the commands of God before the commands of men, and is more fearful of offending God, than in­curring the displeasure of men, this is not to be accounted Pride, but a duty. The Papists, and possibly some others will call those per­sons proud and despisers of Government, who will not obey them in all their usurpations. And thus proud men call others proud, who cannot crouch and yield to them in the exercise of their Pride.

4. When a man hath a due and honest care to maintain and uphold his credit, good name and reputation, not meerly for it self; but as it may make him more useful and serviceable to God in his generation. This is not to be accounted Pride, but a duty that Christian prudence requires of him.

5. When a Minister, or private Christian does plainly and se­riously reprove an offending brother, out of a true desire of his amendment and reformation. This is not to be accounted Pride, or Pragmaticalness, but the discharge of an excellent Christian duty, which is by so much the more excellent, because it is so much neglected, and is so hard to perform in a right manner. And so much for the first particular.

2. I come now to shew what Pride is, and wherein the nature of it con [...]sts, and what are the signs and evidences of it.

In the general, Pride is an inordinate self-exalting, and overva­luing of our selves; Su [...]erbia est appeti­tus inordi­natus pro­priae excel­lentiae. Su­perbus dictu [...] est, quia super vult vide­ri quam est. and esteeming our selves to be wiser and better than indeed we are, and an eager desire, that others should so think of us, so speak of us, so treat us. And this va­nity of mind, this inordinate self-esteem manifests it self in sundry Particulars.

1. When men assume that glory and honour to themselves, which ought to be reflected and ascribed entirely to God. As Herod did, when the people applauded him, and cried, The voice of a God and not of a man. The Texts sayes, Acts 12.20. &c. The Angel of the Lord immediately smote him, because he gave not God the glory, and he was eaten up of worms.

2. When they are too highly conceited of their own wit, wis­dom, care and contrivance, and ascribe their successes unto that, and so Sacrifice to their own net, not owning, or acknowledging the spe­cial favour and providence of God therein as they ought to do. Deut. 8.13, 14, 17, 18. When thy herds and thy flocks multiply and thy silver and thy gold is multiplied, and all that thou hast is multiplied, then beware lest thy heart be lifted up, and thou for­get the Lord thy God (which brought thee out of the land of Aegypt from the house of bondage) And thou say in thine heart, my power, and the might of my hand hath gotten me this wealth. But thou shalt remember the Lord thy God; for it is he that giveth thee power to get wealth, &c.

3. When they brag, and boast, and are conceited of their own [Page 279] knowledge, worth, parts, and excellencies, and their acceptance with others Thraso-like. Illud pro­fecto mihi datum est, ut sint gra­ta, quae facio, om­nia. Thra­so in Eu­nuch. Pride often times puffs people up with a conceit of their great knowledge; whereas alas! how little do we know of what is knowable, and of what we may, and ought to know.

4. When they contemn, slight, scorn, and undervalue others, and their performances, crying up what they do themselves, but despising, and vilifying what is done by others.

5. When they are apt to be very angry and cholerick at any thing that agrees not with their own humor, and are impatient to be contradicted, be their speech right or wrong. Proud, and haughty scorner is his name, who dealeth in proud wrath, Prov. 21.24.

6. When they are apt to be contentious and quarrelsom, and that upon small matters. Only by Pride cometh contention, but with the well advised is wisdom, Prov. 13.10. He that is of a proud heart stirreth up strife, Prov. 28.25.

7. When men are headdy, self-willed, head-strong, and un­perswadable, though never so great reasons be offered them, think­ing themselves wiser than other men.

8. When they affect singularity without reason, and go in by-paths by themselves, not ordinarily trodden by others, that they may be the more taken notice of. A sober traveller that rides in the ordinary road is not so much observed as he that jumps over hedge and ditch, and rides in wayes untrodden by others. In­deed good men in evil dayes are sometimes compelled to be sin­gular (as Lot was in Sodom) but they do not affect it, could they avoid it without sin.

9. When they are censorious and uncharitable, and love to carp and find fault with others. They are not so quick-sighted to see their own failings, as the failings of others.

10. When they will not confess a fault, nor retract an error; though convinced of it, but out of pride and height of Spirit, justifie and defend it.

11. When they think diminutively and slightly of great mer­cies, and undervalue them, because they see others injoy great­er.

12. When they are apt to be discontented, to murmur, and re­pine if they have not all they desire, and if all things go not ac­cording to their wills.

13. When they are apt to fret and be impatient under the afflictions God layes upon them, not considering what greater pu­nishments their sins deserve.

14. When they envy the parts and gifts, or the imployments and places, or the credit and reputation of others, thinking them­selves diminished or lessened thereby.

15. When they are more careful about the outside than the in­side of their duties, and are more solicitous how they are liked and approved by men after a duty, than how they have approved their hearts and consciences to God in the duty.

16. When they are impatient of reproof, and of that discipline Christ hath appointed in his Church. Our Saviour Mat. 18.15. hath appointed that an offending brother should be first dealt with by private admonition. If that will not reform him, then he is to be admonished by two or three. If he do not amend upon that, then he is to be admonished more publickly by the Church. If he still continue obstinate and unreformed, then the Church is to ex­communicate him, and the members of it are to shun him as a Heathen man, or a Publican, that seeing himself looked upon (for the present) as an incorrigible person, he may be ashamed of his sin and folly. Now proud persons, of all others, are most im­patient of living under this discipline, and are apt to think it a burden insupportable (some of them have called it the burden of Issacar) that they cannot be permitted to live as they list, or that they should be barred of any of Christs Ordinances, or that any should controul them.

17. When they are excessively hard and difficult to be pleased, and are too ridged exacters of observance and respect from their inferiors.

18. When they love others not according to their true worth, but according to the measure of respect which they shew to them.

19. Proud persons are usually most injurious both in words and actions towards weak adversaries.

20. Proud persons are very resentful of any injuries either re­all or supposed done to them, and when they are wronged, they look for great submission and satisfaction.

21. Pride makes people exceeding loath to be beholding to others. Some will almost starve rather than make their wants known.

22. The Pride of the heart very often shews and manifests its self in the vanity of the garb and attire.

23. Pride many times makes people to slight the Ministers and Messengers of God, and to hear their teachers, as Judges, not as Learners.

24. Pride very often makes those in place apt to domineer over their inferiours, and to think of the dignity of their places more than of the duty they owe to God, and the people in those pla­ces.

25. Pride makes people spend profusely, for their credit, or reputations sake. But when an object of Charity calls, they are backward enough. Their estates are more at the command of their credit than at the command of God, or charity. And so much of the second Particular, namely, what pride is, and what are the signs and evidences of it. I come now to the third, viz.

3. To shew the great evil, malignity and danger of it; And this I shall represent to you in sundry particulars.

1. Consider, that Pride is a very ruining sin. It undid An­gels, 1 Tim. 3.6. and our first Parents. It overthrew the Tow­er of Babel, drowned Pharaoh, prostrated Goliah, hanged Haman, destroyed Senacharib, made Nebuchadnezzar like a beast, caused Herod to be eaten up with lice, Prov. 15.25. God threatens that He will destroy the house of the Proud.

2. 'Tis a very disquieting sin. (1.) 'Tis a great disquieter of a mans own Soul. Every little thing casts a proud man into a passion. It renders his life miserable, and puts him in the pow­er of any man to be his tormentor. A small neglect or affront disorders a proud man even almost to distraction. A remarkable instance hereof we have in Haman, Esther 3.5. (2.) It is a great disquieter of others, a great occasion of disquiet in private families, and so likewise in Parishes, it makes men very firebrands in the places where they live; It makes them full of animosity against those that cross them in any thing, and full of envy at those that are above them. And so in Church and State, none so troublesome as proud persons. Look also upon the lamentable effects of it in the world. O cursed Pride, thou child of the De­vil, how dost thou set the whole world on fire? what woful di­visions, contentions and mischiefs dost thou cause where thou prevailest.

3. Pride usually blasts parts. It blinds the mind, and makes people over confident of their own conceits. 'Tis also very frequently the high-way to Apostacy. Mark those that are proud in a Parish, or family, and if there come any infection of schism, or heresie near them, they are commonly the first that catch it.

4. Pride commonly hates fraternal admonition and reproof, and so keeps off the proper remedy, and means of amendment and re­formation.

5. 'Tis the mother of many other sins, as of revenge, oppression, and hard, and injurious dealing.

6. 'Tis a very extensive sin. 'Tis apt to shoot it self into our whole conversation, yea (which is saddest of all) to creep into our best duties. There is scarce a good action we do, but this cursed flye will be apt to get into it, and poyson it, if we take not great careS [...]p [...]rbia maxime ti­m [...]nda in recte actis. Luth. and watch our hearts very strictly.

7. 'Tis a great impediment to conversion. It obstructs saving il­lumination. A proud person is hardly convinced of the greatness of his Sins. Original s [...]n will scarce be acknowledged by him, and he thinks but slightly, and diminitively of his actual Sins; such a person is hardly brought to see the necessity of conversion, and his absolute need of a Saviour. And so much of the great evil and danger of this Sin.

4. I come now in the fourth place to give some remedies and directions against it.

1. Enter into a serious consideration of thy own vileness. E Coelo descendit Nosce te­ipsum. Consider the infirmities, weaknesses, and sicknesses of thy bo­dy, but especially the great depravedness of thy Soul. Want of due and serious consideration and descending into a mans self is the great cause of Pride. Meditate on thy manifold sins, and the deserts of them, and meditate on thy weaknesses, and miseries, and then tell me whether thou hast any cause to be proud.

2. Often meditate on the glorious nature and attributes of God; on his infinite greatness, holiness and purity, and tha is one good means to abase thee, and make thee to abhor thy self. Job 42.5, 6. I have heard of thee by the hearing of the ear, but now mine eye seeth thee; Wherefore I abhor my self, and repent in dust and ashes.

3. Consider how d declares, that he hates, abhors, and re­sists a proud person. nd he must needs fall, whom God sets [Page 283] himself against. He resists the proud, but his grace and favour is towards the lowly. Every one that is proud in heart is an abomina­tion to the Lord, Prove 16.5.

4. Look upon the great imperfection of thy graces, and thy ma­nifold failings even in thy best duties. Ex ignorantia tui venit su­perbia. Ignorance of thy self is the cause of thy Pride.

5. Look upon our humble Saviour. Nulla creatura humilior Deo, sayes Laurentius excellently. The most powerful sight in the world, for the humbling of the soul is a Crucified Saviour. What an example of humility hath he left us? His whole life was a constant Lecture of Humility. He condescended so low as to wash his Disciples feet, John 13. Non ex officio, sed ex amore, & in exemplum, as one sayes upon the place.

6. Look on the holy Angels how they humble themselves, and condescend to minister for the good of the people of God, who are so much their inferiors.

7. Look upon the examples of the most eminent Saints, and you will find they were eminent in this grace of humility. See instances hereof in Abraham, Gen. 18.27. Behold now I have taken upon me to speak to the Lord, who am but dust and ashes. In Jacob, Gen. 32.10. I am not worthy of the least of all thy mer­cies, which thou hast shewed unto thy servant, for with my staff I passed over this Jordan, and now I am become two bands. In David 1 Sam. 7.18. And David said, who am I O Lord God, and what is mine house that thou hast brought me hitherto?

8. Look upon the Devils themselves, that tempt you to be proud. See what Pride hath brought them unto. A proud man is the very image of the Devil. Pride, Malice, Hatred, and Lying are the Devils peculiar sins. And can it be pleasing to you to be like unto him?

9. Consider how God does usually leave proud persons to them­selves, at one time or other, and suffer them to fall into some sin or miscarriage, that so they may be abased and humbled. One indiscreet action of a man left to himself, may throw down the re­putation that he has by great caution and circumspection been many years in raising, and make him vile in the eyes of the world.

10. Consid. that those that are proud are usually near some dread­ful fall, or heavy judgment. God himself hath made Pride a symp­tom, or prognostick of it. Luke 14.11. Whosoever exalteth [Page 284] himself shall be abased, and he that humbleth himself shall be exal­ted; and Chap. 1.51. He hath scattered the proud in the ima­gination of their hearts. He hath put down the mighty from their seat, and exalted them of low degree.

11. Reason thy self into a loathing of this sin. Ask thy self, what art thou, what hast thou, what canst thou do that thou shouldst be proud?

1. Is it thy birth thou art proud of? If thy Parents were of great quality and of great virtue, thou oughtest to look to it that thou imitate them in their worthy behaviour, and vertuous life, else thou wilt be a dishonour to them. If they were great in this world, and vitious, thou hast no cause to boast of thy descent from them, but to take heed of treading in their steps, lest a curse be intailed upon thee from them. Besides, consider that personal merits render any man imcomparably more valuable than his rela­lation to very deserving Ancestors.

2. Is it Riches? The more thou hast, the greater will be thy account. Our Saviour tells us 'tis hard for a rich man (especially such an one as trusts in his riches) to enter into the Kingdom of God, Mark 10.23, 24. Few rich men escape the snare. Thy account and danger should rather make thee fear, than thy riches lift thee up. Or if thou hast riches, 'tis very uncertain whether thou wilt carry them to thy grave. There are many accidents that may im­poverish thee. Or if thou dost carry them to thy grave, thou canst carry them no farther, but there must leave them, and possi­bly either to a fool or a prodigal. 'Tis often seen, the faster men gripe and think to hold their wealth, the sooner they loose it, like him that gripes Callice-sand in his fist, the harder he gripes it, the faster it slips away from him.

3. Is it Power thou art proud of? So great will be the account that men in power must give, how they have improved that Talent, (whether for God, or against him) that the very thoughts of it may affright any considering, man. Thou hast need well consider how thou hast improved thy power, whether for the interest of God, and the good of the world, or only to serve thy own or other mens lusts, as too many do.

4. Is it thy learning thou art proud of? certainly the more lear­ned thou art the more humble thou oughtest to be. True know­ledge discovers the folly and pernitious tendency of Pride, and [Page 285] affords abundant matter for Humility. The heaviest, and most weighty heads of corn bow down themselves, the empty ones perk up themselves. Consider also how little thou knowest of what is knowable, and of what thou mightest, and oughtest to know. A­lass! Thy learning is but a pitiful narrow thing in respect of the amplitude of things that are to be known.

5. Is it Beauty or bodily strength thou art proud of? Alass! possibly a disease at this very moment is breeding in thee that will suddenly pull down thy strength, and deface thy beauty. And observe it who will, that strength and beauty, that raises Pride is commonly short lived. For vain-glory commonly putteth great strength upon dangerous and perilous attempts and undertakings, which usually do indanger and hurt it, if not destroy it. And that beauty which is set forth to be a temptation to lust, and dishonesty, is commonly the ruiner of its owner. That beauty is best set off which is attended with the ornament of a meek, and quiet spirit, which is in the sight of God of great price. If God hath given thee beauty, let it stir up thy gratitude, and not be a ground of pride to thee.

6. Is it Wit or good natural parts that thou art proud of? Alass! how soon may a fever or apoplexy deprive thee of thy memory, wit and understanding? Besides, observe it, wit is never sooner foiled than by Pride. Pride casteth a ridiculousness and a kind of blot upon the greatest parts. Such an one hath good parts (saith the common by-word) but he knows it too well. Pride also often times draws up into the brain, such hot cholerick vapours and fumes as disorder and discompose it. But humility and lowliness of mind is a great advantage for the improving of all our faculties. It cools and qualifies the blood and spirits, and keeps the whole man in a good frame and temper. Besides those that are conceited of their wit, do usually (at one time or other) run into some extravagancy, renders them despicable and ridicu­lous. 'Tis ten to one but their Pride will carry them into some ridiculous action, so that they will receive more reproach and cen­sure for their pride, than they received before applause for their parts? 'Tis far more desirable to be a wise man than a witty man. When therefore thou art apt to swell with Pride, at the reflexion upon thy parts, think how many there are in the world more wise and [Page 286] learned and worthy than thy self.Cum su­perbia ten­tat, cogita me [...]iores. Bernard. Think how many brave men there now are and formerly have been, who have done more for God, and for the good of the world than ever thou hast done.

7. Is it Credit, or applause, or honour, or esteem, thou art proud of? The wind is not more uncertain. Thou thinkest thou hast honour; thou deceivest thy self, thou hast it not. He hath it that gives it thee, and he may detain it from thee when he pleaseth.Honor magis est in hono­rame quam in Hono­ra [...]o. A mans credit is least in his own keeping of any thing.

8. Is it fine cloaths thou art proud of? All Pride is a very foolish thing, but that which arises from such mean things, is the most irrational of all. Alass! you must shortly change all your finery for grave-cloaths, and that vile body of yours that now you endeavour with so much art and cost to deck and adorn must short­ly be laid in the dust. Fine cloaths may make Children and young folks proud, but wise and considering persons are not usually af­fected with such things. Be cloathed with humility sayes the Apo­stle, 1 Pet. 5.5. that is the best cloathing of all.

9. Is it grace or goodness that thou art apt to be proud of? This is a thing very irrational and absurd. For predominant pride cannot consist with grace, but is a great sign of a graceless state. If thou hast grace, so far as thou art proud of it, thou dost abuse it, contradict it, and act against the very nature of it. For Pride is to grace what a consumption is to health. Be not high minded, but fear, sayes the Apostle, Rom. 11.20. When you think you stand, take heed lest you fall. 1 Cor. 10.12. And thus much of the eleventh Direction; namely, that we should reason our selves into a loathing of this sin.

12. Look on the humbling judgments of God that are abroad in the world, and turn them all as so many Cannons against thy Pride. Methinks every serious Christian should think it unreaso­nable and unsuitable in such a calamitous time as this is, when God calls to humbling and abasing our selves, and to sympathize with others that are in an afflicted condition, now to lay it out in pride and vanity and garish garbes and attire more than formerly. We have seen many humbling sights, and felt many humbling strokes, and have heard many dismal cries of our afflicted Brethren and shall we now be proud? I know the world is at that pass, that a Minister will be thought to do more wisely to save his breath than spend it upon so hopeless a design as to think by all [Page 287] his arguments to reform people in this particular. The pride of the world is now too high to be born down by Sermons or the most earnest and serious exhortations. Alas! 'Tis a monster, that has not been conquered by War, nor Plague, nor Fire. And do you think it will be born down by the breath of a poor Minister, though exhorting never so seriously. However, we must do our duty, and lift up our voice like a Trumpet, and shew Israel their sins, whether they will hear or whether they will forbear. And if I can bring but one sinner (who is concerned in this reproof) to consider his wayes, and to forsake his pride and vanity I shall not repent me of this pains.

13. Consider how God in the contrivance of mans redemption designeth the humbling of all whom he intends to save. For he hath ordained that no man shall be justified by a righteousness of his own performance, but by the satisfaction, merits, and intercessi­on of the Redeemer. Therefore he prepareth men for the recep­tion of this pardon, by humbling them and making them vile and mean in thir own eyes.

14. Read what Christ expects from them whom he intends to save, and then you will see what a great measure of humility and self-denial is required of them. Except ye become as little Chil­dren ye cannot enter into the Kindom of Heaven, Matth. 18.3.

15. Treasure up some Scripture precepts against Pride, and have them alwayes ready in your minds, such as these, he that humbleth himself shall be exalted. God resisteth the proud. Pride goeth before a fall. Every one that is proud in heart is an abomi­nation to the Lord, Prov. 16.5. A mans Pride shall bring him low, but honour shall uphold the humble in spirit, Prov. 29.23.

16. Earnestly beg of God to give you the grace of Humili­ty.

Concerning which excellent grace, that I may treat the more profitably, I shall shew,

  • 1. The Counterfeits of it.
  • 2. Wherein the true nature of it consists.
  • 3. The great benefits and advantages of it.
  • 4. The means to attain it.

For the First, The counterfeits of it. There are four things that carry a shew of humility, but are at a great distance from it.

1. When men vilifie and discommend themselves, or their own performances, on purpose to draw others to praise them. He that doth so, cozens himself into Pride by a shew of Humility. A man would be ashamed if he were told, he used that mean stra­tagem to procure his own praise. But so glorious a thing is hu­mility, that pride to hide its own shame, does sometimes put on the vizor and semblance of it.

2. When men effect to wear some unusual habit, or some mean and sordid cloaths, or to use some clownish, unhandsome, and uncivil behaviour, which may make them taken notice of, and observed by others. This may look like Humility, but is far from it. There may be a russet Pride, and a leathern Insolency. 'Tis not alwayes couched under silk and sattin. Many times there is a very ugly pride under mean cloaths. The Capuchins among the Papists go in poor cloaths with naked legs, and Sandals. Who hath requi­red these things of them? I think the Apostles rule is here to be observed, whatsoever things are honest, pure, lovely, and of good re­port and praise-worthy among men, Phil. 4.8. These we should follow and not affect a vain signularity not warranted by the word of God.

3. When they choose to converse for the most part with their inferiours, that they may bear sway, and be the chiefest among them, this is no argument of Humility but rather of Pride.

4. When men live basely, meanly, in no degree answerable, or according to the estate and condition God hath put them in­to; this is not humility, but an argument of a covetous and sordid spirit. And so much of the counterfeits of humility.

2. I come now to shew wherein the true nature of Humility consists, and in what particulars it evidenceth it self. In the ge­neral. True Humility is a lowly frame and temper of Soul arising from wise, serious, and deliberate consideration. 'Tis principally rooted in the mind, and evidenceth it self in these Particulars.

1. The Soul that is truly humble is deeply sensible of its mani­fold weaknesses, wants, and imperfections. 'Tis sensible of the darkness of its mind, the depravedness of its will, the disorder and irregularity of its affections.Humilitas est animi demissio or­ta ex vera status & conditionis suae agnition [...]. Camer.

2. 'Tis very sensible of its great sinfulness and manifold transgressions against God. O (sayes such a Soul) who have I in the [Page 289] whole course of my life too much neglected my Creator (who gave me my life and being) and in many things how grievously have I sinned against him? And the wages of every sin being death, how obnoxious and liable have I made my self to the wrath and curse of God? What a mercy is it that I am out of Hell, who have so many wayes broken the holy and righteous Law of God?

3. As a consequent hereupon, 'tis very sensible of its great un­worthiness of those mercies it enjoyes from God. The humble soul sayes, as good old Jacob did, Gen. 32.10. I am not worthy of the least of all thy mercies, which thou hast shewed to thy Ser­vant.

4. The humble Soul is filled with an high admiring, and affectio­nate gratitude to God, as the free giver of all the mercies it en­joys. 'Tis very thankful for temporals, but much more for spiri­tuals; and owns all to the free bounty and goodness of God. The humble Soul is a great admirer of free grace, and highly prizes our Lord Jesus Christ, and his great undertaking for the redemp­tion of Mankind.

5. The humble Soul is patient under afflictions, and clears God of any hard dealing in his proceedings against him. He charges not Good foolishly, how sharp soever his afflictions be.

6. The humble person is patient under the neglects and disre­spects he meets with from men. 'Tis not for me (saith the hum­ble Soul) to expect or look for respect and esteem in the World. 'Tis enough for me if among those few good men I am acquaint­ed with, I find a tolerable kind acceptance.

7. An humble person doth carefully watch over his thoughts, words and actions, lest Pride or vain-glory should steal in upon him, and especially he fears lest he should be puffed up on the account of those actions, that meet with some applause and acceptance in the world. A man should alwayes endeavour to do things that deserve honour and esteem, but then he should not assume the glo­ry of them to himself. If he do any thing tending to the ho­nour of God, and the good of the world, he is very glad of it, and heartily thankful to God for inabling him to do it. But he gives God intirely the glory of it.

8. The humble Soul hath a charitable opinion of others, which he is the more induced to upon consideration of his own weak­nesses, [Page 290] and manifold failings. Where there is the greatest humi­lity, commonly there is the greatest charity, but where there is the highest Pride, there usually is the greatest censoriousness and un­charitableness.

9. An humble person strictly animadverts upon, and observes his failings and defects in the good duties he performs. He takes notice of the deadness, coldness, formality, and the degrees of vain-glory, that are apt to creep in upon him in the performance of them; and all these are matter of humiliation to him. And thus much of the nature of humility, and the particulars wherein it evidenceth it self.

3. I come now in the next place to shew the fruits, benefits and advantages of this eminent grace.

1. The humble man obtains grace, favour, and a blessing from God. He gives grace, that is, he manifests his grace and favour to the humble. The humble man doth not usurp the glory due to his Creator, nor intercept the Tribute which ought to be paid to God, but payes it willingly to the right owner. And God hath declared, that those that honour him, he will honour. The favour of God is alwayes accompanied with bounty, and beneficence. But his Favour is not to be measured by his heaping temp [...]ral things on us, but by his blessing us with Soul-mercies and spiri­tual blessings which have a reference to the life that is to come.

2. The humble soul shall be sure of Gods direction, Psal. 25.9. He shall be guided (first) in the right way to Heaven, which those that are wise in their own eyes many times miserably err from. What did many of those that were knowing and learned among the Jews and Gentiles (being full of their own wisdom and learning) account of the Gospel? That which was in it self the wisest and most profound contrivance that ever was in the world, and most efficacious instrument of mans conversion and salvation seem­ed to these men of wisdom meer foolishness. (2.) But it was the power of God unto Salvation, Rom. 1.16. to all those that were brought thereby to believe in our Lord Jesus. 2. The humble person God will guide in his worldly affairs and business, whereas proud men (who usually lean on their own understanding, and dis­dain all counsel but what suiteth with their own wisdom) very frequently miscarry. Let us call our own experience to witness, whether when (in a deep sense of our own weakness, and di­strusting [Page 291] our own ability and wisdom to grapple with the difficul­ties we were to meet with) we have humbly implored the divine directions, and guidance, and have committed our selves thereto, I say, let us consider whether we have not found God helping of us, and casting our affairs better for us than we could have imagined or contrived our selves.

3. An humble person is usually well thought of and spoken of by all that know him, whereas a proud man is the mark of common obloquy. If a man be proud, almost every body is ready to pull him down. Nay, they that are proud themselves are rea­dy enough to pull down others that are proud. But the humble almost every body is willing to lift up.

4. Not one dispensation of God will pass without doing us some good, if we be humble. Prosperity will better us, and adversity will better us. All winds will drive us on towards the haven of eternal happiness, if we be truly humble.

5. Humility keeps the soul in great tranquillity. The passion of pride and haughtiness how it vexes and disquiets the minds of men? but humility makes the Soul very submissive to the will of God; shall not I submit (sayes the humble soul) to the will of my heavenly father, whose will I pray daily may be fulfilled. The cup that my heavenly Father giveth me to drink, shall not I drink it? What am I that I should not be crossed or reproached? It is but what I deserve, nay much less than I deserve by reason of my sins. My present condition is not so troublesome or painful or uneasie but I deserve much more. And shall not I be patient and content and submit to my Soveraign Lord (to his wisdom as well as to his will) who orders all things for the good of them that love and fear him? And so much of the third particular, the benefits and advantages of humility.

4. I come now in the last place to prescribe some means for the attaining of it.

1. Consider how highly God values and prizes this temper. He dwells in the highest heavens, and in the lowest hearts, Isa. 66.2. Isa. 57.15. The ornament of a meek and quiet spirit is in his sight of great price, 1 Pet. 3.4. And Mic. 6.18. sayes the Prophet, He hath shewed thee O man what is good and what the Lord requires of thee, namely to do justly and to love mercy and to walk humbly with thy God. God takes no pleasure in us, till he hath [Page 292] brought us to this frame and temper.Descen­dendo coe­lum ascen­ditur. Cassi­odor. Nothing makes us so precious in Gods sight as Humility. We are most precious in Gods eyes, when we are most vile in our own. An humble and a contrite spirit is more valued by him than all burnt-offer­ings and sacrifices.

2. Consider the various means that God uses to work this so necessary a grace in the hearts of his own people. Sometimes he visits them with afflictions, sometimes with temptations, 2 Cor. 12.7. nay, sometimes he suffers them to fall into sin, and all to humble them. Expedit superbo ut incidat in peccatum as he said of old. And if God so much desires we should be humble, shall not we com­ply with his will therein?

3. Con. how our blessed Lord and Saviour recommended humi­lity to the World. (1.) By his precepts, Mat. 11.28. (2.) By his example, John 13. He washed his Disciples feet, And John 6.15. When they went about to make him a King, he utterly refu­sed it. There is not any one vertue that he commandeth and commendeth more than humility, nor any one vice that he sets himself more against than pride. In his Beatitudes, Matth. 5. Po­verty of spirit hath the first promise, and meekness and humility the third. And if we look through his whole life, we shall find there is not any one grace he did more signally exercise, or by his example more commend to the imitation of Christians than Hu­mility. Let the same mind therefore be in us that was in Christ Jesus, as the Apostle exhorts us, Phil. 2.5.

4. Earnestly pray to God to help thee in the humbling of thy heart, pour out thy soul to the Lord in some such petitions as these. Lord take from me (I pray thee) all vanity and foolish complacency in my own person or actions, and help me to reflect all gl [...]ry to thy self, suffering nothing to adhere to mine own heart, but a sence of my imperfections and thankfulness to thee for all thy free and undeserved mercies. Lord keep me from sin, folly, and inde­cencies, and then inable me to receive all lessenings and diminutions ro m men patiently and contentedly.

5. Converse often with humble and afflicted persons, that so thy heart may be affected with their condition, and that thou mayest sympathize with them in their sorrows and sufferings.

6. Consider what a great influence humility hath into many other graces. Repentance, Faith, Love to God and man are [Page 293] much quickned and enlivened by humility. None more truly peni­tent, none more joyfully and thankfully repose and rely on the great satisfaction of Christ, none have their hearts more inflamed with love to God and man than humble persons. Lord what am I (saith the humble Soul) that ever thou shouldst place thy love on one so unworthy? What am I or what is my fathers house, that thou shouldst deal so bountifully with me?

7. Meditate often on thy own failings and weaknesses, and reflect on the worst things in thee, that so thou mayest be abased, and not only on the best to puff thee up. The Pharisee in Luke 18. cried out, I thank thee O Lord, I am not as other men are, an extortio­ner, unjust, an adulterer, or as this Publican; but the poor Publi­can cried out Lord be merciful to me a sinner.

8. Meditate on thy own death, and celebrate thy own Funeral in thy serious thoughts and meditations. Methinks some serious thoughts of death and the grave should be able to pull down the pride and plumes of the vainest spirit.

CHAP. IV. Of Gluttony.

IN handling of this subject, I shall proceed in this Me­thod.

  • 1. I shall shew what Gluttony is.
  • 2. I shall inquire into the causes of it.
  • 3. Shall shew the great evil and danger of it.
  • 4. Shall propound some helps and remedies against it.

For the First. I shall first shew in the general what gluttony is, and then come to speak more particularly of it.

Gluttony may be thus described. It is a voluntary excess in eating for the meer pleasing of the appetite or some other carnal end. But here I must interpose three cautions.

1. The same quantity may be an excess in one that is not in another. A strong and labouring man may eat a great deal more than a student or a man of a sedentary life. Therefore the excess is not to be estimated by the quantity eaten, but by the condition of the person eating. Ordinarily, that is to be called and account­ed excess, when a man to please his appetite, eateth more than is profitable and convenient for his health, or to help him on in his duty. And here that excellent rule of Aristotle is to be observed, who maketh vertue to consist in the mean, or measure, and that distance from the extremes which the prudence of a prudent man determines. Virtus consistit in ea medio­critate quam vir prudens de­fini verit. And so in this case, the prudence of every particu­lar man must determine for him what must be his measure as to eating.

2. 'Tis not all delight in meat, or pleasing the appetite, that is a sin, but only that which is made a mans ultimate end, and is not referred to an higher end. When the delight it self is not di­rected to health and more alacrity in our duty towards God, and in serving of him.

3. A difference as to diet ought to be allowed to persons and to times. (1.) To persons. Some persons may have better diet, and more costly than others. The same diet that is fit for one man is not fit for another. A great man may have those sorts of meats, which would be unfit (ordinarily) and too chargeable for a poor man. (2.) To times. Times of Thanksgiving and rejoycing may be allowed a more liberal provision, and large exceedings, than is convenient at other times. As we see our Saviour at a Wedding in Cana in Galilee turned water into wine, that the guests on such a day of chearfulness and rejoycing, might have a more plen­tiful provision. Yet temperance is then also to be observed, excess being never allowable, but alwayes to be avoided. Having thus spo­ken of Gluttony in the general, I come now to shew more particularly wherein it consists?

1. 'Tis sometimes an excess in quantity, when more is eaten than is meet and fit, or than the stomach can well carry off or digest. And so by imperfect concoction abundance of crudities and vitious hu­mors are bred, which prepare and dispose the body to sicknesses.

2. Sometimes in quality, when the meats that are eaten are too young, or too delicate and costly, and when there is too great a curiosity in dressing and saucing of them, or when such meats are delighted in, which are apt and proper to excite and pamper lust and wantonness, or when they are such as are intended to re­vive the appetite after it is well satisfied, and needs no more.

3. Sometimes in the manner of eating. As (1.) When men eat too eagerly and with too much greediness, and too voracious an appetite. (2.) When they eat too often and too soon, before their former meal is digested, not allowing nature sufficient time of concoction. And so much of the nature of Gluttony.

2. I come now to inquire into the causes of it. There are seve­ral causes of it.

1. An inordinate appetite, and a mind too much set upon Flesh-pleasing. They that are after the flesh do mind the the things of the flesh, sayes the Apostle, Rom. 8.5. There are some who too much delight in eating and feeding, making their belly their God, like Philoxenus who wished he had the neck of a Crane that he might have the longer delight in swallowing, and tasting his meat and drink. These people should remember, that the flesh is one of the enemies they are engaged by their baptism to fight [Page 296] against, and therefore should not pamper it unto wantonness.

2. Want of due understanding what is truly conducing to health, and to the furthering of us in our duty towards God and man. A decaying body ought carefully to be supported, but an unruly bo­dy ought carefully to be subdued. And they that do not duly consider their own constitution and what is the duty incumbent up­on them in reference to their particular Temper and the state of their bodies, will be apt to erre in this matter.

3. Making appetite the rule and measure of our eating and drink­ing, whereas appetite was given to us to make that grateful to us which reason bids us to eat, and not to be our measure. Many a mans appetite is stronger than his concoction, and many healthful people have an appetite to more than they ought to eat, or than nature can well digest. We see in Swine and many greedy Chil­dren, that they would many times even kill themselves with eating, if they had not the reason of others to govern them. Appetite therefore is not to be our rule either for quantity or quality of meats, but reason in this (as in other things) is to be our guide and governor. When reason hath nothing against it, then appe­tite sheweth what is most agreeable to nature and what the Sto­mach is like best to close with and digest. But God hath given us reason as well as appetite, and though (as the common saying is)Venter non habet aures. the belly and the appetite hath no ears, yet reason should make them hear, yea and obey too.

4. The exceeding deliciousness and pleasantness of some meats tempts the appetite to desire more than nature requires. So the quality oftentimes tempts and invites to an excess in quantity.

5. The evil custom of urging and importuning others to eat more than they have a desire unto. This is many times a great cause of Gluttony. We are all more prone to exceed than to fall short, and we need no incitation to eat, our own appetite is apt to incite us too much. But many people think it a piece of civility to urge, importune, and almost force their friends to eat, though they will not urge them, in the like kind to drink more than they have a mind unto. And so much of the causes of Gluttony.

3. I come now to the third thing I propounded to speak to, namely, the great evil and danger of this sin. And this I shall shew in sundry particulars.

1. 'Tis a great enemy to the Body. Plures gulaQuicquid avium volitat, quicquid pis [...]ium natat, quicquid ferarum dis­currit, nostris sepelitur ventribus. Sen. quam gladius. The throat hath kil­led more than the sword. Many men dig their graves with their teeth, and dye because they put not the knife to the throat. Prov. 23.1. Pone cu [...]trum i. e. modum adhibe gulae tuae, eam­que velut cultro gutturi infixo, refrae­na. Menech. How hard soever it hath gone with some people in the World at some particular times, yet more have been killed by their own Gluttony than ever were starved to death through want. It may well be supposed that a little more than half the quantity of meat and drink which many people take, would afford them as lasting and as healthful a state of body as the over measure they ordinarily use. Intemperate men are Valetudinis suae proditores (as he said) betrayers of their own health. For Gluttony though it kills not suddenly, yet it doth it surely and certainly like the Dropsie, of which 'tis said, it killeth as it filleth, that is, by degrees and in­sensibly. Gluttony fills the body with crudities which are the root of most sicknesses. There are few diseases but are the effects of Glut­tony, or excess in drinking; 'tis excess that commonly breeds them, and layes the matter and foundation of them. And if this were well understood, I wonder that wicked men if they do not believe a life to come, yet should not be affraid of shortning this their pre­sent life by their intemperance.

2. 'Tis a great enemy to the mind, and to all the exercises, operations and imployments of it, both religious and civil. It makes men heavy, drousie, dull and shathfull. The body ought to be the instrument of the Soul in the service of God. But Glut­tony makes it a clog to the Soul, and exceedingly indisposes it for the duties we owe either to God or man.

3. Gluttony is a great symptom of a carnal mind, and a carnal mind is enmity against God, as the Apostle tells us, Rom. 8.7. And that which opposes God is sure to be destroy'd. And the spirit of God further assures us (at the thirteenth verse of that Chapter, that they that live after the flesh shall dye, and that not only a temporal death, (but except they be converted) an eternal death also.

4. It breeds lust and furthers the power of concupiscence. As dunging the ground makes it fruitful, especially in weeds, so Glut­tony fills the mind with the weeds of filthy thoughts, filthy desires and inclinations, and thence come filthy words, and filthy actions. [Page 298] He therefore that feeds his body high, does plainly and evidently pamper his enemy, but he that beats down his body and keeps it in subjection, as the Apostle speaks, 2 Cor. 9.27. by fasting and ab­stinence, takes a right course to mortifie the lusts of the Flesh.

5. 'Tis a shameful abuse of Gods good creatures which are given us for our use. Would you not think those men exceeding blame­worthy, who should take good and wholsome meat and throw it in­to the channel or sink, Gluttons by their great excess do that which is much worse. For they not only abuse Gods good creatures by their ex [...]ess and riot, but they thereby hurt their own bodies also.

6. 'Tis a most ungrateful sin. It carries Gods good provisions over to his enemy, even to the strengthning of fleshly lusts, and turneth them all against the giver of them. Is it not a horrible disingenuous thing so to provoke and dishonour God with his own mercies? Pride, Idleness, fullness of Bread, and hard-heartedness to the poor were the provoking sins of Sodom, Ezek. 16 49.

7. 'Tis a kind of idolatry to mind the belly inordinately. The Apostle tells us of some, Phil. 3.19. whose belly was their God. And such persons worship a craving God that will not let them alone except they serve him.

8. A gluttonous appetite maketh our very table become a snare to us, Deut. 6.11, 12. When thou hast eaten and art full, then beware lest thou forget thy God. How apt are people at a full table to offend with their teeth yea and with their tongues also. The table of a Glutton is usually a snare not only to his body but to his soul.

9. 'Tis a time-wasting sin. Long sitting at meals and feasts how much precious time doth it devour, which should be better imployed?

10. 'Tis a costly expensive sin. It overthrows and wasts many a mans estate. How great a part of the riches of many King­doms are spent in riot, excess and luxury. God threatens, Prov. 23.20. That the glutton shall come to poverty: And so it very frequently happens.

11. It hinders mercy and liberality and relief of the poor. For frugality is the purse-bearer to Charity. The Prodigal House-keep­er is not usually the most charitable to the poor. True and pru­de [...]t hospitality is one thing, and prodigal house-keeping is another. They that spend so much upon their own bellies, seldom are so cha­ritable to the poor as they might and ought to be.

12. Gluttony is alwayes a great crime, but much more heinous in times of publick calamity, and when the people of God are under great afflictions. See what God sayes by the Prophet, Amos 6.1, 4, 5, 6. Wo to them that are at ease in Zion, who lye upon beds of Ivory, and stretch themselves upon their couches, and eat the Lambs out of the Flock and Calves out of the stall. That chaunt to the sound of the viol, and invent to themselves instruments of musick; that drink wine in bowls, and anoint themselves with the chief oyntments, but they are not grieved for the affliction of Jo­seph. Observe also what God saith by the Prophet Isaias, Chap. 22. Verse 12.13, 14, And in that day did the Lord God of Hosts call to weeping and to mourning and to baldness and to girding with sack-cloath, and behold joy and gladness, slaying Oxen and killing Sheep, eating flesh and drinking wine, (let us eat and drink, for to morrow we shall dye;) And it was revealed in mine ears by the Lord of Hosts, surely this iniquity shall not be purged from you till ye dy [...], saith the Lord.

Lastly. The greatness of this sin may appear in this, that it is so often and so frequently committed. Gods own people I suppose are not often tempted and overcome by drunkenness or uncleanness, but let them take heed of Gluttony. For this sin is apt to steal upon people before they are aware. 'Tis a sin that is apt to in­corporate it felf with our appetite and desire of eating for the pre­servation of our health. Our corrupt nature is as prone to ex­cess in this kind as any other, and therefore we had need be the more watchful against it. And so much of the great evil and dan­ger of this Sin.

4. I come now in the last place to prescribe some, helps and reme­dies against it.

1. Look upon all your food as given you by God. Receive it as from his hand, and beg his blessing upon it. And remember the Apostles rule, whether ye eat or drink or whatever you do, do all to the glory of God. And if you have Gods glory in your eye, it will be a great means to keep you from intemperance in this kind.

2. Labour to mortifie and subdue the irregular inclinations and desires of the flesh. What a horrible thing is it that a mans heart should be set upon the pleasing of his belly? They that are true Christians ought to crucifie the flesh with its affections and lusts.

3. Remember how the first sin came into the World by eating. O sin not as our first Parents did by an inordinate pleasing of your appetite.

4. Check your appetite and resolve, that shall not be satisfied to the full. Be affraid of sinful excess. The Apostle speaks of some, Jude verse. 12. that did eat without fear. A man that would be temperate in this kind, must be watchful over himself, and must exercise some authority over his appetite. For the bel­ly is a Brute that commonly hath its ears stopt to Scripture or rea­son.

5. Use all sensual delights in subserviency unto as means to their right end, namely, to make you more thankful, more fit, and more chearful in the service of God.

6. Labour to understand well what is most conducing to your health, and let that be the ordinary rule and measure of your diet both for quantity and quality. Man in endued with reason as well as appetite; and reason, if we will listen to it, will tell us that our health is more to be regarded than our appetite. God alloweth us that which is most for our health, and forbiddeth us nothing but that which will hurt us. God would have us temperate, that a healthful body may be serviceable to our Souls in our Masters work. The common rule that most people do go by in cating is their appetite. They think they must eat as they have appetite, and if they could eat more with an appetite and not be sick after it, they think they have not been guilty of Gluttony and excess. Mr. Baxter (who is not only a learned Divine but a skilful Phy­sitian also) writing about this sin of Gluttony and the frequency of it [in his cases of conscience pag. 378.] Conjectures that most sorts of people do usually offend herein, and that particularly labouring people do ordinarily eat near a fourth part more than they need; that Shop-keepers, and persons of easier Trades near a third part; that voluptuous Gentlemen and their attendants do often exceed near half; and that the children of such Parents as govern not their appetites (but let them eat and drink as often and as much as they will) do usually exceed above half, and thereby lay the foundation of the miseries and diseases of their whole life after. And therefore he judges that children should be taught betimes some common and necessary precepts about their diet, and what tends to health and prolonging their life, and what to sickness and [Page 301] death; and that these principles should be instilled into them with other moral precepts, in the books that they first learn. For 'tis certain that none love sickness and death, but all love health and life. And therefore those whom the fear of God doth not restrain from this kind of excess, may possibly be restrained from it through the fear of sickness and death. But alass! few grown people, much less children, have any considerable knowledge what measure is best for them to use, but the common though deceitful rule they go by, is their appetite.

7. Sit not too long at meals. For by that means people are tempted to eat a little and a little more, and so at last they fall into excess.

8. Do not over perswade and importune others to eat more than they have a mind to, notwithstanding it is counted so great a piece of civility so to do. We think them highly culpable who urge people to drink more than is fit for them, why then should we tempt people to eat more than they judge conducing to their health?

9. Look upon the practice of the ancient Christians, those great patterns of Abstinence. They were much in fasting and prayer, and strangers to Gluttony and excess. Nay among the Heathens themselves we may find some great examples of tempe­rance in this kind. We read of the Platonick Suppers that were frugal and learned. They cared not so much to fill the bellies as the minds of their Guests. Their meat was good and sufficient but their discourse better. We read also what Socrates said to his friends at his moderate Supper, If ye be vertuous this will suf­fice? If ye be not, ye are not worthy of this? And we read of some famous men of old who to divert and keep them from in­temperance in this kind, used to have some good Book read to them at their Tables, that minding what was read might make them less mind their appetite. This is reported particularly of Pomponius At­ticus, and Carolus Magnus, and this custome came afterwards in­to Colledges and Religious houses, and is observed in some of them at this day.

10. Go sometime into the houses of the Poor, and see what mean sare and provisions they live upon. The very sight of a poor mans diet now and then, methinks (in all likelihood) should do a voluptuous Glutton good. Seeing affecteth more than hear-say.

11. Yet after all that hath been said, take heed of running in­to the contrary extream, place not more Religion in external ab­stinence and fastings than you ought to do. Do not think that abstaining from flesh on such and such dayes, and glutting your selves with fish or other delightful meats is pleasing to God or ac­ceptable in his sight. Neither think that abstinence from meats will prove you holy without abstinence from sin. Where hath God required of you that you must eat no Flesh for forty dayes together at one time of the year, or for two or three dayes in a week? God hath indeed injoyned us temperance at all times. And every one should duly consider his own constitution and temper, and how far either eating or fasting may be a help and furtherance to him in his duty towards God, and so (without raising per­plexing scruples to himself) make use of them accordingly.

CHAP. V. Of Drunkenness.

IN treating of this subject, I shall proceed in this method.

1. I shall shew what is to be esteemed Drunkenness.

2. What are the causes of it.

3. The heinousness of this sin.

4. Shall answer the vain excuses that persons addicted to this vice do usually make for themselves,

5. Shall give some remedies and directions against it.

For the First. What is to be esteemed Drunkenness.

Drunkenness is a voluptuous excess in drink to the depravati­on of reason. Drunkenness and Gluttony are sins much of the same nature, only there is this difference. The understanding usually is more hurt and the reason more disturbed by excess in drink than by excess in meat. Drunkenness doth usually more brutifie a man, and make him more like a beast, than excess in eating doth, and so is a more scandalous sin. And therefore humane Laws have provided a penalty against Drunkenness, but not against Gluttony. Now Drunkenness in the largest sence ex­tendeth both to the affection and to the effect. He is a Drunkard reputatively and in the sight of God; who would drink to excess if he had it, and would lie at the Ale-house or Tavern, and drink as others do, but cannot by reason of his want of money; so that he is not restrained by his will,Volun­tas est ho­mo, nihil a­liud sumus nisi volun­tates. Au­gust. but by his necessity. And further, you must observe that 'tis not only the highest degree of drunkenness that is to be called by that name, but lower degrees of it also that disturb and disorder the reason and understanding of a man, may justly so be called. There are several degrees of drun­kenness short of the highest. They that drink beyond what nature or moderate refreshment require, and spend whole dayes, or a great [Page 304] part of them at Taverns or Ale-houses at that vile exercise of drinking, though they do not drink themselves drunk and can bear it and carry it away better than others, yet they are very culpable in the sight of God. Some men that can bear much drink without intoxication may be more guilty (in the sight of God) of excess than others, who by a small quantity upon a sur­prize are drunk before they are aware. He that hath by drinking disturbed his reason, and disabled and hindred it from the perfor­mance of its proper work and office, is drunken in some degree; But he that hath quite disabled it, is stark drunk. I know it will here be said that a glass of wine or strong beer moderately taken is many times very useful to give a man an assistant alacrity in his work and duty, and the service God requires of him. No doubt a man may lawfully add the refocillation, refreshment and alacrity to his Spirits which maketh him more ready and chearful in the duties of his general or particular calling. But the excess is that which we here speak against, as that which is alwayes to be avoided And so much of the first particular what drunkenness is.

2. We come now to inquire into the causes of drunkenness. And we shall find there are many causes of it.

1. An inordinate love unto and an eager appetite after drink, which some have brought themselves unto by their deboshes and excesses. These persons have so much of the brute in them, and so little of the man, that their appetite is quite too hard for their reason. They will tell you (possibly) that they know they should abstain, but they cannot; and why can they not, namely, for want of a resolved will. And thus going on in this wicked course, their immoderate appetite to drink draws them to drink till they are drunk and that drunkenness causeth a praeternatural thirst, and that thirst a new drunkenness, and so adding drunkenness to hi [...]st, Deut. 29.19. They by degrees inslave themselves to this vice.

2. Love of good fellowship (as they call it) and merry compa­ny, where they drive away all thoughts that favour of sound rea­son, the fear of God, or care of their Souls. They love such com­pany where they may talk their pleasure over their cups, and may laugh and scoff at those that are seriously Religious and dare not do as they do But alass! the end of such mirth what is it but heaviness and grief and vexation of spirit. Poor Wretches! Is this the merriment you so much covet and delight in? keep it to [Page 305] your selves. No wise or good man envies you or would be your Partner in it upon any terms. Were I your enemy, I would not wish you so much harm and misery as you voluntarily choose for your selves.

3. Slight thoughts of this sin, not considering that 'tis one of the black list which excludes out of Heaven, 1 Cor. 6.9, 10. Know ye not that the unrighteous shall not inherit the Kingdom of God? Be not deceived, neither Fornicators nor Idolaters, nor Adul­terers, nor Effeminate, nor abusers of themselves with Mankind, nor Thieves, nor Covetous, nor Drunkards, nor Revilers, nor Extortioners shall inherit the Kingdom of God. And yet notwithstanding this dreadful sentence denounced by God in his holy word against this sin, there are some so vile and miserably depraved, as to think it a piece of bravery to drink stoutly and a sign of a strong brain to be able to bear much drink, and a great conquest over another man to drink him down, not considering in the mean time that while they conquer others in this vile manner at their Cups, they them­selves are shamefully conquered and overcome by the Devil.

4. Not considering nor understanding the extreme hurt that this kind of excess does unto their bodies. They apprehend not how much it spoils the temper of their stomachs, ruines their health, and ordinarily shortens their lives.

5. Another great cause of drunkenness is idleness. They that are of an idle sloathful temper, and love not to take pains in an honest calling, usually seek out idle companions like themselves, and so (that they may drive away the time as they call it) they go a potting together.

6. Another very frequent cause of drunkenness is that vile custome of drinking Healths and constraining others to pledge them, which constrains many a man to drink more than he should. There are many reasons may be alledged against this evil custome. (1.) To urge a Health is a great and un­sufferable usurpation Peccatum est provocare ad ae­quales Calices, nec fas est respon­dere, Lessius de Justitia & jure. Lib. 4. c. 3. upon another. Why may not another enjoyn me to eat as much and as big pieces and portions as he eats as well as injoyn me to drink Una salus sanis nullam potare salutem. Non est in potâ vera salute salus. as full bowls and as many glasses as he drinks? 'Tis very likely that I can neither eat nor drink so much as he. And what authority hath he [Page 306] over me to compel me to it? In Ahasuerus's feast, (Hester 1.8.) none was to be compelled to drink more or oftner than it pleased him, and shall we (that profess our selves Christians) be worse than civil Pagans? (2.) 'Tis unreasonable that my health (and consequently my life) should be at the mercy of another ma [...], which it must needs be if he may compell me to drink so much as will destroy my health, as is frequently done. How ma­ny have gotten a great fit of sickness (and some their death) by one drunken bout? And besides, If I to comply with anothers drunken humor (who begins an health) should drink so much as to make may self sick, besure he will neither feel my pains nor pay my Physician nor answer to God for my sin. (3.) We ought not to incourage others to drink more than is fit, as the custom of pledging Healths manifestly does. Possibly another would not have pledged the healths that went about if he had seen me stick at it, and not to have done it before him. My example may in all likelihood have induced him the rather to do it. And why should I be accessary to draw another man into intemperance? And possibly had I stoutly refused it, it might have prevented the ur­ging of any more healths at that time, and so I might have pre­vented a great deal of evil. And further, why should I encourage such a vile custome as makes it a crime and an high offence against civility and good manners to refuse a health, when I have so much reason to do it. Surely all manifest occasions and provocations to sin ought to be avoided, as the Apostle tells us, Eph. 5.11. Have no fellowship with the unfruitful works of darkness, but ra­ther reprove them. 'Tis notoriously known that healthing is a frequent occasion of drunkenness, and not of that only, but of quarrelling, fighting and sometimes of murder also. And why should I encourage such a custome which is the occasion of so much mischief? I do not say 'tis simply evil in it self to drink a glass of wine, or keep off my hat whilst another is remembred. But by accident it may be evil, namely, if I thereby encourage an evil custom (which is a great occasion of drunkenness) and give scandal and offence to such who (upon that account) have a great aversation to it. Yet so it may happen that this accident may be outweighed and overballanced by a greater accident, namely, if I see my life in apparant danger if I refuse it. And any other acci­dent which will really out-weigh the former hurtful accident may [Page 307] make it lawful. As in some cases and companies the offence gi­ven by denying it may possibly be such as will do more hurt far than the yielding, to it would do. As in that case when a mans loyalty to the King is laid upon it, (though I confess it is a very unreasonable thing to make that a Test of Loyalty which many good men and very faithful and loyal to the King do scruple, and which his Majesty himself in his first Proclamation after his return declared against) yet (I say) if such a thing should happen, then Christian Prudence must be the present decider of the case, by considering whether more good or evil be like to ensue there­upon, and must determine accordingly. To be bare when others lay the honour of our superiors upon it, is a ceremony which on the foresaid reasons may be complied with. But when to avoid a greater evil, we are extraordinarily put on any such ceremony, 'tis fit we should add some such words as may declare upon what account we do it, that so we may prevent scandal and offence. But the best way of all is to avoid (as much as possibly we can) such company as are like to put us upon these scruples and inconvenien­cies, And so much of the causes of drunkenness.

3. I come now to shew the heinousness of this sin which will the better appear to us if we consider these following Particu­lars.

1. 'Tis a high provoking offence against God who hath declared his high displeasure against it in his holy word. Let drunkards read these places and tremble, Isa. 5.11, 22. Wo unto them that rise up early in the morning that they may follow strong drink, that continue until night till wine inflame them. Wo unto them that are mighty to drink wine and men of strength to mingle strong drink, Habakkuk 2.15. Wo unto him that giveth his neighbour drink, that putteth his bottle to him, and maketh him drunken, that he may look on his nakedness. Isay. 28.1. Wo to the Crown of Pride, the drunkards of Ephraim, &c. and Verse 7. They have erred through wine, and through strong drink are out of the way; the Priest and the Prophet have erred through strong drink, they are swallowed up of wine they are out of the way terough strong drink, they erre in vision, they stumble in judgement. Prov. 20.1. Wine is a mock­er and strong drink is raging, and whosoever is deceived thereby is not wise. Prov. 23.29, 30, 31, 32. Who hath wo? Who hath sor­row? Who hath contentions? Who hath babling? Who hath [Page 308] wounds without cause? Who hath redness of eyes? They that tarry long at the wine, they that go to seek mixt wine. Look not thou upon the wine when it is red, when it giveth its colour in the cup, when it moveth it self aright. At the last it biteth like a Serpent, and stingeth like an Addar, Luke 21.34. Take heed to your selves l [...]st at any time your hearts be over-charged with surfeiting and drunkenness, and the cares of this life, and so that day come upon you unawares. Rom. 13.13, 14. Let us walk honestly as in the day, not in rioting and drunkenness, not in chambering and wan­tonness, not in strife and envying. But put ye on the Lord Jesus Christ, and make not provision for the flesh, to fulfil the lusts there­of.

2. It greatly hurts the mind, the Prophet tells us, Hos. 4.11. that Whoredom and Wine, and new Wine take away the heart, that is, they besot the understanding. O what a wonder of sottishness and stupidity is an habitual drunkard, whose filthy mind closes with sin and vanity, but is wholly averse to any thing that is wise and holy, such a frame of mind renders a man unfit for prayer, reading, meditating, or any good and religious duty. And such persons are usually very foolish also in ordering their very world­ly affairs and concerns.

3. It greatly hurts the body. Excess causeth indigestion, and in­digestion causeth crudities, and crudities are the cause of most dis­eases. Hence proceed vitious humors, and a multitude of sicknes­ses and distempers. Gout, Dropsie, Stone, Apoplexy, and ma­ny times Consumption are the fruits of this kind of excess. And therefore (O Drunkard) if thou art so sottish as not to fear Hell; yet methinks the fear of the Gout or Dropsie, Consumption or A­poplexy should deter thee from this vice.

4. It unfits and disables a man not only for the service of God but the duties of his particular calling. Should we take it well to have our horse or beast which we (in kindness) lent to our neighbour for his use and benefit, to be lamed and spoiled by him, and made unfit for our service? Why then shouldst thou un­fit and disable thy self to serve God in thy particular calling? who gave thee all thy faculties and abilities? have we not heard it often said of some men that they were very able and useful in their profession till they fell to that vile trade of drinking and com­pany-keeping, and since that they are become meer sots and good for nothing.

5. 'Tis a great wast and mispence of Gods good creatures. O drunkard, thou vilely and basely consumest the good creatures of God, that are given thee for thy necessity refreshment and comfort, and not to abuse to luxury. Wine was given to cheer the heart and not to oppress it, to comfort the stomach and not to load it. There is oftentimes more drink sinfully spent at one mad revelling meeting than would maintain several poor families many weeks or moneths. When our Saviour at the marriage at Cana turned water into wine that the Feast might be furnished with sufficient plenty, Joh. 2.7. Surely he did not intend that they should abuse that plenty. In­deed there may be a more free and liberal use of the creature at one time than at another, provided it exceed not the bounds of sobriety. Wine was given to make glad the heart of man. Psal. 104.15. And so far as it delighteth and refresheth us and more fits us for our duty, we may make use of it. Give strong drink unto them that are ready to perish, and wine to those that be of heavy hearts sayes the wise man, Prov. 31.6, 7. Thus and no otherwise (I suppose) 'tis said of Josephs brethren that they drank and were merry. Primum poculum necessitatis & sanitatis; secundum voluptatis & hiloritatis; tertium ebrietatis & in­saniae. Ancharsis. Gen. 43.34.

6. It occasions the wast of a great deal of pretious time which should be better im­ployed. Those that are given to drinking and company-keeping, how many dayes and nights (or at least great part of them) do they spend in that wicked way? And what a sad account will such persons have to give to God of their time so spent?

7. It blots the name and brings a stain and reproach upon it. Indeed it is not only a dishonour to the Christian profession, but a shame to even humane nature. There is hardly a more ugly loath­some sight in the World than to see a reeling, staggering, staring, shewing Drunkard. O drunkard! thou destroyest thy reason, Nihil a­liud est E­brietas, quam vo­luntaria insania. Sen. which is the glory of thy nature, and the natural part of Gods image in thy mind. Thou dost plainly dehominate and unman thy self Involuntary madness, I confess, deserveth pity and compassion, but voluntary madness the severest scourging. Non homo, sed amphora said one of drunken Bonasus. He is not a man, but a barrel. They say in Spain a drunkard is not allowed for a witness against any man, as being not a credible person, or a man whose testimony is to be valued. Regard therefore thy reputation if thou wilt not regard thy Soul.

8. It horribly consumes and wasts the estate and hinders chari­ty to the poor. He that prodigally spends his money in wine, or strong drink, cannot relieve the poor as he ought to do. He that loveth wine (sayes Solomon, Prov. 21.17.) Shall not be rich, that is, he that loves it inordinately, is like to bring himself there­by speedily to poverty. O wretched drunkards! the woful tears and pitiful tears and pitiful complaints of your poor neighbours cannot many times wring one penny from you, but at Taverns and Ale-houses you can spend without measure, and there be rea­dy in bravery to contend who shall pay most.

9. 'Tis a great injury to a family, not only by reason of the great expence it occasions, but by the infectiousness of the example. O drunkard! thy example may infect many others in thy family, and possibly in the neighbour-hood. Wouldst thou have thy Wife, Children, and Servants to be drunkards? Surely if all these were given to this vile vice, thy house would be a very Bedlam, nay worse. For in Bedlam there are some wise and discreet persons appointed to govern those that are mad. But if thou (who art the head of thy Family) be a drunkard, who shall govern thy mad family if they be all like to thy self?

10. Drunkenness is usually the cause of many other sins. When the drink is in, we use to say, the wit is out, what horrid sins does the Devil then tempt men to commit? drunkenness usually inflames the mind with anger and rage. It teacheth the tongue to swear, curse, rail, revile and slander and to deride Godliness and those that are good. When the head is full of vapors, the tongue is usually full of vanity and lewd discourse. From drunkenness usu­ally proceeds lust, filthiness, and uncleanness. Nun­quam ebri­um putabo castum. Hi­eron. Nay it makes thieves by breeding necessity, and then emboldning to villany to supply that necessity. The reason why Mahomet so severely prohi­bited his Disciples the use of wine (they say) was this. Being once invited to dinner by a friend of his, in his way thither he called at a house where (as it happened) there was that day a Wedding. Being courteously invited to come in, he found the com­pany in a very gay humor, full of love and kindness one to another, and caressing one another in the most obliging manner. Which pleasing humor he looked upon as the effect of the chearful spirit of the wine that was stirring among them, and so blessed it as a sacred thing, and departed. In the evening (calling again at [Page 311] at the same house in his return) and expecting to find the love and kindness he had before observed to be augmented; quite contra­ry, he found the house full of broils and noise, full of fighting, quarrelling and all confusion. The guests instead of imbracing were now throwing the Pots at one anothers heads. This he per­ceiving to be the effect of the wine taken in excess, he changed his former blessing into a curse, and for ever after made it Haram or a cursed thing for any of his Disciples to drink wine. But Mahomet should have considered that ab abuti ad non uti, non valet consequentia. The abuse of a lawful thing is no good ar­gument against the use of it.

11. Consider what a dreadful wo is denounced against such persons as purposely and designedly strive to make others drunk? How many Prophets do thunder out their wo against it? See Hab. 2.15, 16. Esay. 5.22. Joh. 1.5. Certainly that man buyes his merri­ment at a very dear rate that takes it with such a wo. O what an horrible impiety is it for any one to rejoyce in another mans sin, whereby he is laid open and exposed to Gods fearful Judgments? O what monsters are they that can take pleasure in seeing the drunkenness of their neighbours, and make themselves sport in beholding their nakedness? Surely there is not a greater sign of hardness of heart than for a man to make his own or another mans sin the matter of his glory and boasting, or the matter of his joy and merriment. God bless me and all my friends from such pleasures that have so dreadful a wo and curse annexed to them.

12. Consider that drunkenness is often attended with dreadful judgments in this life. We read that Amnon was murdered by his Brother Absaloms command, when his heart was merry with wine. 2 Sam. 13.28, 29. Nabal was struck dead by God shortly after his drunkenness. 1 Sam. 36.38. Elah King of Israel was mur­dered when he was drinking himself drunk.1 Kings 16.9, 10. Belshazzar King of Babylon was slain that very night, when they had been carou­sing themselves in the vessels of the Temple. Thou seest (O drunkard) that God spared not Kings themselves in their drun­kenness, and thinkest thou that he will spare thee? certainly; a drunkard puts himself in the very way of Gods vengeance. 'Tis very observable what a strange kind of punishment God appoin­ted for incorrigible drunkards and gluttons. Deut. 21.18, 19, [Page 312] 20, 21. If a man have a stubborn and rebellious Son which will not obey the voice of his Father or the voice his Mother, and that when they have chastned him will not hearken unto them. Then shall his Father and Mother lay hold on him, and bring him out un­to the elders of his City and unto the gate of his place. And they shall say unto the Elders of his City, this our Son is stubborn and rebellious, he will not obey our voice, he is a glutton and a drun­kard. And all the men of his City shall stone him with stones, that he dye, so shalt thou put evil away from among you, and all Israel shall hear and fear. Surely these were heinous crimes in Gods account, when Parents themselves were to bring forth their own Son (who was guilty of these crimes if they could not reclaim him) to have him put to death by the Magistrate. And you see further that youth was no excuse for these crimes, what­ever may by corrupt men be pretended.

13. It is one of those sins that draw down wrath upon a Na­tion, especially when it grows to be a general and epidemical vice. And alas, among us what City or Town or Village is there, what Market or Meeting or Fair that is not defiled with drunkenness? and when sin grows National it usually brings down National Judgments. But 'Tis most sad of all when persons of great quality and high place are addicted to this vice. When the Priest Ebrietas in plebeio est simplex peccatum, in sacerdote multiplex, quia multos offendit, & secum in eandem foveam, & ruinam tra [...]it. A. Lapid. and the Prophet shall erre through wine, Isa. 28.7. and shall say, come let us fill our selves with strong drink. Isa. 56.12.

14. 'Tis a sin that is very often attend­ed with hardness of heart and final impenitence. How few habi­tual drunkards have we known to reform, and abandon their former wicked wayes? Such drunkards are usually desperate in­corrigible and impudent in their sins. Now as perseverance in piety and godliness (in spight of all opposition) is a very high pitch of goodness, so perseverance in wickedness (in spight of all good counsel) is the height of impiety.

15. Drunkenness exposes a man to that desperate danger of dying drunk. Think with thy self (O drunkard) what would become of thee if thou shouldst die in a drunken fit? Would not thy case be very dangerous if not desperate. This hath been the case of many a drunkard, and it may be thy case for ought thou [Page 313] knowest. However if thou goest on in this course of drinking and company-keeping, thou wilt die a drunkard though thou dyest not drunk.

17. Lastly, this sin (if continued in) exposes a man to eternal misery. The Apostle tells us, 1 Cor. 6.10. No drunkard (that is no impenitent drunkard) shall enter into Gods Kingdom, See also Gal. 5.21. Drunkards may scoff at their faithful admonish­ers and reprovers and brazen it out here, but in the other world they shall be sure to pay dear for it. Dives had his full Cups here, but there not one drop to cool his tongue. And so much of the heinousness of this sin.

4. I come now to speak to the vain excuses, that thoseImpro­bitas prae­textu nun­quam care [...]. Arist. who are addicted to this vice do usually make for themselves.

1. They will pretend that drinking and company-keeping maintains kindness and friendship and love among neighbours. To this I answer, can any rational man imagine that the help­ing to destroy the soul, the body, the estate, the good-name, the family of their neighbour is any argument of kindness to him? Surely such persons as draw one another into such courses are the greatest enemies to one another imaginable.

2. They will alledge that those holy men Noah and Lot fell into this sin. I answer, Noah fell into it but once, and that (as it seems) upon ignorance and surprize, not knowing at first the property, quality and operation of the wine,Gen. 9.20.21. which was the fruit of the Vineyard he himself had planted. And possibly he was the more easily overtaken, as being over-joyed when he tasted such excellent fruits of his own labours, and allowing him­self a little more freedom in drinking thereof than (in all likeli­hood) he would have done, had he known the power and ver­tue of the wine. And accordingly we do not find that he was ever overtaken so again. As for Lot indeed we read that he was twice overtaken, but both times by the perswasion of his own DaughtersGen. 19.33.35. to which he was (possibly) the more ready to give ear, because their hearts being oppressed with grief for the destruction of Sodom, the loss of their goods and sudden death of his wife, he thought they might take a little more liberty in the use of wine at that time for their comfort and refreshment, and supporting their spirits under such great and sore afflictions. And we know that they that venture to go near the brink do some­times [Page 314] fall into the water. So that however those holy men were overtaken once or twice, yet they were no drunkards. They fell into this sin by surprize; it was not their usual practice. And these examples no more justify those who live in this vice than Peters once denying his Lord and Master excuseth those who make a total and final Apostacy from him. The spirit of God hath purposely recorded theSunt cavendi, non caden­di exempla slips of these holy men, to shew us how frail our nature is, and to caution us not to presume upon our own strength, but to be the more watchful; and also to shew us that they who fall through infirmity into the like sins, should not de­spair of Gods mercy in Christ, if they seriously repent of them and forsake them. No Pilot in his wits when he sees Sea-marks purposely set up to give warning of rocks, sands, or shelves (upon which others have made Ship-wrack) will take occasion thereby to run his Ship upon them, but rather will imploy all his care and skill to avoid them, that he may escape the like dan­ger. And this is the use we should make of these examples.

3. They say they do it to drive away care and trouble of mind and melancholy. For answer to this, I desire first to know what cares and troubles they are they desire thus to drive away. Per­haps they are some checks and rebukes of their consciciences for their sins. If so, they may possibly by such divertisements stop the mouths of their consciences for the present, but they will roar louder upon them hereafter. It were a thousand times better for them to go alone than into such wild company, and to think so­berly of their condition, and of their misery, and the true way of coming out of it. To go into merry and vain company is but a bad remedy to drive away melancholy or to stop the mouth of an accusing conscience. We may say to such persons, as Solomon does Eccles. 2.2. I said of laughter it is mad, and of mirth what doth it? And Chap. 7. Verse 4. The heart of the wise man is in the house of mourning, but the heart of fools is in the house mirth. If we saw a mad man whoop and hollow and make a great noise, we should not envy but pity such mirth. The vain and foolish merriment of wicked company is that which a sober and serious mind can never be pleased with. And therefore they that seek such company to divert and drive away their melan­choly, take the direct way to increase it. Now melancholy is of two sorts, either such as arises from the mind or such as arises [Page 315] from the body. As for that which arises from the mind, the best way to drive it away is to clear the Soul of all guilt by true re­pentance and flying to the blood of Christ for pardon. For they are happy (and they only) whose sins are forgiven and whose ini­quities are covered, and to whom God will not impute transgression. Secret and fervent prayer also to God (which gives vent to the mind and so eases it) is an excellent remedy in this case. To which I may add the imparting the troubles of our mind (if they be urgent) to some wise and faithful friend, and craving his advice and counsel as a good way and means also to obtain ease. But if the Melancholy arise from the body by reason of darksome fumes and vapors it casts up into the mind, some proper Phy­sick is then requisite, and the moderate use of such things as may exhilerate the spirits. Yea, business and imployment is a great remedy in this case. For standing waters stagnate and gather mud, whereas running waters are clear and sweet. Good company also (I mean of wise and sober Christians) is a great help against this malady. And striving to be chearful (in an innocent and inoffensive manner, that our pectorals may be shaken and fumes dispersed) is of great use likewise. But as for going to the Ale-house or Tavern (and consorting with such company as usu­ally frequent those places) in my opinion it is far from being a proper remedy for Melancholy, but ordinarily does more in­crease it, especially when people come to reflect how greatly God has been dishonoured and their souls hurt by such meetings.

4. They say they do it to pass away the time.Dam­na fleo re­rum, sed plus fleo damna di­erum. Blind wretches! Are you so near Eternity, and know not how better to improve your time? Can you sit tipling and prating away your precious time over your Pots, when the mudwalls of your bodies are daily crumbling down, and when you know not how soon you may be summoned to appear before Gods dreadful Tribunal? But it may be you will say you are Gentlemen, and so have more time and leisure at your own disposal than other men have, who must earn their bread before they eat it. But hark you in your ears. Where there is much leisure from worldly business, God expects more time should be spent and imployed on the soul, and not spent in idle merriment and sinful jollity.

5. Some will pretend their heads are very weak and a little overturns them, and so they hope they are the more excusable. I [Page 316] answer, they that know their own weakness should be more especially watchful over themselves, and take heed of such liquors, and such company that may endanger them. If you know that less poison will kill you than another man, you should be the more fearful of it, and shun it with greater care, and not with a fool-hardiness encourage your self to take it. And so you should do in this case.

6. Others will say, that though they drink much, yet they can bear it well away, their heads are strong, they seldom are drunk. I would advise such persons seriously to consider of that place before-mentioned, Isa. 5.22. Wo unto them that are migh­ty to drink wine, and men of strength to mingle strong drink. Let such strong-braind drunkards consider what the prudent Lord Burley said in his advice to his Son. That to carry much drink is a commendation fitter for a Brewers horse than for a Gentle­man.

7. Some will say, They shall be jeer'd and laugh'd at, if they should be so precise as not to do as others do. I would advise such persons to consider what the Apostle sayes, 1 Pet. 4.14. If ye be reproached for the name of Christ happy are ye. To be re­proached for obedience to any of Christs commands is to be re­proached for his name. And shall the reproaches of vile and wicked men more terrifie us than the wrath and displeasure of God? A good name indeed is highly to be valued. But is that a good name to be commended and praised by drunkards and such leud livers? A good name is to be well-reported of among wise and good men. Therefore if you fear reproach, fear drunkenness and avoid company-keeping which will make you hear ill among such as are wise and sober. Remember what our Saviour saith, Mark 8.38. Whosoever shall be ashamed of me and of my words in this adulterous and sinful generation, of him shall the Son of man be ashamed when he cometh in the glory of his Father with the holy Angels. I suppose there are none but would be glad to be own­ed by Christ at that day. Therefore let us not be ashamed to own his wayes, and to own our selves for his Disciples here. And so much by way of answer to the vain pretences and excuses that people make for continuing in this sin.

5. I come now in the last place to give some remedies and di­rections against this vice.

1. If thou hast before been guilty of this sin, humble thy soul to God by deep and serious repentance, and flie to the blood of Christ for thy pardon. True repentance for sins past, is a good means to preserve us from them for the time to come.

2. If thou findest company-keeping to be a strong temptation to thee, earnestly beg grace of God to help thee to resist that temptation, and to keep thee from delighting in such company among whom thy soul is in so much danger.

3. Awaken thy reason and understanding to consider of the manifold evils of this sin. Ask thy self whether the displeasure of God, the brutifying thy self, the blotting thy name, the wa­sting of thy estate, the destroying of thy health, the corrupting of thy Family, the damning of thy Soul are not things that ought to be considered of by thee? Weigh in the ballance of reason how much the joyes of a good conscience and the favour of God out-weigh the sottish mirth of good-fellows.

4. Shun the occasions of this vice and (as much as thou canst) keep off from the places and houses where such drinking com­panions use to meet. Be not their companion in sin, lest thou be their companion in hell. Declare thy fixed resolution (by the assistance of Grace) of living soberly, that so thy old compani­ons may be discouraged from assaulting or tempting of thee at any time. Never mind either the perswasions or reproaches of such vile and profligate persons.

5. Send to thy former drinking companions and advise them to leave off those evil wayes. Think with thy self how blessed a thing it is to convert a sinner from the error of his way, and to save a soul from death and eternal misery. Regard not their frowns or scorns or reproaches, but labour to do them good even against their wills, and thy reward will be with the Lord.

6. Think how much more joy and comfort there is in sobri­ety than there can be in drunkenness. Consider with thy self whether sober and temperate persons do not live not only an ho­nester and safer, but a more comfortable and pleasing life than Drunkards do? They have none of those sour belchings and vo­mitings, none of that preternatural thirst and eager desire after drink that drunkards have. Certainly drunkenness carrieth its own punishment with it, and temperance its joy and comfort.

7. Consider what a strange difference there is between a sober man and a drunkard. Look upon a sober man, how calm is his mind? how wise are his words? how regular and amiable is his conversation? how is he reverenced and respected by all that are wise and scrious? Then look upon a drunkard, how ugly and ill favoured a creature is he, and how unlike a man of reason and understanding? O wholsome Temperance! how much bet­ter art thou than loathsom debauchery? what a loveliness and beauty is there in sobriety? how sweetly doth a sober man enjoy himself? how is he honoured and esteemed by others? whereas a drunkard is the mark of common obloquie and re­proach.

8. Think of that cup of trembling that shall be put into the hands of drunkards to drink hereafter. Consider how drunkards for their full cups here must drink the Cup of Gods wrath un­mixed in the other life, and for their short pleasures here must loose the pleasures that are at Gods right hand for evermore.

Lastly, Understand well thy own measure, and let no man force thee to exceed it. Think of that excellent advice of the learned and pious Mr. Herbert in his Church-Porch.

Drink not the third glass, which thou canst not tame
When once it is within thee, but before
May'st rule it as thou list, and pour the shame
Which it would pour on thee, upon the floor.
It is most just to throw that on the ground
Which would throw me there if I keep the round.
He that is drunken may his mother kill,
Big with his Sister, he hath lost the reins,
Is outlaw'd by himself: all kind of ill
Did with his liquor slide into his veins.
The Drunkard forfeits man, and doth devest
All worldly right, save what he hath by beast.
Shall I to please anothers wine-sprung mind,
Loose all mine own? God hath given me a measure
Short of his canne, and body: must I find
A pain in that, wherein he finds a pleasure?
Stay at the third glass, if thou loose thy hold
Then thou art modest, and the wine grows bold.
If Reason move not Gallants, quit the Room
(All in a Ship-wrack shift their several way)
Let not a common ruine thee intomb;
Be not a Beast in courtesie; but stay,
Stay at the third cup, or forgo the place.
Wine above all things doth Gods stamp deface.

I shall conclude all with this earnest prayer to God that he would please of his infinite mercy timely to awaken the hearts of all those who are addicted to sin, that by a speedy and serious repen­tance and forsaking of it they may escape that dreadful wrath, which will be the portion of impenitent and unreformed Drun­kards.

CHAP. VI. Of Uncleanness.

THE Nature of man is so vile and corrupt and so prone to this sin of Uncleanness, that we had need use all care and caution lest while we are writing against it, and endeavouring to beat it down, we should any way stir it up and excite it. In treating therefore of this Subject, I shall proceed in this method.

1. I shall shew the odiousness and heinousness of this sin, and what great reasons we have to abhor it.

2. Shall answer the vain excuses that men who are addicted to this sin do usually make for themselves.

3. Shall give some directions and prescribe some remedies against it.

For the Fitst. The Odiousness and heinousness of this sin may appear to us, if we consider how strictly God hath forbidden it in his holy word, and how severely he hath declared his displea­sure against it. And that man that is not awed by the declared will of his Creator, I know not what will awe him. 'Tis in vain to think to convince a man of the evil and danger of any sin by other arguments, whom the express word and declared will of God cannot convince. I shall therefore set before you what God both in the old and new Testament declares concerning this sin, and then leave every one to judge whether it be not our duty to abhor it, and with all care and conscience to keep our selves from it. Read therefore and well consider these following Scri­ptures. Gen. 20.3. And God came to Abimelech in a dream by night, and said to him, behold, thou art but a dead man for the woman which thou hast taken, for she is a mans wife.

Gen. 26.10. And Abimelech said, what is this thou hast done unto us? one of the people might lightly have lien with thy wife, and thou shouldest have brought guiltiness upon us.

Gen. 38.24. And it came to pass about three moneths after, that it was told Judah, saying, Tamar thy daughter in law hath plaid the Harlot, and also behold she is with child by whoredom; and Judah said, bring her forth and let her be burnt. Observe these things. hapned be­fore the gi­ving of the Law on Mount Sinai.

Exod. 20.14. Thou shalt not commit adultery.

Lev. 18.20. Thou shalt not lie carnally with thy neighbours wife, to defile thy self with her.

V. 23. Neither shalt thou lie with any beast to defile thy self there­with, neither shall any woman stand before a beast to lie down thereto, it is confusion. V. 24. Defile not your selves in any of these things: for in all these the nations are defiled which I cast out before you. V. 25. And the Land is defiled; therefore I do visit the iniquity thereof upon it, and the Land it self vomiteth out her inhabitants. Therefore com­mit not any of these abominations. V. 28. That the Land spue not you out also, when ye defile it; as it spued out the Nations that were be­fore you.

Lev. 20.10. And the man that committeth adultery with another mans wife, the adulterer and the adulteress shall surely be put to death.

Deut. 22.22. If a man be found lying with a woman married to an husband, then they shall both of them die, both the man that lay with the woman, and the woman. So shalt thou put away evil from Israel.

Verse 23. If a damsel that is a Virgin be betrothed to an hus­band, and a man find her in the City, and lie with her,

V. 24. Then ye shall bring them both out unto the gate of the City, and ye shall stone them with stones that they die, the damsel because she cried not out, being in the City, and the man because he hath humbled his neighbours wife. So shalt thou put away evil from among you.

Job 24.15. The eye of the adulterer waiteth for the twi-light, saying, no eye shall see me, and disguises his face.

Prov. 2.16. When wisdom entreth into thine heart it shall pre­serve thee from the strange woman, even from the stranger which flat­tereth with her words. V. 17. Which forsaketh the guide of her youth and forgetteth the Covenant of her God. V. 18. For her house inclineth to death, and her paths to the dead. V. 19. None that go unto her re­turn again, neither take they hold of the paths of life.

Prov. 5.3. For the lips of a strange woman drop as an honey comb, and her mouth is smoother than oyl.

Ver. 4. But her end is bitter as worm-wood, sharp as a two edged sword. V. 5. Her feet go down to death, her steps take hold on hell. V. 8. [...]emove thy way far from her, and come not nigh the door of her house. V. 9. L [...]st thou give thine honour unto others, and thy years unto the cruel. V. 11. And thou mourn at last, when thy flesh and thy [...]y are consumed. V. 12. And say, how have I hated instruction and my heart despised reproof. V. 20. And why wilt thou my Son, be ra­vished with a strange woman, and embrace the bosome of a stranger.

Prov. 6.23. For the commandment is a Lamp, and the Law is light.

V. 24. To keep thee from the evil woman, from the flattery of the tongue of a strange woman. V. 25. Lust not after her beauty inthine heart, neither let her take thee with her eye-lids. V. 26. For by means of a whorish woman a man is brought to a piece of bread, and the adul­teress will hunt for the precious life. V. 27. Can a man take fire in his bosome and his cloaths not be burnt?

V. 28. Can one go upon hot coals and his feet not be burnt? V. 29. So he that goeth in to his neighbours wife, whosoever toucheth her shall not be innocent. V. 32. But whoso committeth adultery with a woman, lacketh understanding, he that doth it destroyeth his own soul. V. 33. A wound, and dishonour shall he get, and his reproach shall not be wi­ped away.

Prov. 7 5. My Son keep my words, that they may keep thee from the strange woman, from the stranger which flattereth with her words.

V. 6. F [...] at the window of my house I looked through my casement. V. 7. And beheld among the simple ones, a young man void of un­derstanding. V. 8. Passing through the streets, neer her corner, and he went the way to her house. V. 9. In the twi-light, in the even­ing, in the black and dark night. V. 10. And behold there met him a woman with the attire of an harlot and subtil of heart. V. 11. She is loud and stubborn, her feet abide not in her house. V. 12. Now is she without, now in the streets, and lieth in wait at every corner. V. 13. So she caught him, and kissed him, and with an impudent face said unto him. V. 14. I have Peace-offerings with me, this day have I paid my vows. V. 15. Therefore came I forth to meet thee, diligently to seek thy face, and I have found thee.

Verse 16. I have decked my bed with coverings of Tapestry, with carved works, with fine linnen of Egypt.

Verse 17. I have perfumed my bed with Myrrh, Aloes and Cin­namon.

Verse 18. Come let us take our fill of love untill the morning, let us solace our selves with love.

Verse 21. So with her much fair speech she caused him to yield, with the flattering of her lisp she forced him.

Verse 22. He goeth with her strait-way, as an Ox goeth to the slaughter, as a fool to the correction of the stocks.

Verse 23. Till a dart strike through his liver, as a bird hasteth to the snare, and knoweth not that it is for his life.

Verse 27. Her house is the way to hell, going down to the chambers of death.

Prov. 9.1. A f [...]lish woman sitteth at the door of her house to call in passengers

Verse 16, [...]hoso is simple let him turn in hither, and as for him that wanteth understanding she saith unto him.

V. 17. Stol'n waters are sweet, and bread eaten in secret is pleasant.

Verse 18. But he knoweth not that the dead are there, and that her guests are in the depths of hell.

Prov. 22.14. The mouth of a strange woman is a deep pit, he that is abhorred of the Lord shall fall therein.

Prov. 23.27. A whore is a deep ditch, and a strange woman is a narrow pit. Verse 28. She lieth in wait as for a prey, and in­creaseth the transgressors among men.

Prov. 29.3. He that keepeth company with Harlots spendeth his substance.

Prov. 30.20. Such is the way of an adulterous woman, she eateth and wipeth her mouth, and saith she hath done no wickedness.

Eccles. 7.26. And I find more bitter than death, a woman whose heart is snares and nets, and her hands as bands, whoso plea­seth God shall escape her, but the sinner shall be taken by her.

Jer. 5.7. How shall I pardon thee for this? thy children have forsaken me and sworn by them that are no Gods, when I fed them to the full, then they committed adultery, and assembled them­selves by troops in the Harlots houses.

Verse 8. They were as fed horses in the morning, ever one neigh­eth after his neighbours wife.

Verse 9. Shall not I visit for these things, saith the Lord, and shall not my soul be avenged on such a Nation as this?

Jer. 29.23. Because they committed villany in Israel, and have committed adultery with their neighbours wives, and have spoken lying words in my name (which I have not commanded them) even I am a witness against them, saith the Lord.

Ezek. 16.38. And I will judge thee as women that break wed­lock and shed blood are judged, and I will give thee blood in fury and jealousie.

Hos. 4.11. Whoredom and wine, and new wine take away the heart.

Mal. 3.5. And I will come near to you to judgment, and I will be a swift witness against the sorcerers and against the adulterers, and against false swearers and against those that oppress the hireling in his wages, and the widow and the fatherless, that turn aside the stranger from his right, and fear not me, saith the Lord of Hosts.

Mat. 5.27. Ye have heard that it was said by them of old time, thou shalt not commit adultery.

Verse 28. But I say unto you whosoever looketh on a woman to lust after her, he hath committed adultery with her already in his heart.

Mat. 19.17. Jesus said unto him, if thou wilt enter into life, keep the commandments, viz. thou shalt do no murther, thou shalt not com­mit adultery, &c.

Acts 15 20, 29. But that we write unto them, that they abstain from pollutions of Idols, and from fornication, and from things strangled, and from blood. From which if they keep themselves, they shall do well. Rom. 1.28. And even as they did not like to retain God in their knowlede. God gave them over to a reprobate mind and to do those things which are not convenient, Verse 29. Being filled with all un­righteousness, fornication, wickedness, covetousness, maliciousness, &c.

1 Cor. 6.9, 10. Know ye not that the unrighteous shall not in­herit the Kingdom of God, be not deceived, neither fornicators, nor idolaters, nor adulterers, nor effeminate, nor abusers of themselves with mankind,

Verse 10. Nor thieves, nor covetous, nor drunkards, nor revilers, nor extortioners shall inherit the Kingdom of God.

1 Cor. 7. v. 2. To avoid fornication let every one have his own wife, and every woman her own husband.

Verse 19. But if they cannot contain let them marry, for it is better to marry than to burn.

1 Cor. 10.8. Neither let us commit fornication as some of them committed, and fell in one day three and twenty thousand.

Gal. 5.19. Now the works of the flesh are manifest, which are these, adultery, fornication, uncleanness, lasciviousness, V. 10. Ido­latry, witch-craft, hatred, variance, emulations, wrath, strife, sediti­on, heresies, V. 21. Envyings, murders, drunkenness, revellings, and such like, of the which I tell you now, as I have told you in times past, that they who do such things shall not inherit the king­dom of God.

Eph. 5.3. But fornication, and all uncleanness or covetousness let it not be once named amongst you, as becometh Saints.

Col. 3.5. Mortify therefore your members which are upon the earth, fornication, uncleanness, inordinate affections, evil concupiscence and covetousness which is Idolatry. For which things sake the wrath of God cometh on the children of disobedience.

1 Thes. 4.3. For this is the will of God even your sanctification, that ye should abstain from fornication. V. 4. That every one of you should know how to possess his vessel in sanctification and honour. V. 5. Not in the lust of concupiscence, as the Gentiles which know not God.

Heb. 13.4. Marriage is honourable in all, and the bed undefiled; but whoremongers and adulterers God will judge.

1 Pet. 2.9. The Lord knoweth how to deliver the Godly out of temp­tations, and to reserve the unjust unto the day of judgment to be punish­ed. V. 10. But chiefly them that walk after the flesh in the lusts of uncleanness, &c. V. 14. Having eyes full of adultery, &c.

Judge. v. 7. Even as Sodom and Gomorrah, and the Cities about them in like manner, giving themselves over to fornication and going after strange flesh, are set forth for an example, suffering the venge­ance of eternal fire.

Rev. 21.8. But the fearful and unbelieving, and the abominable, and murderers, and whoremongers, and sorcerers, and idolaters and all ly­ars shall have their part in the lake which burneth with fire and brimstone which is the second death.

Rev. 22.15. For without are Dogs and Sorcerers, and whoremon­gers and Idolaters, and whosoever loveth and maketh a lye.

2. This sin wherever it is found and continued in, is a sign and mark of a man whom God hateth, Prov. 22.14. The mouth of a strange woman is a deep pit, and he that is abhorred of God shall fall therein; that is, he whom God is highly offended with for some former wickedness shall (in a just way of punishment) be deli­vered up to this ruining sin.

3. God declares that he himself will judge those that commit this sin, Heb. 13.4. Whoremongers and adulterers God will judge. God will judge all other sinners, but the Apostle seems to intimate that God will judge these in an especial manner. (1.) Because this sin being usually committed in secret, man cannot so easily come to the knowledge of it, nor can he prove it by sufficient witnesses. (2.) Many great and potent men are oftentimes guilty of this sin, whom ordinary Magistrates either cannot or dare not, or (through remisness) will not meddle with. Therefore God will take the matter into his own hands, and he himself will judge it. And 'tis a dreadful thing to fall into the hand of the li­ving God. Crimes among men are oftentimes extenuated by reason of the greatness of the Person that commits them. But God will judge every man according to his works.

4. 'Tis a sin that is usually attended with hardness of heart, and very often with final impenitence. When once men have so far de­bauched their consciences, that Adultery and Fornication seem small matters to them, they are seldom recovered. By frequent committing this sin they give their consciences such a dose of Opi­um, that the lowdest threatnings of Gods word cannot awaken them. The Prophet tells us, Hos. 4.11. that whoredom, wine, and new wine takes away the heart, that is, besot the understanding. Terrible are those words, Prov. 2.18.19. The house of the strange woman inclineth unto death, and her paths unto the dead. None that go unto her return again, neither take they hold of the paths of life. O the extreme hazard and danger, that all Adulterers, and Fornicators expose their precious souls unto for a short pleasure! TravellersDoctor Browns travels into Germany. p. 111. tell us that at Presburg, Metz, and some other places in Germa­ny they have a strange way of executing capital offenders, which is this. They have an Engine made in the form of, and finely dressed up, like a young maid or Lady with her hands before her. The malefactor being brought to the place of execution salutes her first, and then retires. But at his second salute she opens her hands and cuts his heart asunder. Methinks this is a notable emblem and representation of the horrible danger that adulterers expose them­selves unto by their lascivious embraces.Cito prae­terit quod delectat & permanet sine fine quod cruci­at. Aug. Which if they did but duly consider before-hand, they would as much tremble to venture on them, as the poor condemned Malefactor does to make his second salute to the fatal Engine.

5. AdulteryAdulte­rium quasi ad alterius thorum ac­cessus. is one of the greatest plagues imaginable to private families. For thereby a spurious bastardly brood is brought in to inherit and share the estate instead of a legitimate issue. Like as the Cuckow layes her filthy eggs in another birds nest, making it to hatch and nourish them as if it were its own off-spring. So that this sin usually breeds dismal confusion and fatal jars and strifes in those miserable Families where it is found.

6. 'Tis a great mischief to the Church. For by Lawful Wed­lock among Christians, a seed foederally holy is brought forth; but by this sin a spurious and unclean brood.

7. 'Tis a sin that defiles a Land and provokes God to send down most heavy judgments upon it. We read that the Land of Canaan (where Israel dwelt) spewed out the Nations that were before them, for their uncleanness, Lev. 18.27, 28. And there­fore every honest person should have a great zeal for chastity, and an utter abhorrence and indignation against uncleanness, as that which is a ruiner of a Nation, and a mischief to the community by drawing down Gods Judgments upon it.

8. 'Tis a sin that exceedingly blots the name.A Learned man writing of a great Prince who was also a great Captain, sayes of him, that he was egregius bellator sed non adversus carnem suam. So that great men (one would think) should be afraid of this sin, lest they should be recorded to Posterity under the Characters of fi [...]thy persons. There are few fornicators or a­dulterers (who do not by great and so­lemn repentance and amendment of life break off that sin) but leave an infamous name and memory to posterity, Prov. 10.7. The memory of the just is blessed, but the name of the wicked shall rot, Prov. 6.32, 33. He that committeth adultery with a woman, lacketh understanding. He that doth it de­stroyeth his own soul. A wound and dishonour shall he get, and his reproach shall not be wiped away.

9. It usually blasts the estate, Prov. 6.26. By reason of a who­rish woman a man is brought to a morsel of bread, Job 13.10. 'Tis a fire that consumeth to destruction, and will root out all their in­crease. I appeal to every wise mans observation, whether this be not usually the fruit of uncleanness.

10. 'Tis a sin that very frequently wasts and destroyes the body. The Apostle, 1 Cor. 6.28. Exhorts to flee fornication because (among other reasons) 'tis a sin that so much hurts the body. In other sins that men commit, commonly they abuse something [Page 328] without the the body (as the drunkard doth wine) but this sin hurteth and abuseth the body it self in a more remarkable manner by an intemperate and excessive exhausting the vital spirits, and consuming the natural heat and moisture, which are the preser­vers of health, strength, and life. And besides, this sin is frequently attended with that loathsom disease which makes the committers of it to rot and stink above ground. So that if there be any men so sottish as not to fear Hell or punishment in another life; yet me­thinks they should resolve to live chastly for fear of rotting their bodies by uncleanness, and so shortning this life wherein they ex­pect all their happiness. The Apostle indeed in that Chapter before-mentioned uses another argument of another nature to true believers why they should keep themselves from uncleanness. Verse 15. Know you not (sayes he) that your bodies are the members of Christ, and will you take the members of Christ and make them the members of an Harlot? God forbid. For as wedlock makes man and wife one body lawfully, so fornication makes the fornicator and the harlot one body unlawfully. Further, he shews that the bodies of true believers are Temples of the Holy Ghost (who is freely given of God to dwell in them) and therefore their bo­dies ought to be kept pure and undefiled. The Apostle therefore in this place uses these arguments to true believers and not im­pure Fornicators. For their bodies are not members of Christ nor Temples of the Holy Ghost. But it seems some filthy Here­ticks in that time went about to perswade those Christians at Corinth that fornication was no sin, or at least no great sin, and the Apostle levels his arguments against such wicked suggestions as these.

11. Adulterers and Adulteresses violate the sacred ordinance of marriage and the solemn covenant they made before God, and be­fore their friends as witnesses. In our form of Matrimony the man solemnly promises that forsaking all others he will keep him­self only unto the woman he marries as long as they both shall live. And the woman does the like unto the man. And therefore Adul­tery in either party is the most abominable breach of faith that can be imagined, and they that are guilty of it, what can they expect but vengeance from God?

12. The Adulterer highly sinneth against him whose wife he defileth. He robs him of the heart-love and affection of his wife which is an irreparable injury. Besides, he brings an odious [Page 329] nick-name and reproach upon him. And which is to be taken notice of to the shame of our Nation (as Dr. Hammond well ob­serves) the innocent and injured person he is by a kind of nati­onal custom laughed at and made the object of common scorn and obloquy whilst the filthy adulterer (who robbed him of his honour) is in the common vogue rather applauded, at least passes without any such mark of infamy and contempt One or two such ponderous guilts as this (as that reverend Author phra­sesSee Dr. Hammonds Sermons page 175. it) are enough to ruine a Nation, how light soever some profane wretches make of the matter.

13. By the Law of God Adultery was to be punished with death, Lev. 20.10. Deut. 22.22. And whereas other crimes were not capital nor to be punished with death except proved by two or three witnesses, God permitted the jealous husband to make a special trial of his wifes chastity and honesty, and gave him an extraordinary way and means for convicting of her (if she were guilty) when no witnesses could possibly be produced against her, namely, she was to drink of the water of jealousie which if she were innocent did not hurt her at all, but rather did her good and made her fruitful. But if she were guilty, then upon drinking thereof her belly should swell and her thigh rot, and so the woman should be accursed among her people. So that rather than God would have this heinous sin of adultery go unpunished, he him­self appointed an extraordinary way for the discovery of it. Nay before this law was given (it seems) it was in use among Gods own people to punish adultery with death. For Judah adjudged Tamar his daughter in law to be burnt for this sin, as appears, Gen. 38.24.

14. The very Heathens by the light of nature adjudged adulte­ry to be a capital crime and to deserve death. For instance, Nebu­chadnezzar roasted two men in the fire for it as we read, Jer. 29.23. And of them shall be taken up a curse by all the Captivity of Judah which are in Babylon, saying, the Lord make thee like Ze­dekiah and like Ahab, whom the King of Babylon roasted in the fire, because they have committed villany in Israel, and have commit­ted adultery with their neighbours wives, and have spoken lying words in my name which I have not commanded them. Among the Athenians Draco's Law made adultery capital. Among the Ro­mans 'twas a law of the Twelve Tables Moechum in adulterio depre­hensum [Page 330] necato, so also by the lex Julia it was made capital. Thus we see that the punishing adultery with death seemed a thing ve­ry fit and just, and a matter of common equity among the more civilized Nations, and was not meerly a judicial Law proper and peculiar to the Common-wealth of the Jews only. Other Nati­ons that did not inflict death upon adulterers, yet punished them with tortures almost as bitter as death. The Aegyptians decreed that the nose of the adulterer should be cut off, and the adulteress should be beaten with a thousand stripes almost to death.Diodor Sicul. lib. 1. cap. 6. Za­leucus the King of the Locrenses made a Law that the adulterer should loose both his eyes. Which Law his own Son transgressing, that he might be just in keeping up the vigor of the Law and yet shew some mercy to his Son,Aelian. var hist. lib. 13. he caused one of his Son's eyes to be put out and one of his own. By which it plainly appears what a detestation was in the hearts of civilized Pagans (guided only by the light of natural conscience) against this sin. And so much of the first particular, the odiousness of this sin, and the great reasons we have to abhor it.

2. I come now to answer the vain excuses that men who are addicted to this sin are apt to make for themselves. There is no sin so odious but love to it and frequent committing of it will in a sort reconcile even the judgment to it, and make it seem either no sin, or but a little sin, and easily pardonable. Let us consider therefore what are the excuses such men do usually make for themselves.

1. They alledge that Poligamy (or having more wives than one) was practised among the Jews.

Answ. One man and one woman were conjoyned in the Primitive institution, Gen. 2.24. compared with Matth. 19.5. For this cause shall a man leave Father and Mother and cleave to his wife, and they twain duo non exprimitur, Gen. 2.24. sed necessario subauditur, nam de duobus tantum ibi sermo est non plu­ribus, unde & dictum uxori suae non uxoribus suis. Hinc damnatur Polygamia, ut quum dictum est ux­ori suae numero singulari. (not they three or four) shall be one flesh. And the special reason why plurality of wives was connived at among the Jews was for the fuller peopling of that Nation, they being the only people in Covenant with God, and being but few among many enemies encom­passing of them, their strength and safety depended much (in an ordinary way) upon their number and increase, and therefore [Page 331] some inordinancy was connived at for their multiplication, but never absolutely allowed or approved of. But though their ha­ving more wives than one (for the aforesaid reasons) was conni­ved at, yet fornication was punished severely among them, and adultery with no less punishment than death.

2. They alledge that David was an Adulterer, and Solomon had many wives.

Answ. David sinned heinously therein, and 'tis easier to forbear this sin than to undergo the sorrows and punishment that David underwent for it. For besides the bitterness that his Soul was in for it, his Son Absolom rebelled against him, drove him out of his Kingdom, and openly defiled his wives. And this sin is left as a perpetual blot upon his name and memory. As for Solomon, his sin was so great that it almost ruined him and his Kingdom. Ten of the twelve Tribes fell off from his house as soon as his Son came to the Kingdom, and though his own experience taught him to say more against this sin than is said by any other in the Old Testament, yet it is a controversie among Divines whether ever he were perfectly recovered, and at last saved or no. And is this an incouragement to any man to imitate him in this sin?

3. They alledge that Our Saviour did not condemn the woman taken in adultery, John 8.

Answ. Our Saviour asks the woman whether any man had con­demned her according to the Law made in that case; whereby he intimates, that if the sentence of death had been lawfully passed upon her, he would not have repealed it; for he came not to vio­late the law but to fulfill it. But our Saviour himself refused to condemn her, because he came not into the world to execute the office of an earthly judge, but of a mediator who was to procure the pardon of our sins through his merits and intercession. He came not to condemn but to save, and to give his life a ransom for many. And therefore he would not execute the office of a Magistrate in adjudging her to death, but of a Minister in calling her to repentance and amendment of her life. And so much by way of answer to the excuses that such as are addicted to this sin do use to make for themselves.

3. I come now in the last place to give some directions and to prescribe some remedies against it.

1. Frequently pour forth thy soul in fervent and earnest prayer [Page 332] unto the Lord that he would please to keep thee from this sin and all tendencies to it. When Paul prayed so earnestly to be delive­red from the thorn in the flesh, the messenger of Satan, God an­swered, my grace is sufficient for thee, my strength shall be perfected in thy weakness, 2 Cor. 12.8, 9.

2. Use fasting and abstinence and beating down the body. This unclean Devil goes not out by any means so soon as by fasting and prayer. A weak body indeed must be carefully supported, but a wanton and unruly body must be carefully subdued.Antisthenes his wish to his enemies was hosti­um filiis co [...] ingat n delitiis vivere. 'Tis storied of a virtuous maid, that to rid her self of an importunate Suitor she told him that if he had that affection for her which he pre­tended, he should manifest it by joyning with her in a resolution she had made; which was, that for twenty dayes together she would eat nothing but bread, and drink nothing but water. (The young man (though very unwillingly, yet to satisfie her) undertook it. But when he had observed it about ten dayes, he found his body so mortified and enfeebled that he had no mind to marry, and so his Mistress was delivered from her importunate Suitor. This sto­ry applies it self. And if any shall say that abstinence is an hard lesson, let such consider that the suffering of hell fire, and the wrath that is to come is a thousand times harder.

3. Labour that the fear of God may rule in thy heart. This was that which kept Joseph innocent, Gen. 39.9. and preserved him from the inticements of his lewd Mistress; how can I do this great wickedness and sin against God? The fear of God in the heart is a great preservative against this sin.

4. Reverence thy conscience and hearken to it, and mark what it speaks to thee now, lest hereafter it speak to thee in a more terrible manner; hear it voluntarily now lest it force thee to hear it here­after (against thy will) when it will be thy tormentor. It is re­ported of a chast woman that being tempted by a fornicator, she desired him first to hold his finger in the fire a lit [...] b [...]while, which when he refused, she said, why should I then burn in hell for you?

5. Labour to cast out of thy mind all unclean thoughts and phansies. Drive them out with abhorrence, as our Saviour did the buyers and sellers out of the Temple. Take heed of specu­lative wantonness. Ʋnclean thoughts usually infect and corrupt the heart and stir up in it unclean lusts and inclinations; and heart [Page 333] defilement makes way for corporal. Remember what our Saviour sayes, Matth. 5.24. Whosoever looks upon a woman to lust after her hath committed adultery already with her in his heart. There are fornicators in heart and adulterers in heart as well as in out­ward act. Therefore sayes Solomon, keep thy self from the evil woman, and lust not after her beauty in thy heart. Prov, 6.25. A great means to prevent uncleanness lyes in this, to keep a holy government over our thoughts and to abhor and cast out lustful thoughts out of our minds with detestation.

6. Keep a strict guard and watch over thy outward sences, par­ticularly thine eyes Oculi sunt in a­more du­ces. [...], ut est in veteri verbo. and ears. Job said he had made a Covenant with his eyes, Job 31.1. that is, he was carefull to keep his eyes from gazing upon, and his mind from thinking upon a maid, so as to lust after her. Stop thy ears also against all filthy and unclean discourse. For filthy tales and stories do strangely cor­rupt the Phansie and stick odiously in the memory. Therefore if thou be so unhappy at any time as to fall into such company where such discourse is used and such tales are told, shew thy dislike of them, and be sure never to tell them again. For such discourse is pestilential and infectious.

7. Be diligent in thy particular calling, and keep thy mind well imployed. Otia si tollas periere cupidinis arcus. Avoid idleness,Quaeritur Aegystus quare sit fact­us adulter? In promptu causa est, de­sidiosus erat. Facito aliquid operis, ut semper in­veniat te diabolus occupatum. Vitium libidinis facile ex otio nascitur. Nam d [...]finitio amoris est animae vacantis passio, Chrysost. in Math. and you take a­way a great occasion to lust. 'Tis observed of David, that when he was idle, he fell in­to that dreaful sin of adultery. A laborious diligent person hath his body subdued and his mind imployed and taken up with better things. The rich and the idle are usually the persons that are most under this tempta­tion.

8. Keep modest and sober company where thou shalt neither see nor hear any thing unseemly. Fornication and all uncleanness, let it not be named among you as becometh Saints, sayes the Apo­stle, Ephes. 5.3. Evil communication corrupts good manners, 1 Cor. 15.33. The filthy talk and tales and stories, and son­nets of some profane persons, how exceedingly do they corrupt the minds of others. Let dogs and crows feed on Carrion: Ra­tional men loath such rotten and abominable stuff. True Chri­ans [Page 334] abhor all impure discourse and all immodest actions.

9. Shun and avoid such things as may be occasions, incentives and temptations to this sin. Such as these.

1. Lascivious dancings. I say lascivious. For I acknowledge there may be dancings that are modest, decent and inoffensive. But there are some that are not so, especially among the meaner sort, which many times are rude and uncivil, and too often are introductions to worse evils and mischiefs.

2. Stage-playes. That there are some of them less evil and offensive than others is not improbable. But if we may believe those that have much frequented them (as they are commonly used in our Nation) they do a great deal of mischief. For besides the danger that does often arise from the ill company that fre­quents them, and the great mispence of pretious time (which should be better imployed) in the seeing and hearing of them; 'tis said they represent vice in such a manner (especially this sin of uncleanness) as makes it seem a very small mat­ter and a thing meerly to be laughed atThe morals of some of our Comedians seem to be little better than his in Terence. Non est fla­gitium (mihi crede) adolescentulum scortari neque potare. Mitio in Adelphis. and many of their expressions and gestures seem rather to teach it than to make people out of love with it and to abhor it as God would have us. If these things be so, I see not that he did much mistake who called them the Devils Lectures. For as the pious and serious exhortations of faithful Ministers are bent to beat down lust and concupiscence which is so dangerous to the Soul, so it seems (quite contrary) these Playes design with all the wit, art, and eloquence they can to stir it up and excite it, and by their lascivious and immoral expres­sions infuse such an infection into the Phansie, and put such thoughts into the mind, which the corruption of nature in those that have had modest education would hardly ever have suggested. And 'tis no wonder that they are so much frequented. For as 'twas observed by the Philosophers of old, many turned from other Sects to the Epicureans, but scarce any from the Epicureans to other sorts. The reason was because mans nature is so incli­ned to sensuality. I shall say no more upon this particular but [Page 335] only this, I never knew any get good by frequenting of them, I believe many have got a great deal of hurt.

3. Lascivious books, such as are Play-books, Romances, amorous Poems and Sonnets; such books as these certainly do a great deal of hurt, especially to the youth of the Nation. If one great remedy (as I have shewed before) against all sorts of unclean­ness be the preserving of our thoughts (as much as possibly we can) from all unclean imaginations and phansies, surely those books that suggest ugly and immoral things to the mind (as amorous books usually do) must needs be great depravers of man­kind, and great teachers of vice and immorality. And they that desire in such arguments to shew their wit to the poisoning of the minds of men, do therein declare that they want very much the true wisdom which would teach them better things. There is indeed a kind of scurrilous and obscene wit that makes fools laugh, but wise men frown. And they that love to have their sensuality tickled and excited, delight in such things and in such Books. There is a grave Author who has this conceit concerning good men who write and leave good books to the world that instruct it in Piety and Virtue, namely, that as their books (after their decease) do good and turn men to righteousness, so their joyes in heaven shall be encreased. And contrarily, that wicked men who write, and leave such books to the World which corrupt it with error and immorality, as their books do hurt and mischief, (after their decease) so their torments in hell (they dying im­penitently) shall be increased. Methinks the very apprehension of this should make all men take heed what books they send out into the world, and should put them often upon serious conside­ration beforehand whether the r books be like to do good or hurt to mankind. And if those that write corrupting books did but consider this; surely they would burn their papers before they should ever see the light.

4. Lascivious Pictures, which are dangerous provocations and incentives to Lust. There are in some Families strange and shamefull pictures framed no doubt to excite the lusts of the flesh, which all good Christians should remember they are engaged in their Baptism to fight against and to endeavour to subdue. Such Pictures as these no modest eyes can indure to behold. Methinks [Page 336] where there is any thing of virtue or civility, any thing of hu­manity or good breeding. Such odious Pictures should be abomi­nated and cast away as a detestable thing. And though there may be much art shewn in such draughts, yet the exquisiteness of such Pictures as these no modest eye can indure to behold. Methinks the art will never compensate for the immorality and infectiousness of the Picture.

5. Lascivious dresses. A modest and comely adornment of the body does very much declare the modesty and purity of the mind. But a garish, immodest dress, naked breasts and shoulders, what do they declare but a vain and frothy mind, to say no worse. And what a great offence do these things give to those that are serious and sober. Nay, (they say) the Pope himself hath se­verely prohibited this practice to the Ladies of Rome, as being immodest and unseemly. And methinks we that are Protestants should have a greater zeal for chastity and purity than the Pope. And as for painting and spotting the face and hanging out the signes of half moons and stars and the like, why do they do it (said once a Reverend Divine of our Church) if they do not intend to entertain strangers? But alas! he that shall go about to reprove these things in so corrupt and degenerate an age as this is, is like to get little more by it, than to be laughed at for his pains. But let them laugh on and laugh to the end if they can, while the faithful reprover having discharged his conscience, leaves the suc­cess to God.

10. If other remedies will not do, make use of the reme­dy of Gods own appointment, which is lawful wedlock, ob­serve what the Apostle sayes, 1 Cor. 7.2, 9. For the avoiding of fornication, let every man have his own wife, and euery woman her own husband. For better is it to marry than to burn. And if any shall say they fear poverty and a great charge will come upon them if they should marry, let them consider that it is a thousand times better to lead a poor life in the fear of God (according to his own ordinance which he hath sanctified) than to defile their bo­dies and Souls with uncleanness and impurity though they might gain never so much of the world by such a course. I shall shut up this discourse with the advice of pious Mr. Herbert in his Church-Porch.

Wholly abstain, or wed: Thy bounteous Lord
Allows thee choice of paths: take no by-wayes
But gladly welcome what he doth afford;
Not grudging that thy lust hath bounds and stayes.
Continence hath its joies, weigh both, and so
If rottenness have more, let heaven go.

CHAP. VII. Of Discontent.

IN treating of this Argument, I shall speak to these six Par­ticulars.

1. I shall shew what Discontent is.

2. The great sinfulness of it.

3. The Folly of it.

4. Shall shew what true Christian Contentment is, and wherein the nature of it consists.

5. Shall shew the amiableness, and excellency of it.

6. Shall give some directions and means for the attaining of it.

For the First. Discontent is an unquiet frame of heart under our present condition, and expresses it self in murmuring and re­pining thereat. For commonly inward vexing and repining, and outward complaining and murmuring go together.

2. The great sinfulness of it may appear to us in these Parti­culars.

1. 'Tis a quarrelling the wisdom of God, and a secret accusing and taxing his Providence, Non ju­dicandum de provi­dentia di­vina ante quintum actum. as if he did not wisely order the Lots and Conditions of his People. Holy Job under his great afflictions was far from this temper; For though he suffered so deeply, yet he charged not God with folly in that severe dispen­sation towards him. But said, the Lord giveth and the Lord ta­keth away, blessed be the name of the Lord, Job 1.21, 22.

2. 'Tis a quarrelling his Fatherly care over us, as if he had not any love or affection to us or any regard of us.

3. 'Tis a quarrelling his Faithfulness, as if he would not per­form the many gracious promises he has made for our good.

4. 'Tis a secret accusing of his Justice, as if he dealt hardly with us, and punished us more than our sins deserved.Qui in poenis mur­murat, fe­rientis justitiam accusat.

5. 'Tis a carriage very unworthy of the hope and expectation of a Christian. He that hath his Peace made with God in Christ, and a title to an heavenly inheritance, should endeavour from that consideration to calm and compose his soul under his greatest suf­ferings.

6. 'Tis unanswerable to the experience we have had of Gods former gracious dealing with us, and helping of us out of straits and difficulties.

7. 'Tis a great gratification to Satan. We cannot gratifie the Devil more (who is a Male-contented Spirit) than to murmur against our Creator. To be of a discontented unquiet Spirit is to be like the Devil. He is restless and unquiet, always in opposition to God, alwayes fretting at his dispensations.

8. 'Tis a betraying and exposing us to great temptations. The Devil scarce ever has so great power over any as over those that are discontented. Oh the direful things he draws such persons unto. My heart even akes when I think of them, and my hand is ready to tremble while I write of them. Some of them he draws to make a formal Covenant with himself. Others to do such things against themselves that even nature abhors. So that all that love themselves should beg of God to keep them, and should watch over themselves as to this particular sin. For let them assure themselves that nothing betrayes us sooner into the Devils hands than discon [...]ent. It is a stock he uses to graffe his temp­tations upon. The Devil will desire no greater advantage against a soul than to find it in such a temper. He is never more busie about any than such persons, and usually makes dangerous use of the unquietness and repining of their spirits.

9. 'Tis such a temper as exceedingly unfits us for holy duties and for the service which otherwise we might do for God. And so much of the sinfulness of Discontent.

3. I come now in the third place to shew the folly of it.

1. 'Tis vain and bootless. For as one of the Antients well said, the miseries and evils we suffer, and at which we are so apt to be vexed and troubled, are either such as we can remedy or such as we cannot remedy. If they be such as we cannot remedy, then what a folly is it to vex and fret at them, seeing it is impossible [Page 340] to help them. Our Lesson then is Patience and Submission.Levius fit patien­tia quic­quid corri­gere est ne­fas. But if the evils we suffer be such as are remediable, then let us not vex or fret at them, but let us use all care and diligence to help our selves and to remedy them; And this is good advice, though given by a Heathen Philosopher.

2. It takes away the comfort of what we enjoy. If a man enjoyes a thousand mercies (in which he ought to rejoyce, and for which he ought to be thankfull) yet if his mind be discon­tented they will all seem as nothing to him. So that no one thing bereaves a man more of the comfort he might enjoy in his life than discontent.

3. It makes our afflictions worse: A discontented person is like a man in a feaver, that by his tossing and tumbling more in­creases his heat; Or like a Bird in the lime-twigs which the more it flutters the more it intangles it self.

4. It provokes God oftentimes to send new and more afflicti­ons upon us. What did the Israelites get by mumuring in the Wilderness but a longer stay in the Wilderness. Children that sob and are stomachful after whipping commonly get another ano­ther whipping for their pains.

5. It makes a mans life very uneasie both to himself and his relations and to all that are about him. No body cares to be near such persons as are alwayes murmuring and complaining. And so much of this folly of Discontent.

4. I come now in the fourth place to shew what Christian Con­tentment is, and wherein the nature of it consists.

'Tis a sweet quiet gracious frame of Spirit freely submitting to Gods alwise and fatherly disposal of us in every condition. There are some things that this gracious frame may consist with, and some things that are opposite to it. (1.) It may consist with a due sensibleness of Gods hand in afflicting of us. 'Tis not a Sto­ical apathy or insensibility. The Apostle gives us an excellent Rule (taken out of the Proverbs of Solomon, Prov. 3.11.) how we should carry our selves under afflictions, Heb. 12.5. My Son despise not thou the chastening of the Lord, nor faint when thou art rebuked of him. Some bold and secure sinners are apt to de­spise and disregard the correcting hand of God; the weaker sort of Christians are apt to sink in spirit, and faint under their affli­ctions. Now the Apostle advises us to steer between these two, [Page 341] namely, to be sensible of Gods hand when it is upon us, and yet not to faint or despond under it. (2.) It may consist with an humble complaint to God or man. We may groan under our Afflictions but we ought not to grumble. (3.) It may consist with seeking out for help and ease in a lawful way. For that is our duty and God expects it from us. But now the things opposite to it are. (1.) Inward fretting, vexing, and tumultuation of spirit, and ri­sing of the heart against the Almighty. (2.) Sinking of Spirit desponding and despairing of help. (3.) Outward murmuring complaining and repining. (4.) Sinful shifts to help our selves. And so much of the nature of true Christian contentment.

5. I come now to shew the amiableness and excellency of this frame of Spirit.

1. True Christian contentment is not a single grace but a con­stellation, a cluster of many graces, particularly of Faith, Pati­ence, Humility, and self-denial. As the perfumed oyl that was poured upon Aarons head was made up of several sweet ingredi­ents; so is this grace a compound of many other graces; Where this is, we may assure our selves there are many graces exerci­sed.

2. 'Tis a frame and temper highly pleasing to God. The A­postle tells us, 1 Pet. 3.4. That a meek and a quiet spirit is in the sight of God of great price. There is hardly a higher commen­dation of any grace in the Scripture. That must needs be very excellent which is by God himself so highly esteemed.

3. 'Tis a frame of Spirit that gives God his due. They that are endued with it do acknowledge God as their Lord and owner. They acknowledge his plenary dominion over them. And 'tis fit and comely that we who received our life and being from God, should own his Soveraignty and dominion over us.

4. 'Tis a frame of Spirit that will be greatly rewarded; For the more contented any man is the greater is his obedience to God, and the greater his obedience the greater will be his reward. Be­sides, even in this world a placid, quiet, sedate frame of heart makes our life easie and delightful and so carries its reward along with it, whereas a turbulent discontented frame of Spirit disorders and disquiets a man beyond all expression. And so much of the amiableness of this s [...].

6. I come now to give some Directions for the attaining of it.

1. Mortify Pride which is the seminary of many sins, especially of this of repining. Compare your sufferings and your sins together, and see whether your sins be not far more than your sufferings. Consider therefore not so much what you feel as what you de­serve.

2. Consider how many mercies and blessings you daily enjoy, and stir up your self to be exceeding thankful for them. Thank­fulness and discontent cannot stand together. Therefore when ever you find your self tempted to unquietness of mind, think of your mercies, and provoke and stir up your heart to be thank­ful to God for them; and that will drive away your discontent.

3. Consider wherein the happiness of man consists, and la­bour to secure that happiness to your self. Do not estimate the happiness of man by the opinion of worldly men who think those men only happy who are rich and enjoy the pleasures and delights of the world. But remember that mans true happiness consists in reconciliation with God through Christ, in conformity of our natures to him, in living holily and righteously, and being serviceable to God in our Generation according to our several capaci­ties. If it be thus with us, we are happy what ever our condition be in this world. People are much mistaken in the nature of good and evil and have not the true measures of it. That is good to a man which makes him better, and that is evil to him which makes him worse. Now ordinarily ten to one receive more hurt by prosperity than by adversity.

4. Look downward on those beneath you and not upward on those above you. 'Tis a very ill natured thing for any man to think himself miserable because he sees another to have higher en­joyments than himself. There is scarce a greater folly and un­happiness incident to humane nature than a fond admiration of other mens enjoyments and a contempt of, and discontent at our own. Look not upward therefore on those above you but look down­ward and you will find the world to be like a great Hospital full of poor, sick, distracted, diseased, pained, afflicted persons, and how many thousands will you find with whom you would be loath to change conditions. 'Twas a good speech of one of the Ancients who said, if all mens sufferings were put into one common bank men would choose rather to go away with their own share than take their dividend of the common calamities. Nay, consider how ma­ny [Page 343] of Gods own Children have suffered for worse things than any you have suffered. He that has his understanding and all his sen­ses intire, has in that an over-ballance to most outward adversities. Consider therefore how many mercies thou dost still enjoy. Mur­mur not at what thou hast lost but be thankful for what thou hast left.

5. Consider no affliction comes out of the dust. It is the Lord that brings us and our afflictions together. No warrant comes to arrest our bodies with pain but it comes under the hand and seal of heaven. No Habeas-Corpus to remove any friend or relation of ours, but it comes under the hand and seal of the great judge. No affliction happens to us but it is reached out by the hand of God our Creator to whom we ow subjection as having received our being from him. Let us look therefore beyond instruments, for they are but the servitors to put the cup into our hands which our heavenly Father hath given us to drink.

6. Let us consider what part God hath appointed every one of us to act in this World, and let us labour to act that part well not trou­bling our selves about the parts that others are appointed to act. The world is a great stage; 'Tis not so much material what part we are to act, provided we act it well. He that is appointed to act the part of a Servant and does it well is as much commended and rewarded as he that acted the part of a Master. In the bo­dy of man the foot is of great use though not of so much as the head; It must not therefore complain because it is not the head. Let every one duly consider the place and station God hath put him in, and the part and particular duty he requires of him, and let him set himself with all faithfulness to perform it, not mur­muring at the part given to another.

7. A great help to contentment is to enjoy the present thankful­ly and not to be over solicitous about the future. Wouldst thou live contentedly? Be not over thoughtful for to morrow but cast all thy cares on God, who hath promised that he will never leave nor forsake those that are his, Heb. 13.5.

8. Interpret all Gods providences so as intended to draw thee nearer to him and none of them to drive thee away from him. In very faithfulness hast thou afflicted me, saith David, Psal. 119.75. Consider, God has very gracious ends in afflicting his own people. (1.) Sanctified affliction is one of the most awake­ning [Page 344] calls to repentance imaginable, and to this end God usually designs it. As he sayes by the Prophet, Hosea 5.15. I will go and return to my place till they acknowledge their offence and seek my face. In their affliction they will seek me early. Josephs Brethren are a great instance of this, who when they were put into prison and brought into distress, then their consciences began to tell them how they had used their Brother Joseph, Gen. 24.21. Verily we are guilty concerning our Brother in that we saw the anguish of his soul when he besought us and we would not hear, therefore is this distress come upon us. (2.) By sanctified afflictions he calls for the exercise of their Faith, Patience, Humility, Self-denial, and will crown and reward the exercise of these graces which he himself hath planted in them. (3.) Hereby he crucifies their hearts to the world. As Nurses lay worm-wood or some bitter thing up­on their nipples when they intend to wean their Children, so God imbitters the world oftentimes to his own Children, to wean them from it. We read how Antigonus seeing a Soldier of his ven­ture upon any danger, and observing withal that he was very sickly, took care to have him recovered to good health; which done, the man would not expose himself as before he had used to do, alledging that now his life was of more value to him and not to be hazarded as when it was only a burden. Thus we see how prosperi­ty makes men love the World whilst afflictions wean them from it. (4.) Hereby he quickens their devotion and excites the spirit of prayer in them, whereas before (possibly) they were too cold and formal in their prayers, now they pray earnestly. How did Daniel pray in the Lions den? How did Jonah pray in the Whales belly? How did the three Worthies pray in the fiery fur­nace? People under afflictions pray at another rate than those do who are at ease and in prosperity. (5.) Hereby he conforms them unto his Son who was a man of sorrows and acquainted with griefs. And the Apostle tells us, Rom. 8.17. If we suffer with him we shall also be glorified with him.

9. Take heed of all eager and inordinate desires. There is scarce any thing in this world more dangerous to a man than such vehement desires. Omnis inordinatus appetitus sibi ipsi poena est. Commonly God crosses eager desires, and there is not a more rea­dy way to miss any thing we have a mind unto, or to have it cur­sed to us, than over eagerly to desire it. Strong affections breed [Page 345] strong afflictions. Alas! we are very unmeet choosers for our selves. We see not what that person or that place or that thing we so eagerly desire, may prove. Many have been ready with Rachel to say, give me children or else I die, when those children (they have so earnestly desired) have afterwards broken their hearts with grief and vexation at their ill-carriage. Whenever therefore we find any eager desires or longings in our selves after any wordly thing, we should be afraid of them and check them as foreboding ill to us. And further, we should consider how much our eager desires after worldly things do shame and aggravate the weakness of our spiritual desires. We can eagerly long for this or that worldly accommodation, can hardly sleep for thinking of it, but for heaven or heavenly things how cold, how indifferent are we.

10. Seeing true Christian contentment is a lesson taught only in Christs School, let us all be willing to be his Scholars and put our selves into his School. Paul learnt this lesson here. I know how to be abased, and I know how to abound, I am instructed both to be full and to be hungry, both to abound and to suffer need. I can do all (these) things through Christ strengthning of me. Phil. 4.12, 13. Philosophers have many precepts and directions about contentment; but alass they are all short of teaching this lesson effe­ctually. Lipsius that had written a book de Stoica Philosophia, and had gathered together many of their precepts of Patience, when he came to dye, a friend of his told him of that book, and advised him to remember what he had there written (yes sayes he) but Domine da mihi patientiam Christianam. Lord give me Christian Patience; for that is it which I now need. But if this lesson be only taught in Christs School, you will ask me how does Christ teach it? I answer, he teaches it three wayes, by his word, by his example, and by his Spirit. (1.) He teaches it by the Precepts of his word, whereby he enjoyns and commands it, Luke 21.19. In your Pa­tencei possess your souls, 1 Tim. 6.11. Follow after righteousness, Faith, Love, Patience Meekness, Jam. 1.4. Let Patience have its perfect work that you may be intire, wanting nothing. 2 Pet. 1.6. Add to Faith Temperance to Temperance Patience to Patience Godliness. Because thou hast kept the word of my Patience (saith the Angel to the Church of Philadelphia) that is, my word which I commanded thee, to be Patient. I will also keep thee from the hour of temptation. (2.) Christ teaches it by the Promises of [Page 346] his word. He hath made many gracious promises in his word, which are a great means to support his people and to frame their hearts to contentation in every condition. In Heb. 13.5. He hath made a promise of provision for them. Be content with such things as you have, For he hath said I will never leave thee nor forsake thee, Psal. 34.10. The young Lions do lack and suffer hunger, but they that seek the Lord shall not want any good thing. In Psal. 91.11. He hath made a promise of protection unto them. He shall give his Angels charge over thee to keep thee in all thy wayes, Heb. 1.14. Are not they all ministring Spirits sent forth to minister for them that shall be heirs of Salvation. In Jam. 1.5. He hath made a promise of counsel to those that are in perplexity and under trouble. If any man lacketh wisdom (that is, to dir [...]ct him how to govern himself under any afflicted con­dition) Let him ask it of God who giveth liberally and upbraid­eth not, 2 Cor. 7.6. He hath made a promise of comfort to those that are unde [...] great fears and apprehensions of dangers. There the Apostle tells us that He is a God who comforteth those that are cast down. In Esai. 41.10. He hath made a Promise to strengthen his People under great pressures. Fear thou not for I am with thee, Be not dismai'd for I am thy God; I will strengthen thee, yea I will help thee, yea I will uphold thee with the right hand of my righteousness. In Rom. 8.28. He hath made a pro­mise to order all things for their good. We know (sayes the Apostle) that all things work together for good to them that fear God. (3.) Christ teaches it by his own example. Learn of me (saith our Saviour, Mat. 11.29.) For I am meek and lowly in heart, and ye shall find rest to your Souls. How ready was he to comply with his Fathers will? The Cup that my Father hath given me to drink, shall I not drink it, sayes he, John 18.11. and Luke 22.42. Father if thou be willing remove this Cup from me, yet not my will but thy will be done, 1 Pet. 2.21. Christ suffered for us leaving us an example that we should follow his steps, who when he was reviled reviled not again, when he suffered he threatned not, but committed himself to him that judgeth righteously. 4. He teacheth this lesson by his Spirit. Now the spirit teach­eth contentment these wayes. (1.) By convincing the Soul of the reasonablnest of it. He shews that it is most fit and reasonable, that God being our Creator and having absolute soveraignty and do­minion [Page 347] over us, and being infinitely wise, holy, just and gracious, we should submit to him and lie at his feet. (2.) By strength­ning our faith in the promises of God. (3.) By strengthning our hearts to bear the burden of afflictions, Eph. 3.16. We are strengthned (sayes the Apostle) with might by his spirit in the inner man. And Col. 1.11. Strengthned with all might ac­cording to his glorious power unto all patience and long suffering with joyfulness. And 2 Tim. 1.7. God hath not given us the Spirit of fear, but of power, of love, and of a sound mind. (4.) By shedding abroad a sense of Gods love into our hearts, Rom. 8.16. The spirit beareth witness with our spirits that we are the Children of God, and if Children, then heirs, heirs of God and j ynt heirs with Christ. And so we rejoyce in hope of the glo­ry of God. Rom. 5.2. And this hope maketh not ashamed, be­cause the love of God is shed abroad in our hearts by the H [...]ly-Ghost which is given unto us. And thus we see how Christ teacheth this lesson by his word, by his example and by h [...]s Spirit. Would yo [...] learn this lesson, put your selves under Christs insti­tution. Particularly labour to practice these things.

1. Break off your sins by true repentance, and secure the par­don and forgiveness of all your transgressions by Faith in Christs blood. A condemned man hath no contentment in any thing he enjoys. But a man pardoned is content and well pleased with a Morsel. The Apostle tells us, Rom, 8.1. There is no condem­nation to them that are in Christ Jesus. There may be much tribulation to such, but (thanks be to God) no condem­nation.

2. Labour to be holy in all manner of conversation. For God­liness is profitable unto all things, having the promises of this life and t [...]at which is to come, 1 Tim. 4.8 Keep and cherish a good consci [...]ce and a good conscience, will cherish and comfort you.

3. Prepare for afflictions, and think it no strange thing when they happen to you. And when they come, meet them as discreet Abigal met David. Let not my Lord be angry. Beg of God that though he do chastise thee, yet he would not be angry w th thee. Earnestly implore him that though there be much bitterness, yet there may be no wrath in thy Cup. And pray also that all your affli­ctions may be sanctified to you and may do you that good which [Page 348] God sent them for. And be more careful of your carriage under afflictions than troubled at them.

4. Moderate your desires after worldly things. Though God cut you short as to the things of the world, yet think often of your portion and inheritance in the other life. Take Mr. Her­berts pious counsel. Pag. 131.

Content thee greedy heart!
Modest and moderate Joyes to those that have!
Title to more hereafter when they part,
Are passing brave.
Let the upper Springs into the low
Descend, and fall, and thou dost flow.
What though some have a fraught
Of Cloves and Nutmegs, and in Cinnamon sail,
If thou hast wherewithal to spice a draught,
When griefs prevail,
And for the future time art heir
To the Isle of Spices, is't not fair?

5. Be humble under a sense of your own weakness, and earnest­ly beg strength from Christ to inable you to be content in eve­ry condition. A Believers strength both for doing and suffering the will of God, is from Christ, Psal. 131.3. When I cried unto thee (saies the Psalmist) thou strengthnedst me with strength in my Soul.

6. When thou art strengthned to bear afflictions with a quiet placid and sedate mind, give all the glory unto Christ, and say as Paul did, 1 Tim. 1.12. I thank Christ Jesus our Lord who hath enabled me.

7. Be not secure but watch and pray lest you enter into temptati­on. Moses though the meekest man upon the earth in his time, yet once fell into such a fit of discontent and passion, and spake so un­advisedly with his lips, that God was angry with him and would not let him go into Canaan. Now if a person of so eminent grace so failed, what eruption of discontent may we be subject to, if left to our selves.

CHAP. VIII. Of Covetousness and Earthly-mindedness.

IN handling of this Subject I shall proceed in this Me­thod.

  • 1. I shall shew what Covetousness it.
  • 2. In what particulars it discovers it self.
  • 3. The causes of it.
  • 4. The marks and characters of such as are cove­tous.
  • 5. The great evil of it.
  • 6. I shall give some directions, and prescribe some remedies against it.

For the First. Covetousness is an inordinate and excessive love of riches, and an immoderate desire and hankering after them. The simple desire so riches is not Covetousness, but an inordinate and over-greedy desire of them. And therefore this sin is especially in the heart. One may have little and yet be Covetous. One may be rich and yet free from Covetousness.

2. Covetousness discovers it self in these Particulars.

1. In getting wealth unconscionably without regard either to Piety, Equity, Justice, Charity or Humanity. When men have their hearts so bent and set upon the World that they use indirect means to get it, such as are Oppressi­on, Over-reaching, Cheating, Lying, Stealing. And so in treasuring up Wealth they treasure up wrath to them­selves.

2. In an unduede taining and with-holding from the Poor [Page 350] (through hard-heartedness and penuriousness) what is fit to be given to them. When a man is so strait-hearted and strait-handed in works of Charity, so cruel, so hard, and miserable that he gives not at all to the poor, or very little, and only what is extorted from him with great difficulty and importunity. When men are continually hoarding up for themselves, but have no bowels or pity for the poor or their indigent relations; and though they have enough and abound, yet are inordinately carking and caring for more still, being perplexed with an Infidel fear lest they should want when they are old. Like Symo­nides who being asked why he was Covetous in his old age, Answered, I had rather leave riches to my enemies when I die, than stand in need of my friends while I live.

3. In spending too sparingly and niggardly, when men that have plentiful estates have not hearts to allow them­selves necessaries Avaro deest tam quod ha­bet quam quod non habet. Haec est mani­festa p [...]re­nesis ut lo­cuples mo­riatis, egen tis vivere fato. neither decent apparel nor convenient food. When they pinch their own bellies, and the bellies of those they are to provide for. Like the man described by Solomon, Eccles. 6.1, 2. There is an evil which I have seen under the Sun, and it is common among men. A man to whom God hath given riches and wealth, yet he hath not power to eat thereof, but a stranger eateth it. This is vanity, and an evil disease. And so likewise Eccles. 4.8. There is one alone and there is not a second. Yea he hath neither Child nor Brother, yet there is no end of all his labour nor is his eye satisfied with riches. Such men (as one ex­presses it) are like the Asse that carries Gold for others, but it self feeds on thistles.

And so much of the Particulars wherein Covetousness expres­ses it self.

3. I come now to consider the causes of Covetousness. And they are such as these.

1. False notions and apprehensions about riches, and too high an esteem of the things of the World. They think the happiness of man consists in having plenty and abundance. [Page 351] And upon this conceit wealth so steals away their hearts that they make it their God. They will tell you what So­lomon sayes, that money answereth all things, Eccles. 10.19. that is, it will buy any thing that can be bought here; and therefore they that have money in their purse have the world at their will. But I shall tell them also what the Apostle sayes, Godliness is profitable for all things (which Money I am sure is not) having the promises of this life and that which is to come, 1 Tim. 4.8. Godli­ness makes men rich without riches, rich in Faith and Holiness, rich in this, that God is reconciled to them in his Son, and they have his favour shining upon them here, and have a good title to Heaven hereafter. I know the World is ready to say of a man that hath gotten wealth, O such a man is made, whereas (except God give him grace with his riches) he may thereby be marred. He may be made indeed in one sense, that is, made more proud more imperious, more irreligious, more idle, more luxurious than he was before, but that is far from being any felicity to himself, or any benefit to others. The World has very little judgment in the true nature of good and evil. That is truly good for a man which makes him better towards God, and that is evil for him which makes him worse. Indeed riches when honestly got are Gods blessings, and so ought to be esteemed by us, and we ought to be very thankful to God for them. But by reason of the corruption of mans heart they are often to many men snares, yea, very dangerous snares. Riches without grace usually hurt the Possessor. I have seen riches reserved to the hurt of the owners thereof sayes Solomon, Eccles. 5.13. And not only to their hurt, but to the hurt of many others round about them. Many men had never been so great sinners nor had they dishonoured God nor hurt and corrupted others at so high a rate, if they had not been so great and rich in this World. Our Savi­our therefore Mark 10.23. sayes, How hardly shall they that have riches enter into the Kingdom of God? that is, that have riches, but not grace to make a right use and im­provement of them. There are indeed great temptations [Page 352] in Poverty. But I think we may truly say, that if the temptations of Poverty have slain their thousands the temp­tations of riches have slain their ten thousands. I know Solo­mon sayes no man can know love or hatred by these outward things, Eccles. 9.1. that is, we cannot know Gods love or hatred to us by the meer outward dispensations either of riches or poverty, prosperity or adversity; but we may by the inward impressions that are made upon our hearts by those dispensations. He to whom God giveth riches and withal an humble, thankful, charitable, beneficent frame of heart, to him they are given in mercy. But he who hath riches and by them is made more proud, insolent, vain, wanton, intemperate, oppressive, injurious than he was before, I think hath no great cause to imagine his riches are given him in mercy.

2. Another cause of Covetousness is mans diffidence and distrust of Gods fatherly care and providence over them. Ignorance of God and distrust of God usually go toge­ther. They that know thy name will trust in thee (saith the Psalmist, Psal. 9.10.) For thou hast not forsaken them that seek thee. They that know thy name, that is, thy nature and attributes, they that know how infinitely wise, gracious, merciful, faithful thou art, will put their trust in thee, but they that are ignorant of thee will not trust in thee but in their own wisdom and providence. Men usually take it very ill, when they see they are not trusted. How much more may the great God of Heaven, take it ill from us when he sees we dare not trust him. It is an engagement upon the Almighty (to speak with reverence) to trust in him, to depend on him and to cast our cares on him. But it must needs be a great provocati­on to him to distrust him. Therefore our Saviour in Mark 6. from 25. to the end charges his Disciples three several times to take no thought for their life what they should eat or drink, or for their body what they should put on, for about these things the Gentiles (that knew not God nor acknowledged Providence) inordinately carked and cared. But those that professed themselves his Disciples [Page 353] should seek in the first place the Kingdom of God and his righteousness, and for other things they should not be over anxious, but believe that God in the use of lawfull and fair means would bestow them upon them, as far forth as he saw to be good for them.

3. Another cause of Covetousness is this, men live by sense more than by Faith. The Apostle tells us, Heb. 11.2. that Faith is the evidence of things not seen; that is, it doth convincingly shew and demonstrate the reality of things not seen. And 2 Cor. 4.18. He shews the dif­ferent temper of the true Christian from the man of the World. The true Christian chiefly minds the things unseen. The men of the World mind chiefly the things seen. The one minds things temporal the other things eternal. Some persons have three eyes (as one observes) the eye of sense, the eye of reason, and the eye of faith. Worldly men have the two former the eye of sense and rea­son, but they want the eye of Faith. They see what it is to have a good estate, a good house, a good stock, to have pleasant accommodations for this life. But for Heaven and the other life they never spake with any body that came from thence, and they do not much give them­selves to consider what kind of life that is that is there lived. They savor and relish earthly things, but spiri­tual things seem to them to have no tast in them. But the true Christian exercises himself in the meditation of things invisible, and lives in the believing views of the excellency and reality of those things, and by faith ascer­tains them to himself. The Martyrs had their hearts set on things unseen. The invisible comforts and recom­penses of the other life bore up their hearts against the terrors of visible and present torments. And so much of the causes of Covetousness.

4. I come now to shew what are the marks and characters of such as are Covetous and Earthly-minded, and who may be stiled men of the World.

1. Men whose knowledge and skill lyes only or chiefly about the things of the world. They are shrowd understanding men in worldly matters, but in the things of God and such as concern their Souls and their everlasting welfare meer Children. In the things that concern their trades or pro­fessions they are notable men, but talk with them about the Covenant of Grace, about Conversion and Regeneration, about the true nature of Repentance or Faith, and they know little.

2. Their hearts are chiefly set on these things. The things of the World they love and affect, as being sutable to their spirits. The Apostle commands us 1 John 2.15. Not to love the World nor the things of the World; for all the things of the World may be reduced to these three heads, the lust of the flesh or sensual pleasures, the lust of the eye or riches and such things as are seen with the eyes, and the pride of life, that is, preferments and honours. But though the Apostle commands we should not set our hearts or affections on these things, yet this is the Worlds Trinity, and more adored by them than Father, Son and Holy-Ghost.

3. Their discourse is chiefly about these things. 1 John 4.5. They are of the World therefore speak they of the World. Their breath is earthy which they say is a sign of death. Talk with them about worldly things, none more free to discourse than they. But speak to them of matters that concern their Souls, they have nothing to say. Such discourse is usually unpleasing to them.

4. Their pains and endeavoursRem Rem, quocunque modo Rem —Ocives querenda pecunia pri­mum est. Virtus post nummos. are only or chiefly for the things of the World. They take little pains about their own Souls or the souls of those under their care, but are mighty industrious about the things of the World; They rise early and sit up late to acquire them, but a short attendance upon religious duties and exercises what a weariness is it to them and they are ready to snuff at it as the Prophet speaks, Mal. 1.13. They take a great [Page 355] deal of care and pains how they may live here it may be ten or twenty or thirty years, but they take no thought how they should live a thousand years hence when they have left their bodies in the earth. Oh were the endea­vours of these men for the saving of their immortal pre­cious souls but any thing answerable to the pains they take to get the World, how happy might they be? God is not always pleased to bless and succeed the endea­vours of men who are very diligent in their calling, and painful and laborious to get wealth. God sees it best to keep them low. But what man ever was diligent and serious in seeking the things of eternal life, and working out his Salvation that did not find God assisting of him and prospering his endeavours?

5. They are very careful to secure to themselves those tem­poral things, but use no answerable care to secure to themselves things eternal. They are very careful about the Titles of their Lands and Purchases, and hardly ever think themselves secure enough. Let a Minister come to one of these men on his Death-bed and ask him concer­ning the evidences of his estate, he will tell him they are all safe in such a trunk or chest. But let him ask him what evidences he has that his Soul is in a safe condition. Alas! He has nothing to say; He has not minded those things. His Soul is left upon miserable uncertainties. He has taken no care to secure to himself erernalNulla satis magna secu [...]itas ubi peri­clitatur aeternitas. hap­piness. He has taken care to leave a clear estate to his children, but no care to clear his Soul of guilt or to deli­ver himself from the wrath that is to come.

6. They are commonly very solicitous about their own private interest, but little or nothing concerned about the interest of Christ or his Church. They are wholly and only for themselves. We read 1 Sam. 4.13. that old Eli's heart trembled for the Ark of God, which was the symbole of his gracious presence among them. But how little are worldly and earthly-minded men concerned how it fares with the Church of God, provided their [Page 356] own private worldly concernments be safe and secure?

7. These outward things they make their trust and confi­dence. They set their prime affections of love and trust upon them in that measure which is only due to God. The rich mans wealth is his strong City. Prov. 10.16. They make Gold their hope and fine Gold their confidence, Job 31.24. Their wealth is the Idol upon which they dote. Their confidence and trust is taken off from God and placed upon their riches. As the Psalmist speaks, Psal. 52.7. Lo these are the men that make not God their strength but trust in the abundance of their riches. And this their way is their folly and a course very injurious to God who should be the only object of our trust, and can only help us in a day of trouble. The Scripture doth frequently disswade men from such carnal confidence. 1 Tim. 6.17. Charge them that be rich in this World that they be not high-minded nor trust in uncertain riches, but in the living God. Psal. 62.10. If riches increase set not your hearts upon them. And our Saviour himself gives us this precept, Matth. 6.19. Lay not up for your selves treasures upon earth where moth and rust doth corrupt, and where thieves break through and steal; but lay up for your selves treasures in heaven, where neither moth nor rust doth corrupt and where thieves do not break through nor steal. For where your treasure is there will your hearts be also. And so much of the marks and characters of such as are earthly-minded.

5. I come now to shew the great evil of Covetousness and earth­ly-mindedness.

1. 'Tis a sin the Scripture testifies very much against. (1.) 'Tis called Idolatry, Ephes. 5.5. Col. 3.5. because the Covetous man lovesAmor tu­us, Deus tuus. his money more than God, and more trusts in it. (2.) 'Tis called the root of all evil, 1 Tim. 6.10. 'Tis the cause of Oppression, Extortion, Cheating, Lying, Theft, False-witness-bearing, breach of Promise, &c. It occasions a great deal of trouble to the [Page 357] World by Quarrelling, Contention, Law-Sutes and the like. He whose affections are inordinately set on money will not stick at the breach of any of Gods commandments. There is scarce any sin so base and vile but he that is un­der the power of Covetousness will venture to commit it for gain and advantage.Avaritia Christum vendidit. Therefore Davids prayer was, Psal. 119.36. Incline mine heart to thy testimonies and not to covetousness. He might have said and not to lust, or not to pride; but it seems he looked on Covetousness as a Mother-sin which was like to produce many other sins wherever it prevailed.

2. 'Tis a very close sin. 'Tis a sin hardly discerned, and so more hardly cured. 'Tis a secret subtil sin that hides it self under the cloak of frugality and good husbandry. A man may be free from unlawful getting, from deceit and injustice, and yet be earthly-minded for all that. If God should suffer a Professor to fall into drunkenness or uncleanness, his conscience would be sure to flye in his face, and severely talk with him. But people that are Covetous and Earthly-minded hardly discern themselves to be so, or think it no crime to be so, though the Apo­stle 1 Cor. 6.10. reckons the Covetous among those that shall not inherit the Kingdom of God.

3. 'Tis a very insnaring sin. They that will be rich sayes the Apostle (that is, that are resolved so to be either by hook or by crook) fall into temptation and a snare, 1 Tim. 6.9. Such persons will not stick at any thing that may promote their gain. They will not care to make shipwrack of their consciences to gain the world. And therefore Covetousness is many times the root of Aposta­cy. Dem [...]s hath forsaken me sayes the Apostle (2 Tim. 4.10.) having embraced the present world. Luke follows a suffering Paul, but Demas through the love of the world forsakes him.

4. 'Tis a great dishonour to the Christian Profession. What shall they that have Heaven set before them for a [Page 358] reward dote upon the earth? Shall they that pretend to understand the surpassing excellency of the things above, have their hearts and affections set on things below? The Psalmist sayes, Psal. 135.15. The Idols of the Heathen are silver and gold. 'Tis a shame that silver and gold should be the Idols of Christians. Therefore the Apostle writing to the converted Colossians Chap. 3. v. 1, 2. tells them that if they be risen with Christ they must set their affections on things above and not on things on the earth.

5. It much hinders profiting by the Wo [...]d. The Cares of this life choak the Word, Matth. 13.23. There are ma­ny come to hear the word, and sit before the Lord as his people, whose hearts go after their Covetousness, Ezek. 33.31. and so the word profits them not.

6. It unfits a man to be a good Magistrate or a good Mi­nister. A Magistrate should be a man fearing God, and hating Covetousness, Exod. 18.21. A Gospel Minister should not be greedy of filthy lucre, 1 Pet. 5.2. If either of them be under the power of Covetousness they are never like to discharge their duties faithfully.

7. 'Tis a very disquieting sin. It disquiets the hearts of men and deprives them of inward peace. They that co­vet after money pierce themselves through with many sorrows, sayes the Apostle, 1 Tim. 6.10. It creates also a great deal of trouble and disquiet to particular Families. He that is greedy of gain troubleth his own house sayes Solomon, Prov. 15.27. A covetous Master of a Family will make his Children and Servants very slaves and drudges and will hardly allow them things necessary and Conve­nient.

8. It exceedingly hinders a due preparation for death. They that have their hearts over-charged with Covetousness and the cares of this life seldom take their latter end into due consi­deration. How hardly (sayes our Saviour) shall they that have riches enter into the Kingdom of God, Math. [Page 359] 10.23. that is, that have their hearts set on their riches, and trust in them. Corpulent birds seldom flye high. Neither do they whose great care is to load themselves with thick Clay, Heb. 2.5, 6. mind Heaven or the things of the other life.

And so much of the evil of Covetousness.

6. I come now to give some directions, and to prescribe some remedies against it.

1. Labour to understand wherein the true happiness of man consists. Riches and wealth are not the distinguish­ing marks of the favour and love of God. Men may have them, and yet be of the number of them who have all their portion in this life, Psal. 17.14. God indeed does sometimes give riches to his own children, that they may appear to be his blssiengs. And to many of his own children he denies them, that they may appear not to be his chief blessings. The true happiness of man consists in reconciliation with God, in conformity of his nature to him, in having his Spirit dwelling in him and in being ser­viceable to him in his generation. He that hath these is truly rich, though he be poor in this World. And he that wants these though he flow in riches and wealth, yet I am not affraid to tell him he is for the present but a miserable man and in an unsafe condition.

2. Consider the people of God ought to have a great confidence in Gods Fatherly care over them. We are much pressed in Scripture to cast our care on God, Psal. 55.22. Cast thy burden on the Lord and he shall sustain thee, 1 Pet. 5.7. Cast all your care on him for he careth for you, Matth. 6.31. Take no thought for your life wha [...] you shall eat or what you shall drink, or for your body what you shall put on, but seek ye first the Kingdom of God and his righteousness, and all these things shall be added unto you. What makes children and servants less solicitous and anxious, less careful and covetous in their Parents and Masters house than when they are for them­selves? [Page 360] Why, they depend on their Parents and Masters to provide for them, and that sets them at ease as to that particular. And should not we then depend on the care and providence of our heavenly Father? Why should we not trust God for our bodies as well as for our souls, considering the many gracious promises he has made to take care of us? The Apostle uses this as a great argument against Covetousness and that we should be con­tent with such things as we have, because God hath said I will never leave thee nor forsake thee, Heb. 13.5.

3. We should labour to moderate our affections to the things of this World. Holy Agurs prayer was, Prov. 30.8. Give me neither Poverty nor Riches, but feed me with food convenient for me. Our Saviour tells Martha, Luke 10.42. that one thing is necessary. 'Tis not neces­sary we should be rich or learned, or healthful, or have a great name in this World; but 'tis absolutely necessary to our happiness that we should break off our sins by true repentance, that we should be converted, that we should sa­vingly close with Christ by Faith, that we should be new creatures, that we should live to the honour of God and good of the World. If these things be found in us, God hath given us the best portion, and therefore we may well be contented though he give us not so large a portion of the things of this life. Yea, upon this account in a good cause we ought to take joyfully the spoiling of our goods, or the loss of our estates, remembring that God hath given us a better portion that cannot be taken from us.

4. We should consider our Souls are Spirits and were made for higher things than meerly to grovel on the earth. Our Souls are our best part, and our greatest care should be to secure them. If it go well with the soul it will go well with the body also. But if the soul be lost and must suffer everlasting punishment, 'twere better we had been made Toads or Serpents than Men and rational creatures. Certainly it argues the great depra­vation [Page 361] of mans Soul that it should take so much care for the body how it may be cloathed and fed and how it may injoy all the delights which are suitable to it, and that it should take so little care of it self to secure unto it self eternal happiness. In order therefore to the secu­ring of our souls we should labour to possess our minds with right and sound principles, such as these, That the best part of man ought to have most care bestowed upon it, That things of everlasting consequence ought to be sought before things of meer temporal concernment, That things absolutely necessary ought to be sought in the first place, That he is a wise man that takes due care to save his soul, but he is a fool that to gain the World loses his Soul. Such Principles as these laid deep in our minds may be a great means to preserve us from an eager and greedy pursuit of the things of the world.

5. We should consider our time here is but short, 1 Cor. 7.29. therefore we had not need act the part of children and only follow bubbles. We have but a short winters-day of life to live. If a man come to a great City and have a great deal of business to do and but a short day to do it in, he had not need trifle, but mind the business seriously for which he came thither. Let us therefore mind our great business for which we came into the World, let us look to the main whatever else be neg­lected.

6. We should take heed of earthly-mindedness and pur­suing the things of the World too eagerly, lest that hap­pen to us which sometimes happens to those that dig in the mines of the earth, while they are eagerly digging and delving there, the earth falls on them on a sudden and miserably buries them. Let those that follow the World so hard (with the wretched neglect of their souls) and are loading themselves continually with thick clay take heed they be not at last crushed under it and perish by it.

7. We should set before our eyes the examples of the most eminent Saints and servants of God in all ages. They counted themselves but Pilgrims and strangers here, Heb. 13.37. and yet they were such of whom the world was not worthy. Scultetus observes that none of the Saints men­tioned in the Scripture were spotted with this sin of Covetousness. The Apostle tells us that Abraham sojour­ned in the Land of Promise as in a strange Country because he looked for a City which hath foundations, whose builder and maker is God. And the truth is, they that have God for their Father, Christ for their Redeemer, the Holy Ghost for their guide and comforter, the holy Angels for their Protectors, the Promises of God for their pre­sent support, and Heaven for their inheritance hereafter, should have their hearts withdrawn from worldly things and should more mind and think of their Countrey that is above.Dum mala pun­gunt bona promissa ungunt.

8. Those to whom God hath given riches in this World should consider that these are their particular duties.

1. They should labour to get the spiritual riches of grace which they may carry with them into the other World.

2. They should not over-value their riches nor esteem them too highly, nor set their hearts upon them. Psal. 62.10.

3. They should not put their trust or confidence in them, 1 Tim. 6.17.

4. They should not glory in them, nor boast of them. Jer. 9.23.

5. They should not be tempted by their riches to scorn or despise the poor, Jam. 2.6.

6. They should not by reason of their wealth and power oppress the poor.

7. They should honour the Lord with their substance, Prov. 3.9. (1.) By promoting Piety and the service of God. (2.) By works of CharityQuas de­deris solas semper ha­bebis opes. Habeo quod dedi, perdi­di quod ser­vavi. and beneficence to the poor, and so make to themselves friends of their riches, Luke 16.9. Now riches are made friends when they are so used as they may be evidences, and give testimony of our Piety, Charity, Justice and Mercifulness. A poor mans hand (whom we have relieved) is a bill will be accepted in Heaven, Prov. 19.17. He that giveth to the poor lendeth to the Lord, and he will pay him again.

8. They should often and seriously meditate on the ac­count they must give how they have used their wealth. They should consider they are not absolute Lords of their estates but Gods stewards, and to him they must give an account.

9. They should be willing to let go whatever God shall call them to part with, and that without regret or mur­muring, as if a piece of their heart were rent away with it.

And so much of the remedies and directions against Covetous­ness.

I shall now shut up this discourse with this one Caution, that seeing Covetousness does especially consist in the inward desires of the heart which are best known to a mans self (and which no man knows save the spirit of a man that is in him, 1 Cor. 2.11.) We should therefore be very wary and tender of charging Cove­tousness upon others. We may more safely and securely judge our selves in this matter than we can others. For we can better know the nature and qualification of our own desires than we can possibly of another mans. Let us therefore take heed of evil surmizes and ungrounded suspicions of others. Some persons are apt to surmize a man to be covetous upon such grounds as these.

1. He will not be bound for a friend or relation though in [Page 364] never so great a strait. I Answer, I think no man ought to be bound for another any further than he finds him­self able and willing to pay in case the person for whom he is bound cannot. For so the person to whom the bond is made looks upon him; and if he be not so, he deceives him in being bound. This being premised, I shall now tell you what Solomon sayes of surety-ship, Prov. 17.18. A man void of understanding striketh hands and becometh surety in the presence of his friend. Chap. 22.28. Be not thou one of them that strike hands or of them that are surety for debts. Chap. 11.15. He that is surety for a stranger shall smart for it, and he that hateth surety-ship is sure. Chap. 6. v. 1. My Son if thou be surety for thy friend, if thou hast stricken thy hand with a stranger, thou art snared with the words of thy mouth; Do this now my Son, go humble thy self and make sure thy friend, give not sleep to thine eyes nor slumber to thine eye-lids; deliver thy self as a Roe from the hand of the Hunter, and as a Bird from the hand of the Fowler, &c. you may see by this what Solomons opinion was of sure­ty-ship. The truth is, many an easie and good natured man hath been utterly undone by being drawn into bonds for his friend or relation. And therefore I think it is not a sign so much of a covetous mind as of a prudent mind to be shy of surety-ship.

2. He lives very neerly and sparingly and much under his estate. Answ. Thou maist surmise his estate to be great­er than it is. Thou dost not know his losses nor his manifold charges. Or it may be, having seen the diffi­culties and dangerous temptations that others have been put upon through want, he spares that he may not be exposed to the like temptations. Or it may be he spares and in many things denies himself that he may have to give to the poor. His frugality is the purse-bearer to his Charity. Or possibly he will tell thee (who vainly and foolishly spendest thy money) that thou dost not know the value of a penny. One single penny will buy a yard square of good Land worth [Page 365] twenty pound an acre, as may appear by the demonstrati­on in the marginIn every Acre there are a hundred and sixty square Poles or Rods. In every Pole (co [...]sisting of five yards and an half) there are thirty yards square, and one quarter of a yard, as may appear by the Diagram here­unto annexed. So there are four thousand eight hundred and forty yards square in an Acre; which if sold at one penny a yard comes to twenty pound three shillings and four pence. [diagram of a pole (unit of measurement)] and therefore he is not willing to spend his money so idly and prodigally as thou dost. And in the last place possibly he will tell thee that he is sparing because (as the Proverb goes) a penny saved is better than two pence got; yet for all that his heart is not set on his riches, but he can freely part with his money when God calls for it.

3, It does not appear that he is Charitable and liberal to the Poor. Answ. He may be prudent in well or­dering his Charity and Conscientious in observing that rule of Christ, Mat. 6.3. When thou givest alms let not thy left hand know what thy right hand doth. He may possibly give much more to the poor than thou knowest of.

4. He layeth up much.

Answ. Thou canst not tell what part of his estate he layeth up yearly, nor to what ends. The Apostle prescri­beth it as a duty belonging to Parents to lay up for their Children. 2 Cor. 12.14. and 1 Tim. 5.8. He sayes that if any man provide not for his own house he is worse than an Infidel.

To conclude all, seeing Covetousness is so secret and close a sin and consists chiefly in the inward desires of the heart, let us all carefully observe the frame of our own hearts, let us be severe and rigid in examining our selves, but let us be charitable and can­did towards others.

CHAP. IX. Of Anger.

IN treating of this Subject I shall proceed in this Method.

  • 1. I shall speak of the nature of Anger.
  • 2. Of the kinds of it.
  • 3. Give some directions for the right regulating of it, that we may not offend therein.
  • 4. Answer the vain excuses that angry persons are apt to make for themselves.

For the first. Anger is an affection by which the blood and spirits are heated upon the apprehension of some injury or wrong offered to us or those for whom we are concerned. Or Anger is the rising up of the heart in a passionate displeasure against an evil which we apprehend will cross or hinder us of some desired good.

2. Anger is either good or evil according to the circumstances with which it is attended. It is good.

1. When the cause for which we are angry is good and warrantable and such as we can give a good account of to God, Mark 3.5. Jesus looked round about on them with anger, being grieved at the hardness of their hearts. When we are angry, (and our anger is accompanied with grief) because God is dishonoured, or because we see people offend against Piety, Justice, Humanity, or because we see them neglect their duties and hurt their own souls, or the Souls of others, or do that which is [Page 367] wicked and sinful or prejudicial and hurtful to us or others. This is a just cause of Anger.

2. When the object is right. The object of our anger must not be the Person offending, but his offence, his vice, his sin, his immorality, his folly, his fault. These we may be angry at, yea hate, but not the offenders person.

3. When the End is right. When the end of our an­ger and displeasure is, that the fault we are angry with may be amended, and the Person offending for the future may be warned not to offend in the like kind again.

4. When there is no excess in the measure of our anger or the time when our anger is only a rational and tempe­rate displeasure; when reason commands it, thus far it shall go and no farther, when it neither is too hot nor too long.

Now Anger is good when it is thus qualified and cir­cumstantiated, namely, when it arises upon a good and justifiable ground; when it is directed upon the right ob­ject, the sin and fault of the offender; when it aims at the right end, the reformation of the Person offending; and when it is neither too hot nor too long, but when it fails in these circumstances, it is evil.

3. I am come now in the third place to give some directions for the right regulating of our anger that we may not offend therein.

1. Make account every day that you may meet with many occasions that will be apt to provoke you to anger,Praesume animo mul­ta tibi esse patienda, Sen. de ira. if you be not very watchful over your self. Every morning think with your self that you may that day meet with some cross and finister accidents, some unexpected injuries, troubles or inconveniencies, which (without great care and taking heed to your self) may disorder and discom­pose you.

2. Consider that you your self are subject to manifold er­rors and failings, and you must not expect to meet with or converse with any that are totally free from failings and infirmities. Who is there also who hath not a blind side on which he doth not see? In many things we offend Tangat memoriam communis fragilitas. all sayes the Apostle, Jam. 3.2. Keep alive there­fore a sense of your own weakness and what need you have of forgiveness both from God and Man, and that will more dispose you to patience towards others.

3. Take heed of being soon angry; Multos absolvemus si prius coe­perimus judicare, quam iras­ci. Sen. de Ira. He that is soon angry dealeth foolishly, Prov. 14.17. Give leave to your judgement to consider before you be angry. The discreti­on of a man deferreth his anger, Prov. 19.11. Augustus was advised not to be angry at any time till he had first said over the Greek Alphabet. 'Tis a shame that we that are Christians should not prescribe as good Rules to our selves to keep us from falling too suddenly into Passion as the Heathens did. Shall their Morality do so much towards the curing the irregularities of pra­ctice, and shall not our Christianity do much more? Solo­mon tells us, Prov. 16.37. He that is slow to anger is bet­ter than the mighty, and he that ruleth his spirit than he that taketh a City. And the Apostle Jam. 1.19. advi­seth us to be slow to anger.

4. Be not angry upon every trivial occasion. He that is angry without cause (sayes our Saviour) is in danger of the judgment, Matth. 5.22. We should not be angry for any thing that is not material in it self, or in its con­sequents. We should not be angry for meer involuntary and casual offences, such as without great care could not have been prevented. To be angry for every toy debases the value of our anger. A man must not (as one sayes) fire the Beacon of his Soul for the landing of every Cock­boat.

5. Take heed you be not angry too often. For when a man is frequently and often angry, his anger grows into [Page 369] contempt and works no good effect. Anger must be used as a medicine, only now and then, and that only upon just occasion.

6. Take heed your anger be not too hot nor too vehement and excessive. It must be serious indeed, and have some life and warmth in it, that it may be effectual for the re­formation and amendment of the offending Person, and may be a warning to him to avoid the like faults for the future. But yet we must take heed of all excesses, and transports of this Passion.Ira sic dicta quia hominem facit ex se ire, & non esse apudse.

7. In your anger make no rash vows or resolutions. Make no irrevocable decrees like the Laws of the Medes and Persians. Say not you will never trust, or never have to do with such or such a man again, &c. Sudden, rash and desperate resolutions are very dangerous, and usually men have cause to repent of them very quickly after.

8. In your anger be sure to reveal no secrets formerly committed to your trust. For that makes a man a Bank­rupt for society ever after. No man will care to have any thing to do with him, who hath so little wit or honesty in his anger as to reveal what was before committed to him under the seal of secresie.

9. Take heed of bitter provoking speeches when you are an­gry. When you find your heart to begin to be hot within you, then watch over your self especially, and either be silent (which is a good way to preserve your innocence) or else give a soft answer. For as Solomon sayes, Prov. 15.1. A soft answer putteth away wrath, but grievous words stir up anger, Prov. 17.27. He that hath understanding spareth his words and is of a cool spirit. I know people are apt to say words are but wind. But wind you know many times kindles a fire and increases it being once kindled, Prov. 21.23. The wise man tells us, as coals be to bur­ning coals and wood to fire, so is a contentious man to kin­dle strife. Fire cannot long continue, if the wood and [Page 370] fewel be taken from it, so neither will anger long endure if words and cross answers be not multiplied. For such kind of speeches and perverse and provoking replies, usu­ally make a Cholerick man to proceed from anger to rage, Prov. 25.15. A soft tongue breaketh the bones (or as the original will bear it,) a man of bone, that is, such an one as is stiff and hard, Virum durissimum & ri [...]i­dissimum. Jun. an eminent example hereof we have in Abigail who by her discreet and soft speeches quickly appeased Davids furious anger, 1 Sam. 25.24. And therefore well might the same wise man say, Prov. 21.23. Whoso keepeth his mouth and his tongue keepeth his Soul from troubles. The Counsel of the Son of Syrac is here also worthy to be considered, Chap. 8. Verse 4. Contend not with a man full of words, neither heap up wood on his fire. For as the heaping up of wood increaseth the fire, so multiplying of words increaseth anger.

10. Do not peremptorily break off any business in a fit of anger. Consider that nothing can be done in passion but may be done better without it. For Passion is no good counsellor. It usually blinds the mind and hinders due conside­ration, and so exposes a man to do things very unreasona­ble.

11. Ponder beforehand with your self what are the usual causes of anger, that so you may take heed of them. And they are such as these.

1. Pride. This is a great cause of anger. Proud and high minded men are usually apt to be very angry and to conceive a great indignation, if their judgements and un­derstandings be not vailed unto, and their wills and plea­sures complied with, Prov. 13.10. Only by Pride cometh contention, Prov. 21.24. Proud and haughty Scorner is his name who deals in fierce wrath.

2. An opinion of being contemned either in word or deed. A sense of contempt, or that the injury received had much of contempt in it doth usually more stir up anger than the injury it self, and so the manner aggravates the matter. [Page 371] Therefore when men study to find out circumstances of contempt in an injury received, they kindle their anger to a great height. If you would therefore prevent anger, sever the injuries you receive (as much as you can) from contempt or malice, and impute them to rashness, weak­ness, inconsiderateness, to any thing rather than contempt, which the nature of man can so hardly bear.

3. Covetousness. They that are eager upon the world, and have their hearts set upon earthly things, are apt to be very angry and cholerick when things fall out cross to their minds. They are usually very angry abroad when they meet with losses and disappointments, but almost mad at home; displeased with Wife, Children, and Ser­vants; scarce any thing can please a covetous man when his profit and commodity is crossed. Every little trespass or loss toucheth him to the quick and maketh him impa­tient.

4. Overmuch niceness and delicateness. Nulla res magis iracundi­am alit quam luxu­ria. Tender and delicate persons are subject to be angry. Any little thing is apt to put such persons into a fit of choler. Those that are rich and great in this world many times take liberty from their greatness to give scope to their Passions, and so not only disturb themselves but disquiet those about them, and make their lives uneasie to them.

5. Weakness and over much tenderness of Spirit. We see that anger usually reigns most in weak persons, as in old folks and sick folks, in women and children. A great imbecility certain­ly it is, for a man to have too tender a sense,Dure tractandus est ani­mus, ut ictum non sentiat nisi grav [...]m. Proprium est magnitudinis verae non sen­tire se esse percussum. like a man whose arms and shoulders have the skin flay'd off, every thing that touches him makes him winch and cry out. Take heed therefore that your mind be not too delicate and tender and wo­manish and apt to be moved at every toy. We should harden our minds that they may not have too quick a sense of injuries. A man should not think his credit or repu­tation in danger by every idle word spoken against him. [Page 372] The remedy of this is (as a learned man observes) to get telam honoris crassiorem; a thicker web of honour that will not so easily ravel out.

6. Gecundless suspitions. Suspiti­osi omnia ad contu­meliam ac­c piunt. They that are apt to be jealous and suspitious are also very apt to be angry, though com­monly when matters are well examined they find no true cause or ground for it.

7. Credulity and an easie belief of reports and listning to Tale-bearers is another cause of anger. He that is very inquisitive and hath an itch to know what peopleNon vis esse iracun­dus? ne sis curiosus say of him, will sometimes hear things that will dispose him to anger. They therefore that desire to keep themselves from this disquieting passion must take heed of this, and the other forementioned causes of anger.

12. A twelfth direction is this. Represent to thy self the odi­ousness and deformity of Anger.Quibusdam iratis profuit aspex­isse s [...]eculum. Difficile dictu an magis detestabi­ce vitium, an deforme. Some of the Ancients advised an angry man to look himself in a glass. O what a deformed sight is a man in a great fit of anger or rage? His tongue stammering, his eyes flaming, his mouth foaming, his heart panting, his teeth gnashing, his fists knocking, his voice loud and clamorous. Did an angry man with Narcissus see his face in a glass, surely he would never fall in love with himself.

13. Represent to thy self the mischievous nature and hurtfulness of intemperate Anger.

1. 'Tis a great enemy both to the mind and to the body. It fills the mind with vexation and a bitter discontent. It unfits it for any holy duty, for prayer, meditation, hearing the word, receiving the Sacrament, or any communion with God. And should not that be very odious to us which unfits us for the worship of God, or receiving any benefit by his ordinances? And for the body, it inflameth the blood and stirreth up and awakeneth ill humors and so causeth diseases. Nothing doth sooner cut the thread of life than [Page 373] the sharpness of fretting anger and grief. So true is that com­mon saying, an angry man seldom wanteth woe.

2. 'Tis a great disquieter of private families and societies of men. 'Tis the Devils bellows to kindle mens corrup­tions and set the World on fire. O how many dreadful sins do some angry men commit in one hour? A high fit of passion makes men like Lyons and Tygers. It may well be called a short madness. It disarms the Soul of its chief defence which is reason and consideration. It sets the tongue on fire, causing it to vent it self in swearing, cur­sing, railing, reviling, and sometimes it flyes out even into Blasphemy. An angry man aboundeth with trans­gressions sayes Solomon, Chap. 29.22. How many thou­sands hath intemperate anger wronged and injured, hurt and wounded? Yea, how many thousands hath it destroy­ed and murdered? What villany hath not sinful anger at one time or other been guilty of?

3. 'Tis a great disquieter of the Church. The anger that is vented about matters of Learning or Religion is com­monly the most irreligious, most outragious and worst of all. The contentions about points of Learning or Re­ligion are usually very hot and fierce and yet one would think Learning should civilize the minds of men. 'Twas said so of it of old Emollit mores nec sinit esse feros. But alas! who are they that write against one another with greater sharpness and keenness, who are there that mingle more gall with their ink than learned men do? And for Religion, certainly where it is in reality it is the best principled and best natured thing in the world. It breaths in meekness, patience, forbearance, and forgive­ness, and yet so powerful is the Pride and Corruption of mans heart, that there are no controversies managed with so much bitterness, sharpness, and exasperation as the controversies about Religion are. Let any man look into the books that are witten by the Papists against the Protestants, by the Lutherans against the Calvinists, by the Arminians against the Anti-arminians; or look into the several Sects [Page 374] and Parties that not long since prevailed in these Nations; or let him cast his eye on the late disputes between the Confor­mists and Dissenters, and he shall quickly see what abun­dance of intemperate heat and anger, what abundance of disingenuity and incivility, what abundance of ill will and uncharitableness doth appear in these writings. No man cares to go to a Physitian who will rail upon him and revile him and tell him that he is not worthy to live, and 'twere better the world were rid of him. And yet thus do some men treat their adversaries who pretend to write books for their information, and to reduce them into the right way. Certainly 'tis the duty of all real Christians who agree in the main fundamentals of Re­ligion to forbear one another in matters of less moment, and which belong not to the vitals of Christianity. For we are all apt to err and mistake in some things, and we cannot see with any bodies eyes but our own. And 'tis a horrible uncharitableness to say that any man is wilfully blind, who opens his eyes as wide as he can. We must all see for our selves and judge for our selves and our own practice, and make account to answer to God for our selves. And therefore surely it would become us to be more charitable one towards another than usually we are. But 'tis a vain thing to complain in this matter. I shall rather turn my complaint into a fervent prayer unto God, that he would please by the all-powerfull in­fluence of his grace to change the hearts of men, and to give them a better frame of Spirit.

14. Let not anger rest in your bosom lest it putrify and turn into malice and hatred. Anger resteth in the bosom of fools sayes Solo­mon, Eccles. 7.9. Anger lodged in the heart all night is very like to become malice by the morning. Anger kept in the heart till next day doth putrify and corrupt like Manna, save only that Manna corrupted not at all, and anger doth most of all if kept to the next Sabbath. Therefore sayes the Apostle, Let not the Sun go down on your wrath, neither give place to the Devil. You need not open the door to him, who is so apt to intrude himself. Take heed therefore that thine anger by continuance do not turn into [Page 375] hatred. For hatred is nothing but an old anger or grudge arising from several provocations and continuing long. Anger is a sud­den Passion, and hath (many times) but a short course; but ha­tred is more durable and lasting. Anger often flies at the offence not at the person, but hatred flies at the person, whose hurt it earnestly desires.

15. Take heed especially that your anger do not sour into re­venge. God challenges revenge as peculiarly belonging unto him­self, Vengeance is mine I will repay saith the Lord. Rom. 12.19. For a creature to avenge himself is a plain intrenchment upon Gods Prerogative. For he is the Judge as well as the Creator of the World. Remember, we all stand in need of Gods pardon and for­giveness, and except we forgive we cannot expect to be forgiven, Mat. 6.14, 15. If ye forgive men their trespasses, your heavenly Father will also forgive you, but if ye forgive not men their trespasses, neither will your Heavenly Father forgive you, There are some men that are slow to anger, but being once incensed are hardly ever reconciled. An irreconcileable temper is a dangerous sign or mark that a man is in a bad state towards God. I have heard of a man lying upon his death-bed whom his Minister perswaded to be reconciled unto, and to forgive a person whom he knew he had a great displeasure against. The sick man answered, yea, I forgive him with all my heart if I dye, but if I live I will be revenged of him. I wish this wretched man did not speak the sense of too many others. Our Saviour, Mat. 18.23. shews us the necessi­ty of forgiving one another by the Parable of a Servant to whom his Lord had forgiven Ten thousand Talents, and yet took his fellow-servant by the throat for an hundred pence, at which his Lord was wroth, and delivered him to the tormentors till he should pay all that was due. Even so likewise (sayes our Saviour) shall my Heavenly Father do unto you, if ye from your hearts for­give not every one his Brother their trespasses. One of the Ancients upon this Parable, makes this remark. Servi Parabolam utinam nos non faceremus historiam. I wish (sayes he) that this that is re­lated of the Servant in the Gospel were only a Parable, and that our practice did not give too much occasion to have it related of us as a true history and a thing really done by us.

16. Take heed of envy. Be not angry or displeased at the pro­sperityNun­quam erit foelix qnem torquebit foelicior. Sen. of others. To be pleased with another mans happiness is to increase our own. But envy is as rottenness to the bones, Prov. 14.13.

17. Represent to thy self what a beauty and amiableness there is in meekness. Divines speak of a three-fold meekness.

  • 1. Natural, springing from a good temper.
  • 2. Moral, springing from a good education.
  • 3. Gracious, which is a fruit of the Spirit. Gal. 5.23.

Now this gracious meekness hath reference either

  • to God
  • or Man.

Meekness towards God consists in patiently submitting to his will without murmuring or repining. Meekness towards Man consists in having a heart ready to pass by offences, to forgive wrongs and injuries and to do good against evil. And there is not a greater magnetism or attractive in nature than such a frame of Spi­rit.

The great amiableness of meekness will appear to us if we con­sider these particulars

1. Meek persons are like unto our Lord and Saviour, who expressed his great meekness in submitting to his Fathers will without any repining, and in bearing patiently great injuries from men, Mat. 11.29. Learn of me for I am meek and lowly of heart. Our Saviour seems to say to us as Gideon to his followers, Judges 7.17. Look on me and do as ye see me do. And accordingly the Apostle, 2 Cor. 10.1. obtests and beseeches the Corinthians by the meek­ness and gentleness of Christ (which he uses as a power­ful motive to them) that they would not interpret his humble and mild carriage among them otherwise than they ought.

2. Gracious meekness doth plainly shew the soul to have been under the forming and workmanship of the Spirit [Page 377] of God. We may by the work know the workman.

3. 'Tis a temper highly prized by God himself, 1 Pet. 3.4. A meek and a quiet Spirit is in the sight of God of great price, Moses's meekness exalted him so highly that God spake unto him face to face, as a man speaketh to his friend, Exod. 33.11.

4. 'Tis a temper that much adorns our Christian Professi­on. 'Tis a walking worthy of our high calling, Eph. 4.1 [...]. I Paul beseech you that ye walk worthy of the voca­tion wherewith you are called, with all lowliness and meekness, and long-suffering, forbearing one another in love, and Verse 31, 32. Let all bitterness and wrath, and an­ger, and clamor, and evil speaking be put away from you, with all malice, and be ye kind one to another, forgiving one another, even as God for Christs sake hath forgiven you. The Apostle also expresses himself to the same purpose, Col. 3.12, 13, 14, 15.

5. 'Tis a temper to which many gracious promises are made, Psal. 25.9. The meek will he guide in judge­ment, the meek will he teach his way, and Mat. 5.5. The meek shall inherit the earth, that is, they shall enjoy that which God gives them here with much more Peace, Quietness and Comfort than others do. Meek persons are not given to Lawing and quarrelling as other men are, if they be oppressed at any time God does usually interest himself in their quarrel, Prov. 16.7. When a mans wayes please the Lord he maketh his very enemies to be at peace with him. And if God does sometimes for graci­ous ends suffer the meek to be oppressed, (namely, for the exercise of their faith and patience) he will recom­pence them abundantly in the other life.

6. 'Tis a temper of great benefit and advantage to the life of man. It takes the edge off from sufferings that they cannot wound and hurt us; Whereas he that frets and rages makes that troublesome to him which else [Page 378] would not be so. As in case of reproachful words, which in themselves neither hurt our bodies nor lessen our estates, but the great danger of them is if they drive us into anger. For then our anger may run us into abundance of other sins. Whereas he that meekly passes them by is never the worse for them, nay the better, (as God orders it) For he shall be rewarded for his Patience. And so much of the excellency and benefits of meekness.

16. Another Direction is this. Be humbled seriously before the Lord for all former irregular and exorbitant Passions thou hast been guilty of, and seek pardon of them in the blood of Christ, and pray earnestly unto the Lord to keep thee from falling into the like again, and to give thee the wisdom which comes from above which is first pure then peaceable, gentle, and easie to be in­treated, and full of good fruits. And when thou art surprized on a sudden with any unexpected accident or violent temptation that is apt to disorder thee, then send up a fervent ejaculation to hea­ven as a speedy messenger for help and succour in that time of danger.

17. Lastly, Set a high price and value upon quietness, meek­ness, and a calm frame of Soul, 1 Thes. 4.11. Study to be quiet and to do thy own business. And so much of the directions for the right regulating of our anger.

4. I come to consider the excuses Vitia nostra quia amamus defendimus & malu­mus ea ex­cusare quam excutere. Sen. that those that are prone to be angry do use to make for themselves.

1. They are ready to say that their afflictions are so great and so heavie that they cannot bear them with any pati­ence. And therefore they may say as Jonah did, that they do well to be angry, and that it is better for them to dye than to live.

Answ. Be silent all flesh before God. What art thou O Man, O Worm, that thou repliest against God? Aaron had two Sons destroyed at one stroke by fire from Hea­ven. And they both dyed (for ought appears to the [Page 379] contrary) in their sin, and that is a sharper affliction than ever thou mettest with. And yet the text sayes, Lev. 10.3. Aaron held his peace, he uttered not one word of murmuring or discontent against the Almighty. To murmur against God is to throw a stone upward, that will be sure to fall on his head that threw it. Take heed therefore of inward repining, or outward murmuring against the Almighty, how heavy soever his hand be upon thee. Shall a living man complain? (sayes the moanful Prophet, Lam. 3.39.) Man suffereth for his sin. God is alwayes just, though his wayes to us are sometimes amazing and past our finding out.

2. They are ready to say that the provocation upon which they were angry, was so great that flesh and blood could not bear it.

Answ. Flesh and blood neither in a natural nor a mo­ral sense (except it be changed) can enter into the King­dom of God, 1 Cor. 15.50. And the Apostle tells us, that they that live after the flesh shall die, Rom. 8.13. and that not a temporal death only but an eternal. And Gal. 5.24. He tells us that all that are Christs have (in some good degrees though not all equally) crucifi­ed the flesh with its corrupt affections and lusts Sanabi­libus aegro­tamus ma­lis. Sen.

3. They are ready to say that they are Cholerick by na­ture, and therefore they cannot help falling into Passion. Alas! how can they (will they say) except God give them patience.

Answ. A Cholerick temper I confess may strong­ly dispose them to anger, but cannot necessitate them to it. And if they did pray earnestly to God for the assistance of his grace and set a watch over themselves, they might bring themselves into better order. But some people seem to expect that God should do all for them and neither earnestly beg grace from him to help them, nor endeavour seriously in the power he vouchsafes to them to mortify the corruptions of their hearts. If a [Page 380] great reward were propounded to a Cholerick man on condition he abstained from falling into any unseemly passion for one day whatever provocation were offered him, surely he would do it. And if a man may by great watchfulness abstain one day for a temporal reward, why should he not do it the next day, and the next after that out of obedience unto God? There are several gracious Christians that are not easily, frequently, or furiously an­gry nor mis-behave themselves in their anger by word or deed. Do you endeavour to do so likewise.

4. They are ready to say that such a man was excessively hot and angry with them, and why should not they be so with him?

Ans. No man must go about to cure an evil with an evil or to correct a vice by a vice, fire is not quenched by fire nor anger with anger. 'Tis more Christian-like to give place to wrath, and and overcome evil with good.

CHAP. X. Of Idleness.

THE Prophet Ezekiel Chap. 16.49. tell us, that this was the iniquity of Sodom, Pride, fulness of bread, and abundance of Idleness, neither did she strengthen the hands of the Poor. I wish abundance of Idleness were not at this day a sin found in England as well as in Sodom, and that among the wealthiest, and those of the best rank and quality in the Nation, whose education one would think should have taught them better things, Seneca complained of old that men spent their time either in nihil agendo or aliud agendo, or male agendo, either in pure idleness and doing nothing, or doing things of small moment and consequence, or in doing things evil and wicked. I wish this were not too true of many among us in these dayes, who either idle and squander away their precious time or unusefully and impertinently imploy it, or else imploy it in sin and wickedness, little considering that diligence in doing evil is but a making haste to hell. A discourse therefore that tends to shew people how necessary it is to their happiness, that they should well imploy their time, and not foolishly and carelesly squander it away, I hope cannot be unseasonable. The Apostle, Ephes. 4.15, 16. makes circumspect walking and redeeming time to be the great Character to distinguish those that are wise from those that are foo­lish. See that ye walk circumspectly (sayes he) not as fools, but as wise, redeeming the time. This is the Subject therefore that I shall now speak to, and in the handling of it I shall shew,

  • 1. What is meant by redeeming time.
  • 2. For what purposes especially it is to be redeemed.
  • 3. From what we must redeem it.
  • [Page 382]4. What are the reasons and motives that should press this duty upon us.
  • 5. I shall give some directions as to the manner how we should redeem it.
  • 6. I shall shew who are the persons that should espe­cially be perswaded to the practice of this duty.

For the First. What is meant by redeeming time.

Time may be considered either as past, present or to come.

1. For Time past, there is no recalling of that; the loss of it ought to be bewailed by us and that with great bitterness.Damna fleo rerum, sed plus fleo damna dierum.

2. For Time to come, that we are uncertain of. Only two times we are assured will come; the time of Death and the time of Judgement. And he is no wise man that does not provide and prepare himself against both these.

3. The Time present. This only is our time and this we should labour well to imploy, improve and husband to the best advantage. And so much of the first particular, what is meant by redeeming Time.

2. To what purposes are we to redeem time?

There are many excellent purposes for which we should do it. Particularly.

1. To consider our wayes, and find out the sins of our lives, that we may humble our Souls before the Lord for them, and may undoe them again by true Repentance.

2. To sue out our Pardon and make our Peace with God by be­taking our selves to Christ Jesus, and giving up our selves to him to be Pardoned through the infinite merit of his active and pas­sive obedience, and to be sanctified by his Spirit.

3. To consider what unruly affections are in us, that we may set our selves (through the aids of grace) to subdue and mortify them.

4. To consider how we may frame our outward conversation so, as may tend to the honour of God and credit of our Profession.

5. To consider what is the part that God hath appointed us to act in this world and what are the peculiar duties incumbent on us, in reference to our particular calling and station, that we may perform them, wisely, faithfully, and diligently;

6. To consider that this life is our seed-time, and that we shall reap hereafter according to what we sow here. And therefore we had need look to it that we sow good seed and do what good we can while we have opportunity. He that sowes to his flesh shall of the flesh reap corruption, and he that sowes to the Spirit, shall of the Spirit reap life everlasting, Gal. 6.7.

7. To consider that we are not only to take care to clear our own Souls of guilt, but to humble our selves for the crying sins of our Nation by which our Heavenly Father is highly dishonoured, that so we may do our part to stand in the gap, and divert the wrath of God. And so much of the purposes for which we are to redeem Time.

3. I come now in the third place to consider from what we must redeem time.

There are many things from which we must redeem it.

1. From the ordinary business and affairs of this life. For though we are to be diligent in our particular callings, yet we must not suffer our worldly business to ingross all our time. We must labour so to contrive the business of our callings that they may not in­trench upon that time which we are to imploy for the good of our Souls.

2. From the lawful refreshments of our lives, such as eating, drinking, sleeping, recreations, &c. In which there is very often too much of our time spent.

3. From Conversation and company, especially such company among whom we cannot expect either to do good or to receive good.

4. We must be especially careful how we employ our solitary hours and when we are alone; that we do not spend that time n melancholy and impertinent musings and rovings and wandrings of thoughts, but imploy it in meditation on things profitable and useful. And if we had the care and skill to keep our minds [Page 384] to good works when we are alone, It would be of incredible advan­tage to us both for the improving of our reason, and much more to improve us in real piety and Christianity. And so much of the third Particular, From what we must redeem time.

4. What are the reasons that should press this duty upon us?

1. Our time is but short, we have but a little of it. We have not seven or eight hundred years of life, as the Patriarchs had before the flood. Mans life is now ordinarily very short. Few live to threescore years and ten, and very few to four-score. And take out of the longest life that any live here (1.) The folly and inconsiderateness of Child-hood and youth. (2.) The time spent in eating, drinking, and sleeping, though with moderation. (3.) The time of sickness and indisposition of health. (4.) The time spent in journeys and travel. (5.) The time spent in recrea­tion and visiting of friends. (6.) The time of weakness, valitudi­nariness, unusefulness in old age, I say take out all these; and the residue that remaineth for our business of greatest moment and consideration we shall find will be but a small pittance or portion. And therefore having so little time, we had not need waste it pro­digally.

2. Our time flyes away very swifly. Job 9.25, 26. compares it to three very swift things, to a Post, to a Ship on the Sea and to an Eagle flying to her prey. Let any one consider how soon a year is gone, and then tell me whether time does not fly away apace.

3. A great deal of our time we have already mispent; Let us re­flect on our infancy, Childhood, and youth, Alas! How many years have passed over our heads ere we came to have any consi­deration for what end we came into the world, or what work we had here to do? Nay how many in their youth have weaved those cursed wehs of sin which must be afterwards unweaved and undone again with great sorrow and shame? Nay how much of the time which we have spent in Gods own worship may be reck­oned to our lost time? God commands us to use the World as if we used it not. But we are apt to pray as if we prayed not and to hear as if we heard not, and to worship God in such a cold and for­mal manner as if we minded not what we were about.

4. Consider what a damned soul in hell would give for a little time to recover himself out of that woful misery, if it were in his power to purchase it. O how cutting must it needs be to him to think how he might have procured everlasting joy and bliss to himself, but he foolishly neglected his time and sea­son for the doing of it, which is not now to be recovered. If God by an extraordinary dispensation should grant to a damned Soul one moneth or week to come out of hell upon tryal, surely such a person would better improve his time than before he had done. When people come to die, at how dear a rate would they be willing to purchase some of those hours, which they foo­lishly mis-spent and squandered away before.

5. Consider, time is a Talent which we must account for. As we must not vainly waste and mis-spend our estates, so neither may we our time. Time is an Universal Talent that every one that lives to the years of discretion is intrusted with. Every man hath not a Talent of Learning or Wealth, but every man who liveth to years of understanding is intrusted with a Talent of Time, which he may improve to his great advantage: if he be not wanting to himself. How highly guilty then are those careless wasters of time, and those voluptuous livers, whose time lies upon their hands, and if they have not almost every day a new diver­tisement to pass away their time (as they wickedly phrase it) they know not what to do with it. O wretches! do you study to pass away that which flyes away so fast? You had need clip its wings or hang leaden Plummets upon it, to stop its course and keep it from flying away so fast, if you could possibly do it. You say you are for a short life and a merry. Surely you think to live in the World like Leviathan in the Sea, meerly to sport and take your pastime therein. Hark you in your ear, you that are such prodigal spenders and wasters of your precious time, This is the time that God hath allotted you to work out your salvation in with fear and trembling. If a condemned Malefactor had but two or three dayes allowed him to sue out his pardon, do you think that he would spend that time in sports and pastimes in feastings and merriments, in idle visits and complements with­out any sense or regard in what condition he was, and how his life was certainly and unavoidably at an end, if he did not pro­cure his pardon? I suppose you would not think him in his wits, [Page 386] if he should so do. 'Twas a woful speech of that dying person who cryed out on his death-bed, call Time again, O call Time again. But that could not be done.

6. Another reason why we should redeem time is that given by the Apostle, Ephes. 4.16. Because the dayes are evil. 'Twas not in our power to order in what part of time since the Creation we should be born. God (in whose hands our times are and who determines our times and the bounds of our habitation, Acts 17.26.) hath appointed us to live in these evil times, and therefore we should now more especially endeavour to redeem our time and improve it for all those excellent purposes before mentioned. There are three things that speak times to be evil.

  • 1. When iniquity abounds and little restraint is laid upon it, but there are great examples to incourage it.
  • 2. When great troubles and sufferings befall the people of God, and such as desire to walk in all good conscience towards God and man.
  • 3. When the times are full of snares and temptations whereby multitudes are intrapped. And if these things be found among us at this day; We had need from this consideration as well as the former, endeavour to make the best improvement of our Time.

5. I come now to give some directions as to the manner how time should be redeemed.

1. Consider there is no part of your time you should be more careful well to improve than the seasons of grace which God af­fords you. The Scripture speaks of a time of visitation, Luke 19.44. Of a day of Salvation, 2 Cor. 6.2. Of a time wherein the Lord may be found, Isa. 55.6. Of a time wherein the Spirit of God striveth with the children of men, Gen. 6.3. And this time of all times ought to be well improved. But you will say possibly, how shall we know this day of Gods visitation and of the striving of his Spirit with us? I Answer, you may know it by these things (1.) When he casts you by his providence under a powerful and awakening Ministry, whereby you are shewed the great evil and danger of your sins, and the absolute necessity of your conversion, if you intend to be saved.

2. When his holy Spirit co-operates with that Ministry and draws and perswades your hearts to break off your sins by repentance and to turn to God and to lay hold on the offers of his grace in Christ.

3. When he sends some awakening afflictions, either publick or private upon you, whereby he makes your hearts soft and tender and ready to embrace good counsel.

4. When he affords you the company and example of pious and faithful Chistians who are ready to help and forward, and encou­rage you in the way to Heaven. When God affords you these helps, highly value and prize them as special favours from hea­ven and account that this is the day of your visitation, this is your season of grace, and therefore be very careful to make a right im­provement of it. All wise men are careful to lay hold on, and to improve all fit seasons and opportunities for the effecting the business they design. For that may be done in its fit season which cannot be done out of it. How easie is it to sayl with the wind or to form iron while it is hot. But these things cannot be done at another time. The case is thus also in reference to the Soul. Seasons of grace must by no means be neglected. For as there is a time of visitation which God affords to the children of men, so there is a time wherein (men having outstood their visitation) the Spi­rit of God will no longer strive with them. And though we can­not certainly determine this time; yet there are some things that are shrewd signs of it, which it will behove us all well to consi­der and to examine our selves whether such signs be found in us or no. Those signs are such as these

1. When people have long lived under the powerful means of grace and are nothing bettered by them, but are as ignorant or worldly, as carnal and sensual as before, Observe what our Saviour sayes, Luke 13.7. These three years have I sought fruit on this fig-tree and have found none, cut it down, why cumbreth it the ground?

2. When people have had many convictions and secret workings of the Spirit of God in their hearts, and have re­sisted and quenched them. Observe what God sayes by the Prophet Ezekiel, Chap. 24.13. of that people, be­cause I have purged thee (that is, have used means to [Page 388] purge thee by sending my prophets unto thee,) and thou wast not purged, thou shalt not be purged from thy filthi­ness any more till I have caused my fury to rest upon thee. And dreadful are those words of the Lord also, Hosea 4.17. Ephraim is joyned to Idols let him alone.

3. When God sends affliction after affliction upon them, and they are nothing amended by them, Esay. 1.5. Why should you be stricken any more, you will revolt more and more?

4. When they come to have a vile esteem of the Mini­sters of Christ, and of his Ordinances.

5. When they go on confidently and presumptuously in their sins, notwithstanding all the warnings and threat­nings they have had to the contrary, Deut. 29.19, 20. When they shall bless themselves saying, I shall have peace though I walk after the imaginations of my heart, adding drunkenness to thirst, the Lord will not spare that man, but his anger and jealousie shall smoak against him.

Where these black marks are found, we have great cause to fear that such men have out stood the day of their visita­tion. But whatever others do, let us look to it that we carefully improve our day of grace. And that is the first Direction.

2. Dispatch in the first place, and with the greatest care and diligence thy great work which must be done or thou art undone for ever. Secure thy interest in Christ and the pardon of all thy sins in him, thy state in grace and thy title to Heaven. And when that great work is once well done, thou may'st go quietly and chear­fully about thy worldly affairs and businesses. The generality of men are the veriest children and fools as to their main concernment imaginable. They mind the world seriously but neglect the one thing absolutely necessary. If a King should send his Ambassa­dor and give him among the rest, one principal instruction, char­ging him above all things to mind and observe that; which if he did he should be highly rewarded at his return, but if he neglect­ed it he should forfeit his head. I question whether any instance can be give since the world began of any Ambassador so stupid and careless as to neglect a matter that so much concerned him. But alas! how oft is this done by the children of men in a mat­ter [Page 389] of greater moment? Thou that wouldest, it may be severely have censured and condemned this Ambassad [...]r, if he had so gros­ly neglected his duty, de te fabula narratur thou art the man; This thing is more than verified of thee who mindest the things of this life but neglectest the great business for which thou camest into the world, and which above all other things thou shouldest have minded. There is no necessity that thou shouldest be rich and leave such an inheritance to thy Son, or so many hundreds in thy inventory, but it is of absolute necessity thou shouldest be converted and repent of thy sins, and get thy soul cleared of all thy guilt by faith in Christ, and shouldst honour God in this world, and should'st be in such a posture and frame of mind and heart that thou may'st be fitted to dye. These things are necessary to thee, the other are not. Labour therefore to do thy great work in the first place, and do not defer it and put it off; God calls thee now to repent; do not put God off and say thou wilt do it hereafter. Ask thy self this one serious question, whether thou ever dost intend to repent or no? If not, thou declarest thou inten­dest to damn thy Soul. If thou dost intend to repent, why wilt thou not now do it? The longer thou delayest, the more unfit thou wilt be. Besides, consider this, thou in thy distresses and necessi­ties cryest to God to relieve thee and to help thee presently. When thou art in pain or under a grievous sickness thou wouldst think it hard if God should say, I will ease thee of thy pain seven years hence, why shouldst thou then put God off with delayes? And 'tis a sad observation that some make concerning those that wilfully delay to turn to God, namely that few of them are converted at last. Therefore upon all these accounts defer not thy main work thy conversion to God, and securing thy peace with him, whatever else thou neglectest.

3. Labour to keep certain set times for thy private devotions, and be constant to them. Especially be careful to observe the Lords-day well. From our conscienciousness and diligence in the duties of Gods worship and service on that day, we may make a probable conjecture of the success of our worldly affairs and bu­sinesses the week after. This a learned man The re­nowned J [...]dge Hale in his Me­ditations. sayes he could not but take notice of in himself and as to his own concerns, though otherwise he was not addicted to superstitious observations.

4. Keep conscience tender and that will reprehend thee for wasting thy time or ill imploying it. Thou wilt then be careful not to spend it in any thing that thy conscience will reproach thee for, and which must be repented of afterwards. Remember, God and conscience must be pleased whoever be displeased.

5. Promise not to thy self long life, but live as one that is un­certain of another day. The groundless expectation of long life makes people many times less careful rightly to improve the present time. Men will spend prodigally out of a full purse, who otherwise would be sparing if they knew they had but little. 'Tis observed of some that have promised themselves long life, that they have been cut off very suddenly. Thou reckonest possibly upon years; whereas, it may be, thou hast not moneths to live. However, say this to thy self every morning. I am now brought to the beginning of a new day; O my soul! let me improve this day well, so as I may give a comfor­table account of it unto God. The Sun may return again after it hath set. But this day when it is once gone I shall never see again.

6. Take heed of those things that rob people of their time, and watch carefully against them. And they are such as these.

1. A sluggish and sloathful habit of mind. Spontanea lassitudo aspontaneous lassitude or weariness is a sign the body is out of order. And a voluntary sloathfulness and sluggishness is a sign of a distem­pered Soul sloath is an averseness from that labour which is our duty through a carnal love of ease. He is most sinfully sloathful who is most voluntarily sloathfull. 'Tis certainly a very dangerous life for any man to live out of a calling or to be idle and slothful in his cal­ling. But the worst kind of sloth is a backwardness and listlesness to our greatest duties. The Apostle cautions us not to be sloathful in busi­ness, but fervent in Spirit serving the Lord, Rom. 12.11. And if we would but take pleasure in the work God calls us unto, we should not then be weary of it or slothful in it.

2. Overmuch sleeping and drouzing and lying a bed. Suppose there be two young scholars, whereof one sleeps but six hours usually in a night and the other nine. The one of these out-lives the other 21 hours in a week, how much will he gain of him a year?

3. Too long dressing and finefying the body. Indeed neatness and cleanliness are very commendable; but overmuch curiosity in dressing and adorning the body, as it is a great vanity so it is a great and un­necessary expense of time.

4. Long visits Amici sures temporis. and unprofitable and impertinent discourse, of which I spake something before under the third head. Indeed visits may be prudently ordered, and spent in such discourse as is very profitable, and then they will not be only testifications of civility and respect from one friend to another, but a great advantage and improvement to them many wayes.

5. Immoderate and too long sports, games and recreations. In­deed some fiting recreation may be needfull to him who has wearied himself in honest labour. He that mowes must some­times whet his sythe, and he that travails must sometimes bait. And therefore recreations that are lawful, moderate and seaso­nable, and conduce to the refreshment of nature, and fitting us more for our business, are very allowable; but too much and too long recreation is a most prodigal expence of time. Nay there are some who labour hard and take great pains at their sports and recreations, who are very idle in their due work. And what a folly is this to be so active and labourious about their pleasures and to neglect their main business?

6. Vain impertinent and ungoverned thoughts are a great con­sumption of time, especially in melancholy persons. But this also I touched before.

7. Reading of vain and corrupting books, such as Play-books, &c. is another great waster of precious time. Surely we should not imploy our time in reading any books but such as tend to make us either wiser or better, or more useful; not in such as tend to the depraving and corrupting of our minds. Such wasters therefore of precious time as these are, should be care­fully avoided by us. And so much of the sixth Direction.

7. Consider how exceeding comfortable the review of time well spent will be when you come to dye. What a strong cordial is it to a departing soul when he can say with the blessed Apostle, I have fought a good fight, I have finished my course, I have kept the faith, henceforth there is laid up for me a Crown of Righteousness, which the Lord the Righteous Judge shall give me at his appearing, 2 Tim. 3.7, 8. Or with Hezekiah, Esay. 38.3. Remember now O Lord how I have walked before thee in truth and with a perfect heart, and have done that which was good in thy sight? 'Twas once said by a holy man in this Nation, that if any uncomfortable Passion could betide a Saint in Heaven, it would be that he had spent his time no [Page 400] better nor had done God more service here. And therefore the pious and renowned Ʋsher cryed out on his Death-bed Lord pardon my omissions. But as the review of our time well spent and imployed will be exceeding comfortable to us at our dying hour, so the con­trary must needs be exceeding cutting. O how do people wish then they had spent their time! Which of these two accounts do you think will then be most comfortable? Item so much of my time spent in Ale-houses, Taverns, in idle company, in pleasures, and pas­times, in foolish mirth, and jollity, &c. or so much of my time spent in fervent prayer to God, and praising of him, so much in hearing his word, in meditation, in self-examination, in pious discourse, &c. 'Tis hardly possible for voluptuous persons, who have their minds filled with vanity & pleasure, to imagine what a different sense they will have of things when they come to dye, from what they have now; and how precious that time will then appear to them which they made so little account of before. They will then begin to see their folly, as they say Moles have their eyes opened just before they die. And as Hagar sat down and wept when her water was spent, Gen. 21.15. So these people will then weep and howl when their time is gone and can never be recalled. And so much for the directi­on as to the manner how we should redeem time.

6. I come now in the last place to shew who are the Persons that should especially be perswaded to the practice of this duty.

1. Those that are young. They should take heed of Satans grand delusion, who will perswade them (if he can) that 'tis too soon for them as yet to think of improving their time, and if they should do so now they will lose their prime time of pleasure. But I shall refer them to my directions to the young in my book of knowledge and practice for the answering such suggestions. They should consider how many great advantages will accrue to them if they now im­prove their time well. Hereby they will prevent many sins and sor­rows; hereby they will come to some eminency of knowledge grace and spiritual experience; hereby they will do God more service in their lives, and their joyes and comforts will be greater when they come to be old, and their death will be more comfortable and their reward in Heaven much greater.

2. Those who have lost much time before. If a traveller hath loitered in the morning, he had need spur up and ride hard in the re­maining part of the day, lest the night overtake him and so disable [Page 393] him from accomplishing his journey. They that have lost much precious time in the former part of their life, had need use dou­ble diligence in well improving of it afterwards.

3. The sick and aged. They ought to look upon their Sun as setting and their glass as almost run out. And therefore if ever they will bestir themselves to secure to themselves a happy eternity they must do it now.

4. Those that at present enjoy more then ordinary Spiritual helps and advantages for the good of their souls, or such oppor­tunities as they have not before met with. As when God casts them into a good Family, or vouchsafes to them the help of some faithful Minister, or the example of some exemplary Christians whose help they had not before. Those to whom God vouch­safes such advantages should especially be careful to improve them remembring that opportunity is the quintescence of time. A man may have a great deal of time and yet but few opportunities to effect an important business, and 'tis the character of a wise man to make a right improvement of the opportunities vouch-safed to him.

5. Those that are in any office of Magistracy or Ministry, where­by they have an especial opportunity of doing good to many. They should be very careful to improve this season, for it will not alwayes last. If therefore thou art a Magistrate, consider thou hast now a great opportunity to encourage Piety, Vertue, and Honesty, and to beat down Sin, Vice, and Wickedness. Do what thou canst for God while thy Magistracy lasts. If thou art a Minister, Preach the word faithfully in season and out of season, Exhort, Reprove, Rebuke with all long-suffering and patience; strive to win as ma­ny souls to Christ as thou canst. Thou knowest not how soon thy mouth may be stopped. And I may make the like address to others also. If thou art rich, distribute and communicate to the poor whilst thou hast an estate; possibly it may be taken from thee, and then thou canst not do it. If thou art a Parent or a Master of a Family, do good to the souls of those under thy care while thou hast time. Remember that both thy life and their lives are uncertain, and thou knowest not how long th [...]u mayest have opportunity to do it.

6. The Ignorant. They that have been hitherto ignorant should consider they must get knowledge if they intend to be saved; [Page 394] for without the knowledge of the main fundamental Principles of the Christian Religion, how is it possible they should be good Christians or know what God requires of them in order to their Salvation.

7. Those that have been lately recovered from any dangerous sickness. They should remember that God has renewed the lease of their life, which possibly both themselves and their friends thought expiring. They should remember the resolutions and promises which they then made to God, and possibly to others in their sickness. It is said of the Mariners that were in the Ship out of which Jonah was cast, that when the Sea ceased from ra­ging and all was safe, that the men feared the Lord exceedingly, and offered a Sacrifice to the Lord and made vows, Jonah 1.16. Ob­serve, they made vows after their deliverance. Many make vows in their danger that are little careful to perform them when the danger is over. But let all those that love their Souls be careful to perform the vows they made to God in their sicknesses and di­stresses. And so much of this last particular, namely, the per­sons who ought especially to be perswaded to the practice of this duty.

FINIS.

This keyboarded and encoded edition of the work described above is co-owned by the institutions providing financial support to the Text Creation Partnership. Searching, reading, printing, or downloading EEBO-TCP texts is reserved for the authorized users of these project partner institutions. Permission must be granted for subsequent distribution, in print or electronically, of this EEBO-TCP Phase II text, in whole or in part.